0% found this document useful (0 votes)
168 views134 pages

4 5780768170709092406

Uploaded by

Rebeca Fuentes
Copyright
© © All Rights Reserved
We take content rights seriously. If you suspect this is your content, claim it here.
Available Formats
Download as PDF, TXT or read online on Scribd
0% found this document useful (0 votes)
168 views134 pages

4 5780768170709092406

Uploaded by

Rebeca Fuentes
Copyright
© © All Rights Reserved
We take content rights seriously. If you suspect this is your content, claim it here.
Available Formats
Download as PDF, TXT or read online on Scribd

Table of Contents

About the Author


Title Page
Copyright Page
Introduction
Preface

I Go to Sea
I Am Captured by Pirates
I Escape from the Sallee Rover
I Become a Brazilian Planter
I Go on Board in an Evil Hour
I Furnish Myself with Many Things
I Build My Fortress
The Journal
I Sow My Grain
I Travel Quite Across the Island
I Am Very Seldom Idle
I Make Myself a Canoe
I Improve Myself in the Mechanic Exercises
I Find the Print of a Man’s Naked Foot
I See the Shore Spread with Bones
I Seldom Go from My Cell
I See the Wreck of a Ship
I Hear the First Sound of a Man’s Voice
I Call Him Friday
We Make Another Canoe
We March Out Against the Cannibals
We Plan a Voyage to the Colonies of America
We Quell a Mutiny
We Seize the Ship
I Find My Wealth All About Me
We Cross the Mountains
I Revisit My Island
Daniel Defoe (1660-1731) lived a life full of business successes and reverses,
Afterword financial gains and losses, and political victories and defeats. Sent by his father
Selected Bibliography to study for the ministry, Defoe entered the business world instead. In 1685,
Defoe took part in the Duke of Monmouth’s ill-fated rebellion against King
James II; and in 1688, he joined a volunteer regiment that acted as William III’s
escort into London. By 1692, Defoe’s business affairs had foundered and
creditors filed suit against him, but he talked his way out of debtors’ prison. His
poem The True-Born Englishman (1701) met with resounding success. In 1702,
after he attacked the Tories in a pamphlet, the enraged government imprisoned
him for two years; upon his release, he became a secret agent for the
government. Between 1718 and 1723 he published Robinson Crusoe, Moll
Flanders, and A Journal of the Plague Year.
Paul Theroux is the award-winning author of such novels as Picture Palace
(winner of the Whitbread Prize for fiction) , The Mosquito Coast, My Secret
History, Saint Jack, and Kowloon Tong. He has also published numerous best-
selling travel books, including The Great Railway Bazaar, The Kingdom by the
Sea, and The Pillars of Hercules.
Robert Mayer is Professor of British Literature and Director of the Screen
Studies Program at Oklahoma State University. He is the author of History and
the Early English Novel: Matters of Fact from Bacon to Defoe and the editor of
Eighteenth-Century Fiction on Screen. His recent work includes the essay
‘‘Robinson Crusoe in Hollywood’’ and an ongoing study of authorship and
reading that focuses on Sir Walter Scott.
SIGNET CLASSICS
Published by New American Library, a division of
Introduction
Penguin Group (USA) Inc., 375 Hudson Street, Robinson Crusoe, an adventure story of the ultimate castaway, is so established
New York, New York 10014, USA in most people’s minds that even those who have not read it know some details
Penguin Group (Canada), 90 Eglinton Avenue East, Suite 700, Toronto,
Ontario M4P 2Y3, Canada (a division of Pearson Penguin Canada Inc.) of the story: Shipwreck. Desert island. Goatskin jacket and funny hat. Hairy
Penguin Books Ltd., 80 Strand, London WC2R 0RL, England umbrella. Talking parrot. Shocking footprint. Man Friday. Cannibals. Rescue. It
Penguin Ireland, 25 St. Stephen’s Green, Dublin 2, is all so familiar as an apparently simple, wonderful tale of survival that it is
Ireland (a division of Penguin Books Ltd.)
Penguin Group (Australia), 250 Camberwell Road, Camberwell, Victoria 3124, easily read as a great yarn.
Australia (a division of Pearson Australia Group Pty. Ltd.) Crusoe is too human and accident prone to be truly heroic—this may be
Penguin Books India Pvt. Ltd., 11 Community Centre, Panchsheel Park,
New Delhi - 110 017, India
another reason for his enduring appeal. But the island setting is also a
Penguin Group (NZ), 67 Apollo Drive, Rosedale, North Shore 0632, compelling feature of his story, for the island as a microcosm of the world has
New Zealand (a division of Pearson New Zealand Ltd.) been used imaginatively in English in works as diverse as Shakespeare’s The
Penguin Books (South Africa) (Pty.) Ltd., 24 Sturdee Avenue,
Rosebank, Johannesburg 2196, South Africa
Tempest and Golding’s Lord of the Flies. Crusoe is more stubborn than brave,
Penguin Books Ltd., Registered Offices: and his first-person narrative, the more believable for being defiantly unliterary,
80 Strand, London WC2R 0RL, England can be appreciated as the account of a man’s twenty-eight-year ordeal of
Published by Signet Classics, an imprint of New American Library,
a division of Penguin Group (USA) Inc.
loneliness, hunger, and physical threat; a man who ingeniously succeeds against
First Signet Classics Printing, July 1959 the odds. But it is all so assured and so filled with plausible episodes and
First Signet Classics Printing (Mayer Afterword), May 2008 peculiar wisdom, it helps to be reminded that it was the first English novel and
Introduction copyright © Paul Theroux, 1998
Afterword copyright © Robert Mayer, 2008
was written by a man nearly sixty, who resembled his fictional creation in his
All rights reserved need to scheme in order to survive. Defoe was a master of improvisation, and he
had to be, for his life was a chronicle of ups and downs—which is a fair
description of this novel.
REGISTERED TRADEMARK—MARCA REGISTRADA
The scanning, uploading, and distribution of this book via the Internet or via any other means without the Daniel Defoe (1660-1731) was, in the words of one critic, ‘‘a shrewd, shifty,
permission of the publisher is illegal and punishable by law. Please purchase only authorized electronic ingenious man, much mistrusted and frequently imprisoned.’’ He was
editions, and do not participate in or encourage electronic piracy of copyrighted materials. Your support of
the author’s rights is appreciated.
imprisoned for debt as well as for his satirical writing, and his reverses included
bankruptcy and the failure of get-rich-quick schemes, of which raising civet cats
http://us.penguingroup.com (their glands were used for perfume) for quick cash was just one. He was a
eISBN : 978-1-4406-3472-7
journalist, publisher, poet, businessman, and sometime secret agent, whose first
novel—the first in the English language—was a huge hit, running into many
editions and being quickly pirated and imitated.
One of the reasons for the success of this piece of fiction was that it was taken
for fact. It is utterly, vulgarly modern in that sense. In the preface, Defoe,
wearing the mask of editor, wrote, ‘‘The editor believes the thing to be a just
history of fact; neither is there any appearance of fiction in it.’’ Defoe (who took
the view that fiction could be a low and subversive trick that encouraged
mendacity) had hit upon an idea that persists to this day—that if a book is said to
be true, it is somehow a more important and authentic piece. ‘‘A true story, based pedestrian sermon on the safety of staying home) leaves home and finds himself
on actual events,’’ runs the assertion in the made-for -TV movie. ‘‘It really involved in extraordinary events, beginning just days after his departure, when
happened!’’ the person says, who urges you to read such a book. That was also on his first voyage, his ship sinks. He is not deterred, and not even put off by a
what Defoe wanted people to say in 1719 when Robinson Crusoe was first fairly prescient man who looks him in the eye and says that wherever he goes he
published; and they did say it and believed it. ‘‘will meet with nothing but disasters and disappointments.’’
The story is sensational—even today a story about such a castaway would be Soon after, battling sea monsters, Crusoe is saved by his servant Xury; instead
front-page news. But with time and rereading this adventure deepens in of rewarding him for his efforts, he sells Xury into slavery, and it is only when
meaning, and the longer you live, the more impressive an achievement Robinson he is a harassed planter in Brazil that he regrets selling Xury, for he realizes that
Crusoe becomes, turning from amazing tale to a subtle study in innovation, a he could use a slave to help him in his work. He thinks of Xury again in this way
metaphor for human survival, and ultimately one of our own mythical tales, on the island. That crudely human logic is one of the most plausible aspects of
almost Biblical in its morality: Robinson is as vivid and unambiguous a the novel; and it frequently gives rise to Crusoe’s refrain that he can’t seem to do
character as Job or Jonah, two people he specifically mentions. anything right. He even claims in this early stage that as a tobacco farmer in
And surely it is significant that the very first English novel is a desert island rural Brazil he is living ‘‘like a man cast away upon some desolate island, that
story, just one man in the middle of nowhere, with almost nothing, who survives had no body there but himself.’’
to create a whole world. In this sense the novel is like an allegory of the history A few pages later, in one of Defoe’s calculated ironies, Crusoe is shipwrecked
of humankind. The narrative emerges from chaos, with no society or props to on a slaving expedition, and begins to understand the reality behind his desert-
speak of. A whole metaphor of creation is described in this book, which is as island hyperbole, as he becomes a real castaway on an island of real desolation.
surprising in its action as in its intelligence. Its contradictions are the There is no question that Defoe intended a morality tale, but as a prolific writer
contradictions in the lives of many people; it embodies many of our discontents (four hundred works bear his name), he was well-enough acquainted with the
and dilemmas. No women figure in its drama; there is no passion, and though public taste to know that for his story to be believed it needed persuasive detail.
there is affection, there is hardly any love. But in its understated way the novel Crusoe is not high-minded. He is a rebellious son who is attracted to the risky
discusses just about everything else—materialism, isolation, arrogance, travel, and the morally doubtful. He is inexperienced, not a Londoner but a young
friendship, imperialism, rebellious children, the relativity of wealth, the provincial, a Yorkshireman. That he is from a reasonably well-off family makes
conundrum of power, the ironies of solitude, learning by doing; it is about faith, him seem out of touch and a bit innocent; he keeps reminding us how average he
atonement, and the passage of time. It is also as practical as a pair of shoes. No is in being incompetent (‘‘I had never handled a tool in my life’’), and accident
sooner is the ordeal over than Crusoe is back, founding a colony and counting prone (‘‘I that was born to be my own destroyer’’), and he is not at all religious
his money; and in the same way, the Crusoe idea continued, producing sequels until he finds a Bible among the tools and seeds and paraphernalia he rescues
and parodies, giving words to the language—‘‘Crusoe’’ is a byword for from the smashed ship.
castaway, as ‘‘Friday’’ is a synonym for helper. He survives by growing and maturing; but he does more than survive—he
Robinson begins life as a disobedient and hubristic, if accident-prone boy. He ends by ruling the island, by becoming if not wise, then sensible; by acquiring
is given any amount of advice by his sententious father, the German immigrant power and using it with understanding. He progresses from being an almost-
to England, Herr Kreutznaer, who anglicized his name to Crusoe. The name victim to an almost-dictator. One of the most satisfying aspects of the novel is
change is a nice touch in a book full of detail, which is the more plausible for its that in order to prevail over the natural obstacles of his island, Crusoe has to
being strange and even somewhat unnecessary. But as it happens, Defoe also learn the rudiments of civilization. For this to happen he must become
changed his name, Frenchifying it, for his father’s name was plain Mr. Foe. acquainted with the paradox that his desert island is both a prison and a kingdom
Daniel Defoe was anything but average, but he chose to write about a pretty —he uses those very words. Early on, he describes himself as a prisoner and
ordinary, though arrogant, young man who (ignoring his father’s Teutonic and describes his anguish. Later he speaks of ‘‘the sixth year of my reign, or my
captivity, which you please.’’ After some time passes and his confidence grows, island, the meaninglessness of money, the vanity of hoarding, and reaches the
his hut is a ‘‘castle,’’ and with the appearance (and conversion from cannibalism) conclusion ‘‘That the good things of this world are no farther good to us, that
of Friday, he thinks of himself as a ruler. At last, with his rescue of the Spaniards they are for our Use,’’ he is on the way to salvation.
and Friday’s father he says, ‘‘My island was now peopled and I thought myself The odd thing is that Selkirk is usually represented as a kind of marvel and of
very rich in subjects; and it was a merry reflection which I frequently made, course he isn’t. He is just the singular fellow who returned to tell his tale of
How like a king I looked.’’ And he thinks of himself as an absolute ruler and solitary survival. Crusoe insists that the reader see him as an unexceptional but a
even a despot, but a benevolent one. vivid warning, a living example of the ills of man, beset by hubris and
Whenever the subject of Robinson Crusoe comes up, the name Alexander discontent. ‘‘I have been in all my circumstances a memento to those who are
Selkirk is mentioned. Selkirk (1676-1721), a Scotsman from the village of Largo touched with the general plague of mankind. . . .’’
in Fifeshire, was a contemporary of Defoe. He was a seaman and notorious for Crusoe is only solitary for part of his ordeal. The dramatic, and poignant,
his pugnacity—well-known for his having thrown his father down a flight of appearance of the footprint and the serious meditation that follows is one of the
stairs. During a voyage on a privateer in the Pacific, he quarreled with his episodes that lifts this novel to another level of meaning. It also shows Defoe as
captain and demanded to be put ashore on the remote (and deserted) island of someone who could speak in the plainest and most convincing way about tools
Juan Fernandez, off the coast of Chile. There he remained for five years, 1704- and seeds and grape growing, while at the same time being capable of the most
09. He became a popular hero on his rescue and return to Britain. Details of his profound rumination about the invasion of solitude and society and the
life as a castaway were published: his living off the land, his thatched-roof huts, definitions of space and time. Crusoe had lamented his solitude earlier, but no
his goatskin wardrobe. He said that he hankered for the tranquillity of his simple sooner has he conquered it and prevailed over his isolation than he has to reckon
life on the island. The celebrated essayist Richard Steele interviewed Selkirk and on the complexities of human company. The footprint is the beginning of this
used him as a living illustration of the maxim ‘‘that he is happiest who confines test of his understanding and the end of his Eden. What follows is like an
his wants to natural necessities.’’ allegory of the Ascent of Man, for he has to cope with cannibalism, aggression,
There is no evidence that Defoe ever met Selkirk, but as a journalist he warfare, and the competitive instinct. By overcoming these obstacles, Crusoe
obviously knew the story and Selkirk was undoubtedly the inspiration for grows stronger. And yet, though he is a hero in a literary sense, he is not heroic
Robinson Crusoe. But though Selkirk was apostrophized as a simple-lifer, he in his deeds. His most persuasive quality is his humanity; he is the congenital
was in effect no more than a survivor in extraordinary circumstances. The bumbler who is challenged by circumstances to become competent. And one
differences between Crusoe and Selkirk are more significant than the might add that though the Bible strengthens him, he does not become visibly
similarities. Selkirk’s story is a fairly simple tale of survival on a barren island, religious until Friday appears, and then he is sanctimonious.
while Crusoe’s is at once a story of atonement and colonization; it is about If Robinson Crusoe were a story about holding out against the odds, then
becoming civilized—at least in eighteenth -century terms, when forcible everything would hinge on Crusoe’s rescue. But this is not the case. By
conversion and slave trading were regarded as elements of civilization. mastering himself, Crusoe masters the island and makes a world of it. He
Selkirk was a pirate who remained a pirate. Crusoe, also an unruly son, is progresses in an almost evolutionary sense from a lowly creature precariously
supremely disobedient; his experience on the island (at the mouth of the clinging to life at the edge of the island, to being the dominant species on it; he
Orinoco) is both his punishment and his reward, as his island prison is moves from castaway to colonizer. At the end, Crusoe is both, as he says, a king
transformed into his kingdom. Crusoe epitomizes perspective. The issue of and a ‘‘Generalissimo.’’ Defoe’s point is that Crusoe does not need to be rescued,
survival is secondary to the whole debate circling around the matter of point of and it is emphasized by the fact that no sooner has he been scooped up and told
view, which is summed up in his stating that on the island, ‘‘I entertained his story, than he returns to the island and prospers. It is a success story—of fall
different notions of things.’’ Ambition and arrogance and greed got him into this and rise; it is also a narrative of purification, with the most downright details as
fix; rationalism gets him out of it. When he sees the futility of riches on the well as something approaching the spiritual. Not surprisingly, this novel has
been in print and popular for almost three hundred years.
—Paul Theroux Preface
IF EVER the story of any private man’s adventures in the world were worth
making public, and were acceptable when published, the editor of this account
thinks this will be so.
The wonders of this man’s life exceed all that (he thinks) is to be found extant;
the life of one man being scarce capable of a greater variety
The story is told with modesty, with seriousness, and with a religious
application of events to the uses to which wise men always apply them (viz.) to
the instruction of others by this example, and to justify and honour the wisdom
of Providence in all the variety of our circumstances, let them happen how they
will.
The editor believes the thing to be a just history of fact; neither is there any
appearance of fiction in it. And however thinks, because all such things are
disputed, that the improvement of it, as well to the diversion, as to the instruction
of the reader, will be the same; and as such, he thinks, without further
compliment to the world, he does them a great service in the publication.
had found by long experience was the best state in the world, the most suited to
I Go to Sea human happiness, not exposed to the miseries and hardships, the labour and
sufferings of the mechanic part of mankind, and not embarrassed with the pride,
I WAS BORN in the year 1632, in the city of York, of a good family, though not
luxury, ambition, and envy of the upper part of mankind. He told me I might
of that country, my father being a foreigner of Bremen who settled first at Hull.
judge of the happiness of this state by this one thing, viz., that this was the state
He got a good estate by merchandise and, leaving off his trade, lived afterward at
of life which all other people envied; that kings have frequently lamented the
York, from whence he had married my mother, whose relations were named
miserable consequences of being born to great things, and wished they had been
Robinson, a very good family in that country, and from whom I was called
placed in the middle of the two extremes, between the mean and the great; that
Robinson Kreutznaer; but by the usual corruption of words in England we are
the wise man gave his testimony to this as the just standard of true felicity, when
now called, nay, we call ourselves, and write our name ‘‘Crusoe,’’ and so my
he prayed to have neither poverty nor riches.
companions always called me.
He bade me observe it, and I should always find that the calamities of life
I had two elder brothers, one of which was lieutenant-colonel to an English
were shared among the upper and lower part of mankind; but that the middle
regiment of foot in Flanders, formerly commanded by the famous Colonel
station had the fewest disasters, and was not exposed to so many vicissitudes as
Lockhart, and was killed at the battle near Dunkirk against the Spaniards; what
the higher or lower part of mankind; nay, they were not subjected to so many
became of my second brother I never knew, any more than my father or mother
distempers and uneasinesses either of body or mind, as those were who, by
did know what was become of me.
vicious living, luxury, and extravagances on one hand, or by hard labour, want of
Being the third son of the family, and not bred to any trade, my head began to necessaries, and mean or insufficient diet on the other hand, bring distempers
be filled very early with rambling thoughts. My father, who was very ancient, upon themselves by the natural consequences of their way of living; that the
had given me a competent share of learning, as far as house education and a middle station of life was calculated for all kind of virtues, and all kind of
country free school generally goes, and designed me for the law; but I would be enjoyments; that peace and plenty were the handmaids of a middle fortune; that
satisfied with nothing but going to sea; and my inclination to this led me so temperance, moderation, quietness, health, society, all agreeable diversions, and
strongly against the will, nay, the commands, of my father, and against all the all desirable pleasures, were the blessings attending the middle station of life;
entreaties and persuasions of my mother and other friends that there seemed to that this way men went silently and smoothly through the world, and
be something fatal in that propension of nature tending directly to the life of comfortably out of it, not embarrassed with the labours of the hands or of the
misery which was to befall me. head, not sold to the life of slavery for daily bread, or harassed with perplexed
My father, a wise and grave man, gave me serious and excellent counsel circumstances, which rob the soul of peace and the body of rest; not enraged
against what he foresaw was my design. He called me one morning into his with the passion of envy, or secret burning lust of ambition for great things; but
chamber, where he was confined by the gout, and expostulated very warmly with in easy circumstances sliding gently through the world, and sensibly tasting the
me upon this subject. He asked me what reasons more than a mere wandering sweets of living, without the bitter, feeling that they are happy, and learning by
inclination I had for leaving my father’s house and my native country, where I every day’s experience to know it more sensibly.
might be well introduced, and had a prospect of raising my fortune by After this, he pressed me earnestly, and in the most affectionate manner, not to
application and industry, with a life of ease and pleasure. He told me it was for play the young man, nor to precipitate myself into miseries which nature and the
men of desperate fortunes on one hand, or of aspiring, superior fortunes on the station of life I was born in seemed to have provided against; that I was under no
other, who went abroad upon adventures, to rise by enterprise, and make necessity of seeking my bread; that he would do well for me, and endeavour to
themselves famous in undertakings of a nature out of the common road; that enter me fairly into the station of life which he had been just recommending to
these things were all either too far above me, or too far below me; that mine was me; and that if I was not very easy and happy in the world, it must be my mere
the middle state, or what might be called the upper station of low life, which he fate or fault that must hinder it, and that he should have nothing to answer for,
having thus discharged his duty in warning me against measures which he knew I had had with my father, and such kind and tender expressions as she knew my
would be to my hurt. In a word, that as he would do very kind things for me if I father had used to me; and that, in short, if I would ruin myself, there was no
would stay and settle at home, as he directed, so he would not have so much help for me; but I might depend I should never have their consent to it; that for
hand in my misfortunes as to give me any encouragement to go away. And to her part she would not have so much hand in my destruction; and I should never
close all, he told me, I had my elder brother for an example, to whom he had have it to say, that my mother was willing when my father was not.
used the same earnest persuasions to keep him from going into the Low Country Though my mother refused to move it to my father, yet, as I have heard
wars, but could not prevail, his young desires prompting him to run into the afterwards, she reported all the discourse to him, and that my father, after
army, where he was killed; and though he said he would not cease to pray for showing a great concern at it, said to her with a sigh, ‘‘That boy might be happy
me, yet he would venture to say to me that if I did take this foolish step, God if he would stay at home, but if he goes abroad, he will be the most miserable
would not bless me, and I would have leisure hereafter to reflect upon having wretch that was ever born; I can give no consent to it.’’
neglected his counsel, when there might be none to assist in my recovery. It was not till almost a year after this that I broke loose, though in the
I observed in this last part of his discourse, which was truly prophetic, though meantime I continued obstinately deaf to all proposals of settling to business,
I suppose my father did not know it to be so himself; I say, I observed the tears and frequently expostulating with my father and mother about their being so
run down his face very plentifully, especially when he spoke of my brother who positively determined against what they knew my inclinations prompted me to.
was killed; and that when he spoke of my having leisure to repent, and none to But being one day at Hull, where I went casually, and without any purpose of
assist me, he was so moved that he broke off the discourse, and told me his heart making an elopement that time; but I say, being there, and one of my
was so full he could say no more to me. companions being going by sea to London in his father’s ship, and prompting me
I was sincerely affected with this discourse, as indeed who could be to go with them, with the common allurement of seafaring men, viz., that it
otherwise? and I resolved not to think of going abroad any more, but to settle at should cost me nothing for my passage, I consulted neither father or mother any
home according to my father’s desire. But alas! a few days wore it all off; and in more, nor so much as sent them word of it; but leaving them to hear of it as they
short, to prevent any of my father’s further importunities, in a few weeks after, I might, without asking God’s blessing, or my father’s, without any consideration
resolved to run quite away from him. However, I did not act so hastily neither as of circumstances or consequences, and in an ill hour, God knows, on the first of
my first heat of resolution prompted, but I took my mother, at a time when I September, 1651, I went on board a ship bound for London. Never any young
thought her a little pleasanter than ordinary, and told her that my thoughts were adventurer’s misfortunes, I believe, began sooner or continued longer than mine.
so entirely bent upon seeing the world that I should never settle to anything with The ship was no sooner gotten out of the Humber but the wind began to blow,
resolution enough to go through with it, and my father had better give me his and the sea to rise in a most frightful manner; and as I had never been at sea
consent than force me to go without it; that I was now eighteen years old, which before, I was most inexpressibly sick in body and terrified in mind. I began now
was too late to go apprentice to a trade, or clerk to an attorney; that I was sure, if seriously to reflect upon what I had done, and how justly I was overtaken by the
I did, I should never serve out my time, and I should certainly run away from my judgment of Heaven for my wicked leaving my father’s house and abandoning
master before my time was out, and go to sea; and if she would speak to my my duty; all the good counsel of my parents, my father’s tears, and my mother’s
father to let me go one voyage abroad, if I came home again and did not like it, I entreaties came now fresh into my mind, and my conscience, which was not yet
would go no more, and I would promise by a double diligence to recover that come to the pitch of hardness to which it has been since, reproached me with the
time I had lost. contempt of advice and the breach of my duty to God and my father.
This put my mother into a great passion. She told me she knew it would be to All this while the storm increased, and the sea, which I had never been upon
no purpose to speak to my father upon any such subject; that he knew too well before, went very high, though nothing like what I have seen many times since;
what was my interest, to give his consent to anything so much for my hurt, and no, nor like what I saw a few days after. But it was enough to affect me then,
that she wondered how I could think of any such thing, after such a discourse as who was but a young sailor and had never known anything of the matter. I
expected every wave would have swallowed us up, and that every time the ship returned, I entirely forgot the vows and promises that I made in my distress. I
fell down, as I thought, in the trough or hollow of the sea, we should never rise found indeed some intervals of reflection, and the serious thoughts did, as it
more; and in this agony of mind I made many vows and resolutions, that if it were, endeavour to return again sometimes; but I shook them off, and roused
would please God here to spare my life this one voyage, if ever I got once my myself from them as it were from a distemper, and applying myself to drinking
foot upon dry land again, I would go directly home to my father, and never set it and company, soon mastered the return of those fits (for so I called them), and I
into a ship again while I lived; that I would take his advice, and never run myself had in five or six days got as complete a victory over conscience as any young
into such miseries as these any more. Now I saw plainly the goodness of his fellow that resolved not to be troubled with it could desire. But I was to have
observations about the middle station of life, how easy, how comfortably he had another trial for it still; and Providence, as in such cases generally it does,
lived all his days, and never had been exposed to tempests at sea or troubles on resolved to leave me entirely without excuse. For if I would not take this for a
shore; and I resolved that I would, like a true repenting prodigal, go home to my deliverance, the next was to be such a one as the worst and most hardened
father. wretch among us would confess both the danger and the mercy.
These wise and sober thoughts continued all the while the storm continued, The sixth day of our being at sea we came into Yarmouth Roads; the wind
and indeed some time after; but the next day the wind was abated and the sea having been contrary, and the weather calm, we had made but little way since the
calmer, and I began to be a little inured to it. However, I was very grave for all storm. Here we were obliged to come to anchor, and here we lay, the wind
that day, being also a little seasick still; but towards night the weather cleared up, continuing contrary, viz., at southwest, for seven or eight days, during which
the wind was quite over, and a charming fine evening followed; the sun went time a great many ships from Newcastle came into the same roads, as the
down perfectly clear, and rose so the next morning; and having little or no wind, common harbour where the ships might wait for a wind for the river.
and a smooth sea, the sun shining upon it, the sight was, as I thought, the most We had not, however, rid here so long, but should have tided it up the river,
delightful that ever I saw. but that the wind blew too fresh; and after we had lain four or five days, blew
I had slept well in the night, and was now no more seasick, but very cheerful, very hard. However, the roads being reckoned as good as a harbour, the
looking with wonder upon the sea that was so rough and terrible the day before, anchorage good, and our ground tackle very strong, our men were unconcerned,
and could be so calm and so pleasant in so little time after. And now lest my and not in the least apprehensive of danger, but spent the time in rest and mirth,
good resolutions should continue, my companion, who had indeed enticed me after the manner of the sea; but the eighth day in the morning, the wind
away, comes to me. ‘‘Well, Bob,’’ says he, clapping me upon the shoulder, ‘‘how increased, and we had all hands at work to strike our topmasts and make
do you do after it? I warrant you were frighted, wa’n’t you, last night, when it everything snug and close, that the ship might ride as easy as possible. By noon
blew but a capful of wind?’’ ‘‘A capful, d’you call it?’’ said I, ‘‘ ’twas a terrible the sea went very high indeed, and our ship rid forecastle in, shipped several
storm.’’ ‘‘A storm, you fool, you,’’ replies he; ‘‘do you call that a storm? why, it seas, and we thought once or twice our anchor had come home; upon which our
was nothing at all; give us but a good ship and sea room, and we think nothing of master ordered out the sheet anchor; so that we rode with two anchors ahead,
such a squall of wind as that; but you’re but a fresh-water sailor, Bob; come, let and the cables veered out to the bitter end.
us make a bowl of punch, and we’ll forget all that; d’ye see what charming By this time it blew a terrible storm indeed, and now I began to see terror and
weather ’tis now?’’ To make short this sad part of my story, we went the old way amazement in the faces even of the seamen themselves. The master, though
of all sailors; the punch was made, and I was made drunk with it, and in that one vigilant in the business of preserving the ship, yet as he went in and out of his
night’s wickedness I drowned all my repentance, all my reflections upon my past cabin by me, I could hear him softly to himself say several times, ‘‘Lord, be
conduct, and all my resolutions for the future. In a word, as the sea was returned merciful to us, we shall be all lost, we shall be all undone’’; and the like. During
to its smoothness of surface and settled calmness by the abatement of that storm, these first hurries, I was stupid, lying still in my cabin, which was in the
so the hurry of my thoughts being over, my fears and apprehensions of being steerage, and cannot describe my temper. I could ill reassume the first penitence
swallowed up by the sea being forgotten, and the current of my former desires which I had so apparently trampled upon, and hardened myself against. I thought
the bitterness of death had been past, and that this would be nothing too, like the the men roused me, and told me that I, that was able to do nothing before, was as
first. But when the master himself came by me, as I said just now, and said we well able to pump as another; at which I stirred up and went to the pump and
should be all lost, I was dreadfully frighted. I got up out of my cabin and looked worked very heartily. While this was doing, the master, seeing some light
out; but such a dismal sight I never saw. The sea went mountains high, and broke colliers, who, not able to ride out the storm, were obliged to slip and run away to
upon us every three or four minutes. When I could look about, I could see sea, and would come near us, ordered to fire a gun as a signal of distress. I, who
nothing but distress round us: Two ships that rid near us, we found, had cut their knew nothing what that meant, was so surprised, that I thought the ship had
masts by the board, being deep loaden; and our men cried out that a ship which broke, or some dreadful thing happened. In a word, I was so surprised that I fell
rid about a mile ahead of us was foundered. Two more ships, being driven from down in a swoon. As this was a time when everybody had his own life to think
their anchors, were run out of the roads to sea at all adventures, and that with not of, nobody minded me, or what was become of me; but another man stepped up
a mast standing. The light ships fared the best, as not so much labouring in the to the pump, and thrusting me aside with his foot, let me lie, thinking I had been
sea; but two or three of them drove and came close by us, running away with dead; and it was a great while before I came to myself.
only their spritsail out before the wind. We worked on, but the water increasing in the hold, it was apparent that the
Towards evening the mate and boatswain begged the master of our ship to let ship would founder, and though the storm began to abate a little, yet as it was not
them cut away the foremast which he was very unwilling to do. But the possible she could swim till we might run into a port, so the master continued
boatswain protesting to him that if he did not the ship would founder, he firing guns for help; and a light ship who had rid it out just ahead of us ventured
consented; and when they had cut away the foremast, the mainmast stood so a boat out to help us. It was with the utmost hazard the boat came near us, but it
loose and shook the ship so much, they were obliged to cut her away also, and was impossible for us to get on board, or for the boat to lie near the ship side, till
make a clear deck. at last the men rowing very heartily and venturing their lives to save ours, our
Anyone may judge what a condition I must be in at all this, who was but a men cast them a rope over the stern with a buoy to it and then veered it out a
young sailor, and who had been in such a fright before at but a little. But if I can great length, which they after great labour and hazard took hold of, and we
express at this distance the thoughts I had about me at that time, I was in tenfold hauled them close under our stern and got all into their boat. It was to no purpose
more horror of mind upon account of my former convictions, and the having for them or us after we were in the boat to think of reaching to their own ship, so
returned from them to the resolutions I had wickedly taken at first, than I was at all agreed to let her drive and only to pull her in towards shore as much as we
death itself; and these, added to the terror of the storm, put me in such a could, and our master promised them that if the boat was staved upon shore, he
condition that I can by no words describe it. But the worst was not come yet; the would make it good to their master; so, partly rowing and partly driving, our
storm continued with such fury that the seamen themselves acknowledged they boat went away to the northward, sloping towards the shore almost as far as
had never known a worse. We had a good ship, but she was deep loaden, and Winterton Ness.
wallowed in the sea, that the seamen every now and then cried out she would We were not much more than a quarter of an hour out of our ship but we saw
founder. It was my advantage in one respect that I did not know what they meant her sink, and then I understood for the first time what was meant by a ship
by ‘‘founder’’ till I inquired. However, the storm was so violent that I saw what foundering in the sea; I must acknowledge I had hardly eyes to look up when the
is not often seen, the master, the boatswain, and some others more sensible than seamen told me she was sinking; for from that moment they rather put me into
the rest, at their prayers and expecting every moment when the ship would go to the boat than that I might be said to go in, my heart was as it were dead within
the bottom. In the middle of the night, and under all the rest of our distresses, me, partly with fright, partly with horror of mind and the thoughts of what was
one of the men that had been down on purpose to see cried out we had sprung a yet before me.
leak; another said there was four foot water in the hold. Then all hands were While we were in this condition, the men yet labouring at the oar to bring the
called to the pump. At that very word my heart, as I thought, died within me, and boat near the shore, we could see (when, our boat mounting the waves, we were
I fell backwards upon the side of my bed where I sat, into the cabin. However, able to see the shore) a great many people running along the strand to assist us
when we should come near; but we made but slow way towards the shore, nor Jonah in the ship of Tarshish. Pray,’’ continues he, ‘‘what are you? and on what
were we able to reach the shore, till being past the lighthouse at Winterton, the account did you go to sea?’’ Upon that I told him some of my story; at the end of
shore falls off to the westward towards Cromer, and so the land broke off a little which he burst out with a strange kind of passion, ‘‘What had I done,’’ says he,
the violence of the wind. Here we got in and, though not without much difficulty, ‘‘that such an unhappy wretch should come into my ship? I would not set my
got all safe on shore and walked afterwards on foot to Yarmouth, where, as foot in the same ship with thee again for a thousand pounds.’’ This indeed was,
unfortunate men, we were used with great humanity, as well by the magistrates as I said, an excursion of his spirits, which were yet agitated by the sense of his
of the town, who assigned us good quarters, as by particular merchants and loss, and was farther than he could have authority to go. However, he afterwards
owners of ships, and had money given us sufficient to carry us either to London talked very gravely to me, exhorted me to go back to my father and not tempt
or back to Hull, as we thought fit. Providence to my ruin; told me I might see a visible hand of Heaven against me;
Had I now had the sense to have gone back to Hull, and have gone home, I ‘‘And, young man,’’ said he, ‘‘depend upon it, if you do not go back, wherever
had been happy, and my father, an emblem of our blessed Saviour’s parable, had you go, you will meet with nothing but disasters and disappointments, till your
even killed the fatted calf for me; for hearing the ship I went away in was cast father’s words are fulfilled upon you.’’
away in Yarmouth Roads, it was a great while before he had any assurance that I
was not drowned.
But my ill fate pushed me on now with an obstinacy that nothing could resist;
and though I had several times loud calls from my reason and my more
composed judgment to go home, yet I had no power to do it. I know not what to
call this, nor will I urge that it is a secret overruling decree that hurries us on to
be the instruments of our own destruction, even though it be before us, and that
we push upon it with our eyes open. Certainly nothing but some such decreed
unavoidable misery attending, and which it was impossible for me to escape,
could have pushed me forward against the calm reasonings and persuasions of
my most retired thoughts and against two such visible instructions as I had met
with in my first attempt.
My comrade, who had helped to harden me before and who was the master’s
son, was now less forward than I; the first time he spoke to me after we were at
Yarmouth, which was not till two or three days, for we were separated in the
town to several quarters; I say, the first time he saw me, it appeared his tone was
altered, and looking very melancholy and shaking his head, asking me how I did,
and telling his father who I was, and how I had come this voyage only for a trial
in order to go farther abroad; his father turning to me with a very grave and
concerned tone, ‘‘Young man,’’ says he, ‘‘you ought never to go to sea any more;
you ought to take this for a plain and visible token that you are not to be a
seafaring man.’’ ‘‘Why, sir,’’ said I, ‘‘will you go to sea no more?’’ ‘‘That is
another case,’’ said he, ‘‘it is my calling and therefore my duty; but as you made
this voyage for a trial, you see what a taste Heaven has given you of what you
are to expect if you persist; perhaps this is all befallen us on your account, like
ship, or learned to do any.
I Am Captured by Pirates It was my lot first of all to fall into pretty good company in London, which
WE PARTED soon after; for I made him little answer, and I saw him no more; does not always happen to such loose and unguided young fellows as I then was;
which way he went I know not. As for me, having some money in my pocket, I the devil generally not omitting to lay some snare for them very early. But it was
travelled to London by land; and there, as well as on the road, had many not so with me; I first fell acquainted with the master of a ship who had been on
struggles with myself what course of life I should take, and whether I should go the coast of Guinea; and who, having had very good success there, was resolved
home or go to sea. to go again; and who, taking a fancy to my conversation, which was not at all
disagreeable at that time, hearing me say I had a mind to see the world, told me,
As to going home, shame opposed the best motions that offered to my
if I would go the voyage with him, I should be at no expense; I should be his
thoughts; and it immediately occurred to me how I should be laughed at among
messmate and his companion, and if I could carry anything with me, I should
the neighbours, and should be ashamed to see, not my father and mother only,
have all the advantage of it that the trade would admit; and perhaps I might meet
but even everybody else; from whence I have since often observed how
with some encouragement.
incongruous and irrational the common temper of mankind is, especially of
youth, to that reason which ought to guide them in such cases, viz., that they are I embraced the offer, and, entering into a strict friendship with this captain,
not ashamed to sin, and yet are ashamed to repent; nor ashamed of the action for who was an honest and plain-dealing man, I went the voyage with him and
which they ought justly to be esteemed fools, but are ashamed of the returning, carried a small adventure with me, which, by the disinterested honesty of my
which only can make them be esteemed wise men. friend the captain, I increased very considerably; for I carried about #40 in such
toys and trifles as the captain directed me to buy. This #40 I had mustered
In this state of life, however, I remained some time, uncertain what measures
together by the assistance of some of my relations whom I corresponded with,
to take and what course of life to lead. An irresistible reluctance continued to
and who, I believe, got my father, or at least my mother, to contribute so much as
going home; and as I stayed awhile, the remembrance of the distress I had been
that to my first adventure.
in wore off; and as that abated, the little motion I had in my desires to a return
wore off with it, till at last I quite laid aside the thoughts of it and looked out for This was the only voyage which I may say was successful in all my
a voyage. adventures, and which I owe to the integrity and honesty of my friend the
captain, under whom also I got a competent knowledge of the mathematics and
That evil influence which carried me first away from my father’s house, that
the rules of navigation, learned how to keep an account of the ship’s course, take
hurried me into the wild and indigested notion of raising my fortune, and that
an observation, and in short, to understand some things that were needful to be
impressed those conceits so forcibly upon me as to make me deaf to all good
understood by a sailor. For, as he took delight to introduce me, I took delight to
advice and to the entreaties and even command of my father; I say, the same
learn; and, in a word, this voyage made me both a sailor and a merchant; for I
influence, whatever it was, presented the most unfortunate of all enterprises to
brought home five pounds nine ounces of gold dust for my adventure, which
my view; and I went on board a vessel bound to the coast of Africa, or, as our
yielded me in London at my return almost #300, and this filled me with those
sailors vulgarly call it, a voyage to Guinea.
aspiring thoughts which have since so completed my ruin.
It was my great misfortune that in all these adventures I did not ship myself as
Yet even in this voyage I had my misfortunes too; particularly that I was
a sailor; whereby, though I might indeed have worked a little harder than
ordinary, yet at the same time I had learned the duty and office of a foremast continually sick, being thrown into a violent calenture1 by the excessive heat of
man; and in time might have qualified myself for a mate or lieutenant, if not for the climate; our principal trading being upon the coast, from the latitude of 15
a master. But as it was always my fate to choose for the worse, so I did here; for degrees north, even to the line itself.
having money in my pocket and good clothes upon my back, I would always go I was now set up for a Guinea trader; and my friend, to my great misfortune,
on board in the habit of a gentleman; and so I neither had any business in the dying soon after his arrival, I resolved to go the same voyage again, and I
embarked in the same vessel with one who was his mate in the former voyage hopes that he would take me with him when he went to sea again, believing that
and had now got the command of the ship. This was the unhappiest voyage that it would some time or other be his fate to be taken by a Spanish or Portugal man-
ever man made; for though I did not carry quite #100 of my new-gained wealth, of-war; and that then I should be set at liberty. But this hope of mine was soon
so that I had #200 left, and which I lodged with my friend’s widow, who was taken away; for when he went to sea, he left me on shore to look after his little
very just to me, yet I fell into terrible misfortunes in this voyage; and the first garden and do the common drudgery of slaves about his house; and when he
was this, viz., our ship making her course towards the Canary Islands, or rather came home again from his cruise, he ordered me to lie in the cabin to look after
between those islands and the African shore, was surprised in the grey of the the ship.
morning by a Turkish rover of Sallee, who gave chase to us with all the sail she Here I meditated nothing but my escape, and what method I might take to
could make. We crowded also as much canvas as our yards would spread, or our effect it; but found no way that had the least probability in it. Nothing presented
masts carry, to have got clear; but finding the pirate gained upon us, and would to make the supposition of it rational; for I had nobody to communicate it to, that
certainly come up with us in a few hours, weprepared to fight; our ship having would embark with me, no fellow slave, no Englishman, Irishman, or Scotsman
twelve guns, and the rogue eighteen. About three in the afternoon he came up there but myself; so that for two years, though I often pleased myself with the
with us, and bringing to, by mistake, just athwart our quarter, instead of athwart imagination, yet I never had the least encouraging prospect of putting it in
our stern, as he intended, we brought eight of our guns to bear on that side and practice.
poured in a broadside upon him, which made him sheer off again, after returning After about two years an odd circumstance presented itself, which put the old
our fire and pouring in also his small shot from near two hundred men which he thought of making some attempt for my liberty again in my head. My patron
had on board. However, we had not a man touched, all our men keeping close. lying at home longer than usual without fitting out his ship, which, as I heard,
He prepared to attack us again, and we to defend ourselves; but laying us on was for want of money, he used constantly once or twice a week, sometimes
board the next time upon our other quarter, he entered sixty men upon our decks, oftener if the weather was fair, to take the ship’s pinnace and go out into the road
who immediately fell to cutting and hacking the decks and rigging. We plied a-fishing; and as he always took me and a young Maresco with him to row the
them with small shot, half-pikes, powder chests, and such like, and cleared our boat, we made him very merry, and I proved very dexterous in catching fish;
deck of them twice. However, to cut short this melancholy part of our story, our insomuch that sometimes he would send me with a Moor, one of his kinsmen,
ship being disabled, and three of our men killed and eight wounded, we were and the youth, the Maresco, as they called him, to catch a dish of fish for him.
obliged to yield, and were carried all prisoners into Sallee, a port belonging to
It happened one time that, going a-fishing in a stark calm morning, a fog rose
the Moors.
so thick that, though we were not half a league from the shore, we lost sight of it;
The usage I had there was not so dreadful as at first I apprehended, nor was I and rowing we knew not whither or which way, we laboured all day and all the
carried up the country to the emperor’s court, as the rest of our men were, but next night; and when the morning came, we found we had pulled off to sea
was kept by the captain of the rover, as his proper prize, and made his slave, instead of pulling in for the shore; and that we were at least two leagues from the
being young and nimble and fit for his business. At this surprising change of my shore. However, we got well in again, though with a great deal of labour and
circumstances, from a merchant to a miserable slave, I was perfectly some danger; for the wind began to blow pretty fresh in the morning; but
overwhelmed; and now I looked back upon my father’s prophetic discourse to particularly we were all very hungry.
me, that I should be miserable and have none to relieve me, which I thought was
But our patron, warned by this disaster, resolved to take more care of himself
now so effectually brought to pass that I could not be worse; that now the hand
for the future; and having lying by him the longboat of our English ship which
of Heaven had overtaken me, and I was undone without redemption. But alas!
he had taken, he resolved he would not go a-fishing any more without a compass
this was but a taste of the misery I was to go through, as will appear in the sequel
and some provision; so he ordered the carpenter of his ship, who also was an
of this story.
English slave, to build a little stateroom or cabin in the middle of the longboat,
As my new patron, or master, had taken me home to his house, so I was in
like that of a barge, with a place to stand behind it to steer and haul home the
main-sheet; and room before for a hand or two to stand and work the sails. She I Escape from the Sallee Rover
sailed with that we call a shoulder-of-mutton sail; and the boom jibbed over the
THIS moment my former notions of deliverance darted into my thoughts, for
top of the cabin, which lay very snug and low and had in it room for him to lie, now I found I was like to have a little ship at my command; and my master being
with a slave or two, and a table to eat on, with some small lockers to put in some gone, I prepared to furnish myself, not for a fishing business, but for a voyage;
bottles of such liquor as he thought fit to drink; particularly his bread, rice, and though I knew not, neither did I so much as consider whither I should steer; for
coffee. anywhere to get out of that place was my way.
We went frequently out with this boat a-fishing, and as I was most dexterous My first contrivance was to make a pretence to speak to this Moor, to get
to catch fish for him, he never went without me. It happened that he had something for our subsistence on board; for I told him we must not presume to
appointed to go out in this boat, either for pleasure or for fish, with two or three eat of our patron’s bread; he said that was true; so he brought a large basket of
Moors of some distinction in that place, and for whom he had provided rusk, or biscuit, of their kind and three jars with fresh water into the boat; I knew
extraordinarily; and had therefore sent on board the boat over night a larger store where my patron’s case of bottles stood, which, it was evident by the make, were
of provisions than ordinary; and had ordered me to get ready three fusils with taken out of some English prize; and I conveyed them into the boat while the
powder and shot, which were on board his ship; for that they designed some Moor was on shore, as if they had been there before, for our master. I conveyed
sport of fowling as well as fishing. also a great lump of beeswax into the boat, which weighed above half a
I got all things ready as he had directed, and waited the next morning with the hundredweight, with a parcel of twine or thread, a hatchet, a saw, and a hammer,
boat washed clean, her ancient 2 and pendants out, and everything to all which were of great use to us afterwards; especially the wax to make candles.
accommodate his guests; when by and by my patron came on board alone and Another trick I tried upon him, which he innocently came into also. His name
told me his guests had put off going, upon some business that fell out, and was Ismael, whom they call Muly, or Moley, so I called to him, ‘‘Moley,’’ said I,
ordered me with the man and boy, as usual, to go out with the boat and catch ‘‘our patron’s guns are on board the boat; can you not get a little powder and
them some fish, for that his friends were to sup at his house; and commanded shot? It may be we may kill some alcamies’’ (a fowl like our curlews) ‘‘for
that as soon as I had got some fish I should bring it home to his house; all which ourselves, for I know he keeps the gunner’s stores in the ship.’’ ‘‘Yes,’’ says he,
I prepared to do. ‘‘I’ll bring some’’; and accordingly he brought a great leather pouch, which held
about a pound and a half of powder, or rather more; and another with shot, that
had five or six pound, with some bullets; and put all into the boat. At the same
time I had found some powder of my master’s in the great cabin, with which I
filled one of the large bottles in the case, which was almost empty, pouring what
was in it into another; and thus furnished with everything needful, we sailed out
of the port to fish. The castle, which is at the entrance of the port, knew who we
were, and took no notice of us; and we were not above a mile out of the port
before we hauled in our sail and set us down to fish. The wind blew from the
north-northeast, which was contrary to my desire; for had it blown southerly, I
had been sure to have made the coast of Spain, and at least reached to the bay of
Cadiz; but my resolutions were, blow which way it would, I would be gone from
that horrid place where I was, and leave the rest to Fate.
After we had fished some time and caught nothing (for when I had fish on my
hook I would not pull them up, that he might not see them), I said to the Moor, afternoon, when I first made the land, I could not be less than 150 miles south of
‘‘This will not do, our master will not be thus served, we must stand farther off.’’ Sallee; quite beyond the Emperor of Morocco’s dominions, or indeed of any
He, thinking no harm, agreed, and being in the head of the boat, set the sails; and other king thereabouts, for we saw no people.
as I had the helm, I ran the boat out near a league farther, and then brought her to Yet such was the fright I had taken at the Moors and the dreadful
as if I would fish; when giving the boy the helm, I stepped forward to where the apprehensions I had of falling into their hands, that I would not stop or go on
Moor was, and making as if I stooped for something behind him, I took him by shore or come to an anchor, the wind continuing fair, till I had sailed in that
surprise with my arm under his waist and tossed him clear overboard into the manner five days. And then the wind shifting to the southward, I concluded also
sea; he rose immediately, for he swam like a cork, and called to me, begged to be that if any of our vessels were in chase of me, they also would now give over; so
taken in, told me he would go all over the world with me. He swam so strong I ventured to make to the coast and came to an anchor in the mouth of a little
after the boat that he would have reached me very quickly, there being but little river, I knew not what or where; neither what latitude, what country, what nation,
wind; upon which I stepped into the cabin, and fetching one of the fowling or what river. I neither saw, or desired to see, any people; the principal thing I
pieces, I presented it at him and told him I had done him no hurt, and, if he wanted was fresh water. We came into this creek in the evening, resolving to
would be quiet, I would do him none. ‘‘But,’’ said I, ‘‘you swim well enough to swim on shore as soon as it was dark, and discover the country; but as soon as it
reach the shore, and the sea is calm; make the best of your way to shore, and I was quite dark, we heard such dreadful noises of the barking, roaring, and
will do you no harm; but if you come near the boat, I’ll shoot you through the howling of wild creatures, of we knew not what kinds, that the poor boy was
head; for I am resolved to have my liberty.’’ So he turned himself about and ready to die with fear and begged of me not to go on shore till day. ‘‘Well,
swam for the shore, and I make no doubt but he reached it with ease, for he was Xury,’’ said I, ‘‘then I won’t; but it may be we may see men by day, who will be
an excellent swimmer. as bad to us as those lions.’’ ‘‘Then we give them the shoot gun,’’ says Xury,
I could have been content to have taken this Moor with me and have drowned laughing; ‘‘make them run wey.’’ Such English Xury spoke by conversing
the boy, but there was no venturing to trust him. When he was gone I turned to among us slaves. However, I was glad to see the boy so cheerful, and I gave him
the boy, whom they called Xury, and said to him, ‘‘Xury, if you will be faithful a dram (out of our patron’s case of bottles) to cheer him up. After all, Xury’s
to me, I’ll make you a great man; but if you will not stroke your face to be true advice was good, and I took it. We dropped our little anchor and lay still all
to me,’’ that is, swear by Mahomet and his father’s beard, ‘‘I must throw you into night; I say still, for we slept none; for in two or three hours we saw vast great
the sea too.’’ The boy smiled in my face, and spoke so innocently that I could not creatures (we knew not what to call them) of many sorts come down to the
mistrust him; and swore to be faithful to me and go all over the world with me. seashore and run into the water, wallowing and washing themselves for the
While I was in view of the Moor that was swimming, I stood out directly to pleasure of cooling themselves; and they made such hideous howlings and
sea with the boat, rather stretching to windward, that they might think me gone yellings that I never indeed heard the like.
towards the Straits’ mouth (as indeed anyone that had been in their wits must Xury was dreadfully frighted, and indeed so was I too; but we were both more
have been supposed to do); for who would have supposed we were sailed on to frighted when we heard one of these mighty creatures come swimming towards
the southward to the truly barbarian coast, where whole nations of Negroes were our boat. We could not see him, but we might hear him by his blowing to be a
sure to surround us with their canoes, and destroy us; where we could ne’er once monstrous huge and furious beast. Xury said it was a lion, and it might be so for
go on shore but we should be devoured by savage beasts, or more merciless aught I know; but poor Xury cried to me to weigh the anchor and row away.
savages of human kind? ‘‘No,’’ says I, ‘‘Xury, we can slip our cable with a buoy to it and go off to sea,
But as soon as it grew dusk in the evening, I changed my course, and steered they cannot follow us far.’’ I had no sooner said so but I perceived the creature
directly south and by east, bending my course a little towards the east, that I (whatever it was) within two oars’ length, which something surprised me;
might keep in with the shore; and having a fair, fresh gale of wind and a smooth, however, I immediately stepped to the cabin door, and taking up my gun, fired at
quiet sea, I made such sail that I believe by the next day at three o’clock in the him; upon which he immediately turned about and swam towards the shore
again. islands of the Canaries, and the Cape Verde Islands also, lay not far off from the
But it is impossible to describe the horrible noises and hideous cries and coast. But as I had no instruments to take an observation to know what latitude
howlings that were raised, as well upon the edge of the shore as higher within we were in and did not exactly know, or at least not remember, what latitude
the country, upon the noise or report of the gun, a thing I have some reason to they were in, I knew not where to look for them, or when to stand off to sea
believe those creatures had never heard before. This convinced me that there was towards them; otherwise I might now easily have found some of these islands.
no going on shore for us in the night upon that coast, and how to venture on But my hope was that if I stood along this coast till I came to that part where the
shore in the day was another question too; for to have fallen into the hands of English traded, I should find some of their vessels upon their usual design of
any of the savages had been as bad as to have fallen into the hands of lions and trade, that would relieve and take us in.
tigers; at least we were equally apprehensive of the danger of it. By the best of my calculation, that place where I now was must be that
Be that as it would, we were obliged to go on shore somewhere or other for country, which lying between the Emperor of Morocco’s dominions and the
water, for we had not a pint left in the boat; when or where to get it was the Negroes, lies waste and uninhabited, except by wild beasts; the Negroes having
point. Xury said if I would let him go on shore with one of the jars, he would abandoned it and gone farther south for fear of the Moors, and the Moors not
find if there was any water and bring some to me. I asked him why he would go. thinking it worth inhabiting by reason of its barrenness; and indeed both
Why I should not go and he stay in the boat? The boy answered with so much forsaking it because of the prodigious numbers of tigers, lions, leopards, and
affection that made me love him ever after. Says he, ‘‘If wild mans come, they other furious creatures which harbour there; so that the Moors use it for their
eat me, you go wey.’’ ‘‘Well, Xury,’’ said I, ‘‘we will both go, and if the wild hunting only, where they go like an army, two or three thousand men at a time;
mans come, we will kill them; they shall eat neither of us’’; so I gave Xury a and indeed for near an hundred miles together upon this coast, we saw nothing
piece of rusk bread to eat and a dram out of our patron’s case of bottles, which I but a waste uninhabited country by day, and heard nothing but howlings and
mentioned before, and we hauled the boat in as near the shore as we thought was roarings of wild beasts by night.
proper, and so waded on shore, carrying nothing but our arms and two jars for Once or twice in the daytime, I thought I saw the Pico of Teneriffe, being the
water. high top of the mountain Teneriffe in the Canaries; and had a great mind to
I did not care to go out of sight of the boat, fearing the coming of canoes with venture out in hopes of reaching thither; but having tried twice, I was forced in
savages down the river; but the boy, seeing a low place about a mile up the again by contrary winds, the sea also going too high for my little vessel; so I
country, rambled to it, and by and by I saw him come running towards me; I resolved to pursue my first design, and keep along the shore.
thought he was pursued by some savage, or frighted with some wild beast, and I Several times I was obliged to land for fresh water, after we had left this place;
ran forward towards him to help him; but when I came nearer to him, I saw and once in particular, being early in the morning, we came to an anchor under a
something hanging over his shoulders, which was a creature that he had shot, little point of land which was pretty high, and the tide beginning to flow, we lay
like a hare, but different in colour, and longer legs; however, we were very glad still to go farther in; Xury, whose eyes were more about him than it seems mine
of it, and it was very good meat; but the great joy that poor Xury came with was were, calls softly to me and tells me that we had best go farther off the shore.
to tell me he had found good water and seen no wild mans. ‘‘For,’’ says he, ‘‘look, yonder lies a dreadful monster on the side of that hillock,
But we found afterwards that we need not take such pains for water, for a little fast asleep.’’ I looked where he pointed, and saw a dreadful monster indeed, for
higher up the creek where we were, we found the water fresh when the tide was it was a terrible great lion that lay on the side of the shore, under the shade of a
out, which flows but a little way up; so we filled our jars and feasted on the hare piece of the hill that hung as it were a little over him. ‘‘Xury,’’ says I, ‘‘you shall
we had killed, and prepared to go on our way, having seen no footsteps of any go on shore and kill him.’’ Xury looked frighted, and said, ‘‘Me kill! He eat me
human creature in that part of the country. at one mouth’’; one mouthful he meant. However, I said no more to the boy, but
As I had been one voyage to this coast before, I knew very well that the bade him be still, and I took our biggest gun, which was almost musket-bore,
and loaded it with a good charge of powder, and with two slugs, and laid it
down; then I loaded another gun with two bullets; and the third (for we had three When I had pursued this resolution about ten days longer, as I have said, I
pieces) I loaded with five smaller bullets. I took the best aim I could with the began to see that the land was inhabited, and in two or three places, as we sailed
first piece to have shot him into the head; but he lay so with his leg raised a little by, we saw people stand upon the shore to look at us; we could also perceive
above his nose, that the slugs hit his leg about the knee, and broke the bone. He they were quite black and stark naked. I was once inclined to have gone on shore
started up growling at first, but, finding his leg broke, fell down again, and then to them; but Xury was my better counsellor and said to me, ‘‘No go, no go.’’
got up upon three legs, and gave the most hideous roar that ever I heard. I was a However, I hauled in nearer the shore that I might talk to them, and I found they
little surprised that I had not hit him on the head; however, I took up the second ran along the shore by me a good way. I observed they had no weapons in their
piece immediately, and though he began to move off, fired again, and shot him hands, except one, who had a long slender stick, which Xury said was a lance,
into the head, and had the pleasure to see him drop and make but little noise, but and that they would throw them a great way with good aim; so I kept at a
lay struggling for life. Then Xury took heart, and would have me let him go on distance, but talked with them by signs as well as I could, and particularly made
shore. ‘‘Well, go,’’ said I, so the boy jumped into the water, and taking a little signs for something to eat. They beckoned to me to stop my boat, and they
gun in one hand, swam to shore with the other hand, and coming close to the would fetch me some meat; upon this I lowered the top of my sail and lay by,
creature, put the muzzle of the piece to his ear, and shot him into the head again, and two of them ran up into the country, and in less than half an hour came back
which dispatched him quite. and brought with them two pieces of dry flesh and some corn,3 such as is the
This was game indeed to us, but this was no food; and I was very sorry to lose produce of their country; but we neither knew what the one or the other was;
three charges of powder and shot upon a creature that was good for nothing to however, we were willing to accept it. But how to come at it was our next
us. However, Xury said he would have some of him; so he comes on board and dispute; for I was not for venturing on shore to them, and they were as much
asked me to give him the hatchet. ‘‘For what, Xury?’’ said I. ‘‘Me cut off his afraid of us; but they took a safe way for us all, for they brought it to the shore
head,’’ said he. However, Xury could not cut off his head, but he cut off a foot and laid it down, and went and stood a great way off till we fetched it on board,
and brought it with him, and it was a monstrous great one. and then came close to us again.
I bethought myself, however, that perhaps the skin of him might one way or We made signs of thanks to them, for we had nothing to make them amends;
other be of some value to us; and I resolved to take off his skin if I could. So but an opportunity offered that very instant to oblige them wonderfully; for
Xury and I went to work with him; but Xury was much the better workman at it, while we were lying by the shore, came two mighty creatures, one pursuing the
for I knew very ill how to do it. Indeed it took us up both the whole day, but at other (as we took it) with great fury from the mountains towards the sea; whether
last we got off the hide of him, and spreading it on the top of our cabin, the sun it was the male pursuing the female, or whether they were in sport or in rage, we
effectually dried it in two days’ time, and it afterwards served me to lie upon. could not tell, any more than we could tell whether it was usual or strange, but I
After this stop, we made on to the southward continually for ten or twelve believe it was the latter; because in the first place, those ravenous creatures
days, living very sparing on our provisions, which began to abate very much, seldom appear but in the night; and in the second place, we found the people
and going no oftener in to the shore than we were obliged to for fresh water; my terribly frighted, especially the women. The man that had the lance or dart did
design in this was to make the river Gambia or Senegal, that is to say, anywhere not fly from them, but the rest did; however, as the two creatures ran directly
about the Cape Verde, where I was in hopes to meet with some European ship, into the water, they did not seem to offer to fall upon any of the Negroes,but
and if I did not, I knew not what course I had to take, but to seek out for the plunged themselves into the sea, and swam about as if they had come for their
islands, or perish there among the Negroes. I knew that all the ships from Europe diversion; at last one of them began to come nearer our boat than at first I
which sailed either to the coast of Guinea or to Brazil or to the East Indies made expected; but I lay ready for him, for I had loaded my gun with all possible
this cape or those islands; and in a word, I put the whole of my fortune upon this expedition, and bade Xury load both the others; as soon as he came fairly within
single point, either that I must meet with some ship or must perish. my reach, I fired and shot him directly into the head; immediately he sunk down
into the water, but rose instantly and plunged up and down as if he was
struggling for life, and so indeed he was; he immediately made to the shore, but Verde and those the islands, called from thence Cape Verde Islands. However,
between the wound, which was his mortal hurt, and the strangling of the water, they were at a great distance, and I could not well tell what I had best to do; for
he died just before he reached the shore. if I should be taken with a fresh of wind, I might neither reach one or other.
It is impossible to express the astonishment of these poor creatures at the In this dilemma, as I was very pensive, I stepped into the cabin and sat me
noise and the fire of my gun; some of them were even ready to die for fear, and down, Xury having the helm, when on a sudden the boy cried out, ‘‘Master,
fell down as dead with the very terror. But when they saw the creature dead and master, a ship with a sail!’’ and the foolish boy was frighted out of his wits,
sunk in the water, and that I made signs to them to come to the shore, they took thinking it must needs be some of his master’s ships sent to pursue us, when I
heart and came to the shore, and began to search for the creature. I found him by knew we were gotten far enough out of their reach. I jumped out of the cabin,
his blood staining the water, and by the help of a rope which I flung round him and immediately saw, not only the ship, but what she was, viz., that it was a
and gave the Negroes to haul, they dragged him on shore, and found that it was a Portuguese ship, and, as I thought, was bound to the coast of Guinea for
most curious leopard, spotted and fine to an admirable degree, and the Negroes Negroes. But when I observed the course she steered, I was soon convinced they
held up their hands with admiration to think what it was I had killed him with. were bound some other way, and did not design to come any nearer to the shore;
The other creature, frighted with the flash of fire and the noise of the gun, upon which I stretched out to sea as much as I could, resolving to speak with
swam on shore, and ran up directly to the mountains from whence they came, them if possible.
nor could I at that distance know what it was. I found quickly the Negroes were With all the sail I could make, I found I should not be able to come in their
for eating the flesh of this creature, so I was willing to have them take it as a way, but that they would be gone by before I could make any signal to them; but
favour from me, which, when I made signs to them that they might take him, after I had crowded to the utmost and began to despair, they, it seems, saw me by
they were very thankful for. Immediately they fell to work with him; and though the help of their perspective-glasses, and that it was some European boat, which
they had no knife, yet with a sharpened piece of wood they took off his skin as as they supposed must belong to some ship that was lost; so they shortened sail
readily and much more readily than we could have done with a knife; they to let me come up. I was encouraged with this, and as I had my patron’s ancient
offered me some of the flesh, which I declined, making as if I would give it to on board, I made a waft of it to them for a signal of distress, and fired a gun,
them, but made signs for the skin, which they gave me very freely, and brought both which they saw, for they told me they saw the smoke, though they did not
me a great deal more of their provision, which though I did not understand, yet I hear the gun; upon these signals they very kindly brought to and lay by for me,
accepted; then I made signs to them for some water and held out one of my jars and in about three hours’ time I came up with them.
to them, turning it bottom upward, to show that it was empty, and that I wanted They asked me what I was, in Portuguese and in Spanish and in French, but I
to have it filled. They called immediately to some of their friends, and there understood none of them; but at last a Scots sailor who was on board called to
came two women and brought a great vessel made of earth, and burnt, as I me, and I answered him and told him I was an Englishman, that I had made my
suppose, in the sun; this they set down for me as before, and I sent Xury on escape out of slavery from the Moors at Sallee; then they bade me come on
shore with my jars and filled them all three. The women were as stark naked as board and very kindly took me in, and all my goods.
the men. It was an inexpressible joy to me that anyone will believe that I was thus
I was now furnished with roots and corn, such as it was, and water, and delivered, as I esteemed it, from such a miserable and almost hopeless condition
leaving my friendly Negroes, I made forward for about eleven days more as I was in, and I immediately offered all I had to the captain of the ship as a
without offering to go near the shore, till I saw the land run out at a great length return for my deliverance; but he generously told me he would take nothing from
into the sea, at about the distance of four or five leagues before me, and the sea me, but that all I had should be delivered safe to me when I came to Brazil.
being very calm, I kept a large offing to make this point; at length, doubling the ‘‘For,’’ says he, ‘‘I have saved your life on no other terms than I would be glad to
point at about two leagues from the land, I saw plainly land on the other side, to be saved myself, and it may one time or other be my lot to be taken up in the
seaward; then I concluded, as it was most certain indeed, that this was the Cape
same condition; besides,’’ said he, ‘‘when I carry you to Brazil, so great a way
from your own country, if I should take from you what you have, you will be I Become a Brazilian Planter
starved there, and then I only take away that life I have given. No, no, Seignior
WE HAD a very good voyage to Brazil and arrived in the Bay de Todos los
Inglese,’’ says he [Mr. Englishman] , ‘‘I will carry you thither in charity, and Santos, or All Saints’ Bay, in about twenty-two days after. And now I was once
those things will help you to buy your subsistence there and your passage home more delivered from the most miserable of all conditions of life, and what to do
again.’’ next with myself I was now to consider.
As he was charitable in his proposal, so he was just in the performance to a
The generous treatment the captain gave me I can never enough remember; he
tittle, for he ordered the seamen that none should offer to touch anything I had; would take nothing of me for my passage, gave me twenty ducats for the
then he took everything into his own possession and gave me back an exact leopard’s skin, and forty for the lion’s skin which I had in my boat, and caused
inventory of them, that I might have them, even so much as my three earthen everything I had in the ship to be punctually delivered to me; and what I was
jars. willing to sell he bought, such as the case of bottles, two of my guns, and a piece
As to my boat, it was a very good one, and that he saw, and told me he would of the lump of beeswax, for I had made candles of the rest; in a word, I made
buy it of me for the ship’s use and asked me what I would have for it. I told him about 220 pieces of eight of all my cargo, and with this stock I went on shore in
he had been so generous to me in everything that I could not offer to make any Brazil.
price of the boat but left it entirely to him, upon which he told me he would give
I had not been long here, but being recommended to the house of a good
me a note of his hand to pay me eighty pieces of eight for it at Brazil, and when honest man like himself, who had an ingenio, as they call it, that is, a plantation
it came there, if anyone offered to give more, he would make it up; he offered and a sugarhouse, I lived with him some time and acquainted myself by that
me also sixty pieces of eight more for my boy Xury, which I was loath to take, means with the manner of their planting and making of sugar; and seeing how
not that I was not willing to let the captain have him, but I was very loath to sell well the planters lived and how they grew rich suddenly, I resolved, if I could get
the poor boy’s liberty who had assisted me so faithfully in procuring my own. licence to settle there, I would turn planter among them, resolving in the
However, when I let him know my reason, he owned it to be just and offered me meantime to find out some way to get my money which I had left in London
this medium, that he would give the boy an obligation to set him free in ten years remitted to me. To this purpose, getting a kind of a letter of naturalization, I
if he turned Christian; upon this, and Xury saying he was willing to go to him, I
purchased as much land that was uncured as my money would reach, and formed
let the captain have him. a plan for my plantation and settlement, and such a one as might be suitable to
the stock which I proposed to myself to receive from England.
I had a neighbour, a Portuguese of Lisbon, but born of English parents, whose
name was Wells, and in much such circumstances as I was. I call him neighbour,
because his plantation lay next to mine and we went on very sociably together.
My stock was but low, as well as his; and we rather planted for food than
anything else for about two years. However, we began to increase, and our land
began to come into order; so that the third year we planted some tobacco and
made each of us a large piece of ground ready for planting canes in the year to
come; but we both wanted help, and now I found, more than before, I had done
wrong in parting with my boy Xury.
But alas! for me to do wrong that never did right was no great wonder: I had
no remedy but to go on; I was gotten into an employment quite remote to my
genius and directly contrary to the life I delighted in and for which I forsook my Portuguese captain, as he desired.
father’s house and broke through all his good advice; nay, I was coming into the I wrote the English captain’s widow a full account of all my adventures, my
very middle station, or upper degree of low life, which my father advised me to slavery, escape, and how I had met with the Portugal captain at sea, the humanity
before, and which, if I resolved to go on with, I might as well have stayed at of his behaviour, and in what condition I was now in, with all other necessary
home and never have fatigued myself in the world as I had done; and I used directions for my supply; and when this honest captain came to Lisbon, he found
often to say to myself, I could have done this as well in England among my means by some of the English merchants there to send over not the order only,
friends as have gone five thousand miles off to do it among strangers and but a full account of my story to a merchant at London, who represented it
savages in a wilderness, and at such a distance as never to hear from any part of effectually to her; whereupon she not only delivered the money but out of her
the world that had the least knowledge of me. own pocket sent the Portugal captain a very handsome present for his humanity
In this manner I used to look upon my condition with the utmost regret. I had and charity to me.
nobody to converse with but now and then this neighbour; no work to be done, The merchant in London vesting this hundred pounds in English goods, such
but by the labour of my hands; and I used to say, I lived just like a man cast as the captain had writ for, sent them directly to him at Lisbon, and he brought
away upon some desolate island that had nobody there but himself. But how just them all safe to me to Brazil; among which, without my direction (for I was too
has it been, and how should all men reflect, that when they compare their present young in my business to think of them), he had taken care to have all sorts of
conditions with others that are worse, Heaven may oblige them to make the tools, ironwork, and utensils necessary for my plantation, and which were of
exchange and be convinced of their former felicity by their experience. I say, great use to me.
how just has it been, that the truly solitary life I reflected on in an island of mere When this cargo arrived, I thought my fortune made, for I was surprised with
desolation should be my lot, who had so often unjustly compared it with the life the joy of it; and my good steward, the captain, had laid out the five pounds
which I then led, in which had I continued, I had in all probability been which my friend had sent him for a present for himself, to purchase and bring me
exceeding prosperous and rich. over a servant under bond for six years’ service, and would not accept of any
I was in some degree settled in my measures for carrying on the plantation, consideration, except a little tobacco which I would have him accept, being of
before my kind friend, the captain of the ship that took me up at sea, went back; my own produce.
for the ship remained there in providing his loading, and preparing for his Neither was this all; but my goods being all English manufactures, such as
voyage, near three months; when, telling him what little stock I had left behind cloth, stuff, baize, and things particularly valuable and desirable in the country, I
me in London, he gave me this friendly and sincere advice. ‘‘Seignior Inglese,’’ found means to sell them to a very great advantage; so that I may say I had more
says he, for so he always called me, ‘‘if you will give me letters, and a than four times the value of my first cargo, and was now infinitely beyond my
procuration here in form to me, with orders to the person who has your money in poor neighbour, I mean in the advancement of my plantation; for the first thing I
London, to send your effects to Lisbon, to such persons as I shall direct, and in did, I bought me a Negro slave and an European servant also; I mean another
such goods as are proper for this country, I will bring you the produce of them, besides that which the captain brought me from Lisbon.
God willing, at my return; but since human affairs are all subject to changes and
But as abused prosperity is oftentimes made the very means of our greatest
disasters, I would have you give orders but for one hundred pounds sterling,
adversity, so was it with me. I went on the next year with great success in my
which you say is half your stock, and let the hazard be run for the first; so that if
plantation. I raised fifty great rolls of tobacco on my own ground, more than I
it come safe, you may order the rest the same way; and if it miscarry, you may
had disposed of for necessaries among my neighbours; and these fifty rolls,
have the other half to have recourse to for your supply.’’
being each of above a hundredweight, were well cured and laid by against the
This was so wholesome advice and looked so friendly that I could not but be return of the fleet from Lisbon. And now increasing in business and in wealth,
convinced it was the best course I could take; so I accordingly prepared letters to my head began to be full of projects and undertakings beyond my reach; such as
the gentlewoman with whom I had left my money and a procuration to the
are indeed often the ruin of the best heads in business. acquaintance and talking of those things very earnestly, three of them came to
Had I continued in the station I was now in, I had room for all the happy me the next morning and told me they had been musing very much upon what I
things to have yet befallen me, for which my father so earnestly recommended a had discoursed with them of, the last night, and they came to make a secret
quiet, retired life, and of which he had so sensibly described the middle station proposal to me; and after enjoining me secrecy, they told me that they had a
of life to be full of; but other things attended me, and I was still to be the wilful mind to fit out a ship to go to Guinea; that they had all plantations as well as I,
agent of all my own miseries; and particularly to increase my fault and double and were straitened for nothing so much as servants; that as it was a trade that
the reflections upon myself, which in my future sorrows I should have leisure to could not be carried on, because they could not publicly sell the Negroes when
make; all these miscarriages were procured by my apparent obstinate adhering to they came home, so they desired to make but one voyage, to bring the Negroes
my foolish inclination of wandering abroad, and pursuing that inclination, in on shore privately, and divide them among their own plantations; and in a word,
contradiction to the clearest views of doing myself good in a fair and plain the question was whether I would go their supercargo in the ship to manage the
pursuit of those prospects and those measures of life which Nature and trading part upon the coast of Guinea. And they offered me that I should have
Providence concurred to present me with and to make my duty. my equal share of the Negroes without providing any part of the stock.
As I had once done thus in my breaking away from my parents, so I could not This was a fair proposal, it must be confessed, had it been made to anyone that
be content now but I must go and leave the happy view I had of being a rich and had not had a settlement and plantation of his own to look after which was in a
thriving man in my new plantation, only to pursue a rash and immoderate desire fair way of coming to be very considerable and with a good stock upon it. But
of rising faster than the nature of the thing admitted; and thus I cast myself down for me that was thus entered and established and had nothing to do but go on as I
again into the deepest gulf of human misery that ever man fell into, or perhaps had begun for three or four years more, and to have sent for the other hundred
could be consistent with life and a state of health in the world. pounds from England, and who in that time, and with that little addition, could
To come then by just degrees to the particulars of this part of my story; you scarce have failed of being worth three or four thousand pounds sterling, and that
may suppose that, having now lived almost four years in Brazil and beginning to increasing too; for me to think of such a voyage was the most preposterous thing
thrive and prosper very well upon my plantation, I had not only learned the that ever man in such circumstances could be guilty of.
language, but had contracted acquaintance and friendship among my fellow
planters, as well as among the merchants at Sao Salvador, which was our port;
and that in my discourse among them, I had frequently given them an account of
my two voyages to the coast of Guinea, the manner of trading with the Negroes
there, and how easy it was to purchase upon the coast, for trifles (such as beads,
toys, knives, scissors, hatchets, bits of glass, and the like), not only gold dust,
Guinea grains, elephants’ teeth, etc., but Negroes for the service of Brazil, in
great numbers.
They listened always very attentively to my discourses on these heads, but
especially to that part which related to the buying Negroes, which was a trade at
that time not only not far entered into, but, as far as it was, had been carried on
by the assientos, or permission, of the kings of Spain and Portugal, and
engrossed in the public; so that few Negroes were bought, and those excessive
dear.
It happened, being in company with some merchants and planters of my
steered as if we were bound for the Isle Fernando de Noronha, holding our
I Go on Board in an Evil Hour course northeast by north and leaving those isles on the east. In this course we
passed the line in about twelve days’ time, and were by our last observation in
BUT I that was born to be my own destroyer could no more resist the offer than I
seven degrees twenty-two minutes northern latitude, when a violent tornado, or
could restrain my first rambling designs, when my father’s good counsel was lost
hurricane, took us quite out of our knowledge; it began from the southeast, came
upon me. In a word, I told them I would go with all my heart, if they would
about to the northwest, and then settled into the northeast, from whence it blew
undertake to look after my plantation in my absence and would dispose of it to
in such a terrible manner that for twelve days together we could do nothing but
such as I should direct, if I miscarried. This they all engaged to do, and entered
drive and, scudding away before it, let it carry us whither ever fate and the fury
into writings, or covenants, to do so; and I made a formal will, disposing of my
of the winds directed; and during these twelve days, I need not say that I
plantation and effects, in case of my death, making the captain of the ship that
expected every day to be swallowed up, nor indeed did any in the ship expect to
had saved my life, as before, my universal heir, but obliging him to dispose of
save their lives.
my effects as I had directed in my will, one half of the produce being to himself
and the other to be shipped to England. In this distress we had, besides the terror of the storm, one of our men died of
the calenture, and one man and the boy washed overboard. About the twelfth
In short, I took all possible caution to preserve my effects and to keep up my
day, the weather abating a little, the master made an observation as well as he
plantation; had I used half as much prudence to have looked into my own
could, and found that he was in about eleven degrees north latitude, but that he
interest and have made a judgment of what I ought to have done and not to have
was twenty-two degrees of longitude difference west from Cape St. Augustino;
done, I had certainly never gone away from so prosperous an undertaking,
so that he found he was gotten upon the coast of Guiana, or the north part of
leaving all the probable views of a thriving circumstance and gone upon a
Brazil, beyond the river Amazones, toward that of the river Orinoco, commonly
voyage to sea, attended with all its common hazards; to say nothing of the
called the Great River, and began to consult with me what course he should take,
reasons I had to expect particular misfortunes to myself.
for the ship was leaky and very much disabled and he was going directly back to
But I was hurried on and obeyed blindly the dictates of my fancy rather than the coast of Brazil.
my reason; and accordingly, the ship being fitted out and the cargo furnished,
I was positively against that, and looking over the charts of the seacoast of
and all things done as by agreement by my partners in the voyage, I went on
America with him, we concluded there was no inhabited country for us to have
board in an evil hour, the 1st of September, 1659, being the same day eight years
recourse to till we came within the circle of the Caribbee Islands and therefore
that I went from my father and mother at Hull, in order to act the rebel to their
resolved to stand away for Barbados, which by keeping off at sea, to avoid the
authority and the fool to my own interest.
indraught of the Bay or Gulf of Mexico, we might easily perform, as we hoped,
Our ship was about 120 tons burden, carried six guns and fourteen men, in about fifteen days’ sail; whereas we could not possibly make our voyage to
besides the master, his boy, and myself; we had on board no large cargo of the coast of Africa without some assistance both to our ship and to ourselves.
goods, except of such toys as were fit for our trade with the Negroes, such as
With this design we changed our course and steered away northwest by west
beads, bits of glass, shells, and odd trifles, especially little looking-glasses,
in order to reach some of our English islands, where I hoped for relief; but our
knives, scissors, hatchets, and the like.
voyage was otherwise determined, for being in the latitude of twelve degrees
The same day I went on board we set sail, standing away to the northward eighteen minutes, a second storm came upon us, which carried us away with the
upon our own coast, with design to stretch over for the African coast, when they same impetuosity westward and drove us so out of the very way of all human
came about ten or twelve degrees of northern latitude, which it seems was the commerce, that had all our lives been saved as to the sea, we were rather in
manner of their course in those days. We had very good weather, only excessive danger of being devoured by savages than ever returning to our own country.
hot, all the way upon our own coast till we came the height of Cape St.
In this distress, the wind still blowing very hard, one of our men early in the
Augustino, from whence keeping farther off at sea, we lost sight of land and
morning cried out, ‘‘Land!’’; and we had no sooner run out of the cabin to look drowned. As to making sail, we had none; nor, if we had, could we have done
out in hopes of seeing whereabouts in the world we were but the ship struck anything with it; so we worked at the oar towards the land, though with heavy
upon a sand, and in a moment, her motion being so stopped, the sea broke over hearts, like men going to execution; for we all knew that when the boat came
her in such a manner that we expected we should all have perished immediately; nearer the shore, she would be dashed in a thousand pieces by the breach of the
and we were immediately driven into our close quarters to shelter us from the sea. However, we committed our souls to God in the most earnest manner, and
very foam and spray of the sea. the wind driving us towards the shore, we hastened our destruction with our own
It is not easy for anyone who has not been in the like condition to describe or hands, pulling as well as we could towards land.
conceive the consternation of men in such circumstances; we knew nothing What the shore was, whether rock or sand, whether steep or shoal, we knew
where we were or upon what land it was we were driven, whether an island or not; the only hope that could rationally give us the least shadow of expectation
the main, whether inhabited or not inhabited; and as the rage of the wind was was if we might happen into some bay or gulf, or the mouth of some river, where
still great though rather less than at first, we could not so much as hope to have by great chance we might have run our boat in, or got under the lee of the land,
the ship hold many minutes without breaking in pieces unless the winds by a and perhaps made smooth water. But there was nothing of this appeared; but as
kind of miracle should turn immediately about. In a word, we sat looking one we made nearer and nearer the shore, the land looked more frightful than the sea.
upon another and expecting death every moment, and every man acting After we had rowed, or rather driven, about a league and a half, as we
accordingly, as preparing for another world, for there was little or nothing more reckoned it, a raging wave, mountainlike, came rolling astern of us and plainly
for us to do in this; that which was our present comfort, and all the comfort we bade us expect the coup de grâce. In a word, it took us with such a fury that it
had, was that, contrary to our expectation, the ship did not break yet and that the overset the boat at once; and separating us as well from the boat as from one
master said the wind began to abate. another, gave us not time hardly to say, "O God!’’ for we were all swallowed up
Now though we thought that the wind did a little abate, yet the ship having in a moment.
thus struck upon the sand, and sticking too fast for us to expect her getting off, Nothing can describe the confusion of thought which I felt when I sunk into
we were in a dreadful condition indeed, and had nothing to do but to think of the water; for though I swam very well, yet I could not deliver myself from the
saving our lives as well as we could; we had a boat at our stern just before the waves so as to draw breath, till that wave having driven me, or rather carried me,
storm, but she was first staved by dashing against the ship’s rudder, and in the a vast way on towards the shore and, having spent itself, went back, and left me
next place she broke away and either sank or was driven off to sea, so there was upon the land almost dry, but half dead with the water I took in. I had so much
no hope from her; we had another boat on board, but how to get her off into the presence of mind as well as breath left, that seeing myself nearer the mainland
sea was a doubtful thing; however, there was no room to debate, for we fancied than I expected, I got upon my feet, and endeavoured to make on towards the
the ship would break in pieces every minute, and some told us she was actually land as fast as I could, before another wave should return and take me up again.
broken already. But I soon found it was impossible to avoid it; for I saw the sea come after me as
In this distress the mate of our vessel lays hold of the boat, and with the help high as a great hill, and as furious as an enemy, which I had no means or strength
of the rest of the men, they got her slung over the ship’s side and, getting all into to contend with; my business was to hold my breath and raise myself upon the
her, let go and committed ourselves, being eleven in number, to God’s mercy and water, if I could, and so by swimming to preserve my breathing and pilot myself
the wild sea; for though the storm was abated considerably, yet the sea went towards the shore, if possible; my greatest concern now being that the sea, as it
dreadful high upon the shore, and might well be called den wild zee, as the would carry me a great way towards the shore when it came on, might not carry
Dutch call the sea in a storm. me back again with it when it gave back towards the sea.
And now our case was very dismal indeed; for we all saw plainly that the sea The wave that came upon me again, buried me at once twenty or thirty feet
went so high that the boat could not live and that we should be inevitably deep in its own body; and I could feel myself carried with a mighty force and
swiftness towards the shore a very great way; but I held my breath and assisted I walked about on the shore, lifting up my hands, and my whole being, as I
myself to swim still forward with all my might. I was ready to burst with holding may say, wrapped up in the contemplation of my deliverance, making a thousand
my breath, when, as I felt myself rising up, so, to my immediate relief, I found gestures and motions which I cannot describe, reflecting upon all my comrades
my head and hands shoot out above the surface of the water; and though it was that were drowned and that there should not be one soul saved but myself; for, as
not two seconds of time that I could keep myself so, yet it relieved me greatly, for them, I never saw them afterwards, or any sign of them, except three of their
gave me breath and new courage. I was covered again with water a good while, hats, one cap, and two shoes that were not fellows.
but not so long but I held it out; and finding the water had spent itself and began I cast my eyes to the stranded vessel, when, the breach and froth of the sea
to return, I struck forward against the return of the waves, and felt ground again being so big, I could hardly see it, it lay so far off, and considered, Lord! how
with my feet. I stood still a few moments to recover breath, and till the water was it possible I could get on shore!
went from me, and then took to my heels, and run with what strength I had
After I had solaced my mind with the comfortable part of my condition, I
farther towards the shore. But neither would this deliver me from the fury of the
began to look round me to see what kind of place I was in, and what was next to
sea, which came pouring in after me again, and twice more I was lifted up by the
be done, and I soon found my comforts abate, and that, in a word, I had a
waves, and carried forwards as before, the shore being very flat.
dreadful deliverance. For I was wet, had no clothes to shift me, nor anything
The last time of these two had well near been fatal to me; for the sea, having either to eat or drink to comfort me, neither did I see any prospect before me but
hurried me along as before, landed me, or rather dashed me, against a piece of a that of perishing with hunger or being devoured by wild beasts; and that which
rock, and that with such force as it left me senseless, and indeed helpless, as to was particular afflicting to me was that I had no weapon either to hunt and kill
my own deliverance; for the blow, taking my side and breast, beat the breath as it any creature for my sustenance or to defend myself against any other creature
were quite out of my body; and had it returned again immediately, I must have that might desire to kill me for theirs. In a word, I had nothing about me but a
been strangled in the water; but I recovered a little before the return of the knife, a tobacco-pipe, and a little tobacco in a box; this was all my provision, and
waves, and seeing I should be covered again with the water, I resolved to hold this threw me into terrible agonies of mind, that for a while I ran about like a
fast by a piece of the rock, and so to hold my breath, if possible, till the wave madman. Night coming upon me, I began with a heavy heart to consider what
went back; now as the waves were not so high as at first, being near land, I held would be my lot if there were any ravenous beasts in that country, seeing at night
my hold till the wave abated, and then fetched another run, which brought me so they always come abroad for their prey.
near the shore that the next wave, though it went over me, yet did not so swallow
All the remedy that offered to my thoughts at that time was to get up into a
me up as to carry me away, and the next run I took, I got to the mainland, where,
thick bushy tree like a fir, but thorny, which grew near me, and where I resolved
to my great comfort, I clambered up the cliffs to the shore and sat me down upon
to sit all night, and consider the next day what death I should die, for as yet I saw
the grass, free from danger, and quite out of the reach of the water.
no prospect of life; I walked about a furlong from the shore, to see if I could find
I was now landed and safe on shore, and began to look up and thank God that any fresh water to drink, which I did, to my great joy; and having drunk, and put
my life was saved in a case wherein there was some minutes before scarce any a little tobacco in my mouth to prevent hunger, I went to the tree, and getting up
room to hope. I believe it is impossible to express to the life what the ecstasies into it, endeavoured to place myself so as that if I should sleep I might not fall;
and transports of the soul are when it is so saved, as I may say, out of the very and having cut me a short stick, like a truncheon, for my defence, I took up my
grave; and I do not wonder now at that custom, viz., that when a malefactor who lodging, and having been excessively fatigued, I fell fast asleep, and slept as
has the halter about his neck is tied up and just going to be turned off, and has a comfortably as, I believe, few could have done in my condition, and found
reprieve brought to him: I say, I do not wonder that they bring a surgeon with it, myself the most refreshed with it that I think I ever was on such an occasion.
to let him blood that very moment they tell him of it, that the surprise may not
drive the animal spirits from the heart, and overwhelm him:
For sudden joys, like griefs, confound at first.
dry and untouched by the water, and being very well disposed to eat, I went to
I Furnish Myself with Many Things the bread-room and filled my pockets with biscuit, and ate it as I went about
other things, for I had no time to lose; I also found some rum in the great cabin,
WHEN I waked it was broad day, the weather clear, and the storm abated, so that
of which I took a large dram, and which I had indeed need enough of to spirit me
the sea did not rage and swell as before. But that which surprised me most was
for what was before me. Now I wanted nothing but a boat to furnish myself with
that the ship was lifted off in the night from the sand where she lay, by the
many things which I foresaw would be very necessary to me.
swelling of the tide, and was driven up almost as far as the rock which I first
mentioned, where I had been so bruised by the dashing me against it; this being It was in vain to sit still and wish for what was not to be had, and this
within about a mile from the shore where I was and the ship seeming to stand extremity roused my application. We had several spare yards and two or three
upright still, I wished myself on board, that, at least, I might save some large spars of wood and a spare topmast or two in the ship; I resolved to fall to
necessary things for my use. work with these and flung as many of them overboard as I could manage for
their weight, tying every one with a rope that they might not drive away; when
When I came down from my apartment in the tree, I looked about me again,
this was done I went down the ship’s side, and pulling them to me, I tied four of
and the first thing I found was the boat, which lay as the wind and the sea had
them fast together at both ends as well as I could, in the form of a raft, and
tossed her up upon the land, about two miles on my right hand. I walked as far as
laying two or three short pieces of plank upon them crossways, I found I could
I could upon the shore to have got to her, but found a neck or inlet of water
walk upon it very well, but that it was not able to bear any great weight, the
between me and the boat, which was about half a mile broad; so I came back for
pieces being too light; so I went to work, and with the carpenter’s saw I cut a
the present, being more intent upon getting at the ship, where I hoped to find
spare topmast into three lengths and added them to my raft, with a great deal of
something for my present subsistence.
labour and pains; but the hope of furnishing myself with necessaries encouraged
A little after noon I found the sea very calm and the tide ebbed so far out that I me to go beyond what I should have been able to have done upon another
could come within a quarter of a mile of the ship; and here I found a fresh occasion.
renewing of my grief, for I saw evidently that if we had kept on board, we had
My raft was now strong enough to bear any reasonable weight; my next care
been all safe, that is to say, we had all got safe on shore, and I had not been so
was what to load it with and how to preserve what I laid upon it from the surf of
miserable as to be left entirely destitute of all comfort and company, as I now
the sea; but I was not long considering this; I first laid all the planks or boards
was: this forced tears from my eyes again, but as there was little relief in that, I
upon it that I could get, and having considered well what I most wanted, I first
resolved, if possible, to get to the ship; so I pulled off my clothes, for the weather
got three of the seamen’s chests, which I had broken open and emptied, and
was hot to extremity, and took the water; but when I came to the ship, my
lowered them down upon my raft; the first of these I filled with provisions, viz.,
difficulty was still greater to know how to get on board, for as she lay aground,
bread, rice, three Dutch cheeses, five pieces of dried goat’s flesh, which we lived
and high out of the water, there was nothing within my reach to lay hold of; I
much upon, and a little remainder of European corn which had been laid by for
swam round her twice, and the second time I spied a small piece of a rope, which
some fowls which we brought to sea with us, but the fowls were killed; there had
I wondered I did not see at first, hang down by the fore-chains so low as that
been some barley and wheat together, but, to my great disappointment, I found
with great difficulty I got hold of it, and by the help of that rope got up into the
afterwards that the rats had eaten or spoiled it all. As for liquors, I found several
forecastle of the ship. Here I found that the ship was bulged, and had a great deal
cases of bottles belonging to our skipper, in which were some cordial waters, and
of water in her hold, but that she lay so on the side of a bank of hard sand, or
in all about five or six gallons of sack; these I stowed by themselves, there being
rather earth, that her stern lay lifted up upon the bank and her head low almost to
no need to put them into the chest, nor no room for them. While I was doing this,
the water; by this means all her quarter was free, and all that was in that part was
I found the tide began to flow, though very calm, and I had the mortification to
dry; for you may be sure my first work was to search and to see what was
see my coat, shirt, and waistcoat, which I had left on shore upon the sand, swim
spoiled and what was free; and first I found that all the ship’s provisions were
away; as for my breeches, which were only linen, and open-kneed, I swam on
board in them, and my stockings. However, this put me upon rummaging for little more upon a level; and a little after, the water still rising, my raft floated
clothes, of which I found enough, but took no more than I wanted for present again, and I thrust her off with the oar I had, into the channel, and then driving
use, for I had other things which my eye was more upon, as first, tools to work up higher, I at length found myself in the mouth of a little river, with land on
with on shore; and it was after long searching that I found out the carpenter’s both sides, and a strong current or tide running up; I looked on both sides for a
chest, which was indeed a very useful prize to me, and much more valuable than proper place to get to shore, for I was not willing to be driven too high up the
a shiploading of gold would have been at that time; I got it down to my raft, even river, hoping in time to see some ship at sea and therefore resolved to place
whole as it was, without losing time to look into it, for I knew in general what it myself as near the coast as I could.
contained. At length I spied a little cove on the right shore of the creek, to which with
My next care was for some ammunition and arms; there were two very good great pain and difficulty I guided my raft, and at last got so near as that, reaching
fowling pieces in the great cabin, and two pistols; these I secured first, with ground with my oar, I could thrust her directly in; but here I had like to have
some powder horns, and a small bag of shot, and two old rusty swords; I knew dipped all my cargo in the sea again; for that shore lying pretty steep, that is to
there were three barrels of powder in the ship, but knew not where our gunner say, sloping, there was no place to land, but where one end of my float, if it run
had stowed them, but with much search I found them, two of them dry and good, on shore, would lie so high and the other sink lower as before, that it would
the third had taken water; those two I got to my raft with the arms. And now I endanger my cargo again. All that I could do was to wait till the tide was at the
thought myself pretty well freighted, and began to think how I should get to highest, keeping the raft with my oar like an anchor to hold the side of it fast to
shore with them, having neither sail, oar, or rudder; and the least capful of wind the shore, near a flat piece of ground, which I expected the water would flow
would have overset all my navigation. over; and so it did. As soon as I found water enough (for my raft drew about a
I had three encouragements: 1. A smooth, calm sea. 2. The tide rising and foot of water), I thrust her on upon that flat piece of ground and there fastened or
setting in to the shore. 3. What little wind there was blew me towards the land; moored her by sticking my two broken oars into the ground, one on one side
and thus, having found two or three broken oars belonging to the boat, and near one end, and one on the other side near the other end; and thus I lay till the
besides the tools which were in the chest, I found two saws, an axe, and a water ebbed away and left my raft and all my cargo safe on shore.
hammer, and with this cargo I put to sea. For a mile or thereabouts my raft went My next work was to view the country, and seek a proper place for my
very well, only that I found it drive a little distant from the place where I had habitation, and where to stow my goods, to secure them from whatever might
landed before, by which I perceived that there was some indraught of the water, happen. Where I was I yet knew not, whether on the continent or on an island;
and consequently I hoped to find some creek or river there which I might make whether inhabited or not inhabited; whether in danger of wild beasts or not.
use of as a port to get to land with my cargo. There was a hill not above a mile from me, which rose up very steep and high,
As I imagined, so it was; there appeared before me a little opening of the land, and which seemed to overtop some other hills which lay as in a ridge from it
and I found a strong current of the tide set into it, so I guided my raft as well as I northward. I took out one of the fowling pieces, and one of the pistols, and a
could to keep in the middle of the stream. But here I had like to have suffered a horn of powder, and thus armed I traveled for discovery up to the top of that hill,
second shipwreck, which, if I had, I think verily would have broke my heart; for where, after I had with great labour and difficulty got to the top, I saw my fate to
knowing nothing of the coast, my raft ran aground at one end of it upon a shoal, my great affliction, viz., that I was in an island environed every way with the
and not being aground at the other end, it wanted but a little that all my cargo sea, no land to be seen, except some rocks which lay a great way off, and two
had slipped off towards that end that was afloat, and so fallen into the water. I small islands less than this, which lay about three leagues to the west.
did my utmost by setting my back against the chests to keep them in their places, I found also that the island I was in was barren and, as I saw good reason to
but could not thrust off the raft with all my strength, neither durst I stir from the believe, uninhabited, except by wild beasts, of whom, however, I saw none, yet I
posture I was in, but holding up the chests with all my might, stood in that saw abundance of fowls, but knew not their kinds, neither when I killed them
manner near half an hour, in which time the rising of the water brought me a could I tell what was fit for food, and what not; at my coming back, I shot at a
great bird which I saw sitting upon a tree on the side of a great wood. I believe it more; a large bag full of small shot, and a great roll of sheet lead. But this last
was the first gun that had been fired there since the creation of the world; I had was so heavy, I could not hoist it up to get it over the ship’s side.
no sooner fired but from all the parts of the wood there arose an innumerable Besides these things, I took all the men’s clothes that I could find, and a spare
number of fowls of many sorts, making a confused screaming, and crying every fore-topsail, hammock, and some bedding; and with this I loaded my second raft,
one according to his usual note; but not one of them of any kind that I knew. As and brought them all safe on shore to my very great comfort.
for the creature I killed, I took it to be a kind of a hawk, its colour and beak I was under some apprehensions during my absence from the land, that at least
resembling it, but had no talons or claws more than common; its flesh was my provisions might be devoured on shore; but when I came back I found no
carrion and fit for nothing. sign of any visitor, only there sat a creature like a wild cat upon one of the
Contented with this discovery, I came back to my raft and fell to work to bring chests, which when I came towards it, ran away a little distance, and then stood
my cargo on shore, which took me up the rest of that day, and what to do with still; she sat very composed and unconcerned, and looked full in my face, as if
myself at night I knew not, nor indeed where to rest; for I was afraid to lie down she had a mind to be acquainted with me. I presented my gun at her, but as she
on the ground, not knowing but some wild beast might devour me, though, as I did not understand it, she was perfectly unconcerned at it, nor did she offer to stir
afterwards found, there was really no need for those fears. away; upon which I tossed her a bit of biscuit, though, by the way, I was not very
However, as well as I could, I barricaded myself round with the chests and free of it, for my store was not great. However, I spared her a bit, I say, and she
boards that I had brought on shore, and made a kind of a hut for that night’s went to it, smelled of it, and ate it and looked (as pleased) for more, but I
lodging; as for food, I yet saw not which way to supply myself, except that I had thanked her, and could spare no more; so she marched off.
seen two or three creatures like hares run out of the wood where I shot the fowl. Having got my second cargo on shore (though I was fain to open the barrels of
I now began to consider that I might yet get a great many things out of the powder and bring them by parcels, for they were too heavy, being large casks), I
ship, which would be useful to me, and particularly some of the rigging and went to work to make me a little tent with the sail and some poles which I cut for
sails, and such other things as might come to land, and I resolved to make that purpose; and into this tent I brought everything that I knew would spoil,
another voyage on board the vessel, if possible; and as I knew that the first storm either with rain, or sun, and I piled all the empty chests and casks up in a circle
that blew must necessarily break her all in pieces, I resolved to set all other round the tent, to fortify it from any sudden attempt, either from man or beast.
things apart, till I got everything out of the ship that I could get; then I called a When I had done this, I blocked up the door of the tent with some boards
council, that is to say, in my thoughts, whether I should take back the raft, but within, and an empty chest set up on end without, and spreading one of the beds
this appeared impracticable; so I resolved to go as before, when the tide was upon the ground, laying my two pistols just at my head and my gun at length by
down, and I did so, only that I stripped before I went from my hut, having me, I went to bed for the first time, and slept very quietly all night, for I was
nothing on but a checkered shirt and a pair of linen drawers and a pair of pumps very weary and heavy, for the night before I had slept little, and had laboured
on my feet. very hard all day, as well to fetch all those things from the ship, as to get them on
I got on board the ship as before, and prepared a second raft, and having had shore.
experience of the first, I neither made this so unwieldy, nor loaded it so hard, but I had the biggest magazine of all kinds now that ever was laid up, I believe,
yet I brought away several things very useful to me; as first, in the carpenter’s for one man; but I was not satisfied still; for while the ship sat upright in that
stores I found two or three bags full of nails and spikes, a great screwjack, a posture, I thought I ought to get everything out of her that I could; so every day
dozen or two of hatchets, and above all, that most useful thing called a at low water I went on board, and brought away something or other. But
grindstone; all these I secured together, with several things belonging to the particularly the third time I went, I brought away as much of the rigging as I
gunner, particularly two or three iron crows and two barrels of musket bullets, could, as also all the small ropes and rope-twine I could get, with a piece of
seven muskets, and another fowling piece, with some small quantity of powder spare canvas, which was to mend the sails upon occasion, and the barrel of wet
gunpowder. In a word, I brought away all the sails first and last, only that I was I smiled to myself at the sight of this money. "O drug!" said I aloud, ‘‘what art
fain to cut them in pieces, and bring as much at a time as I could; for they were thou good for? Thou art not worth to me, no, not the taking off of the ground;
no more useful to be sails, but as mere canvas only. one of those knives is worth all this heap; I have no manner of use for thee; e’en
But that which comforted me more still was that at last of all, after I had made remain where thou art and go to the bottom as a creature whose life is not worth
five or six such voyages as these, and thought I had nothing more to expect from saving.’’ However, upon second thoughts, I took it away, and wrapping all this in
the ship that was worth my meddling with; I say, after all this, I found a great a piece of canvas, I began to think of making another raft; but while I was
hogshead of bread, and three large runlets of rum or spirits, and a box of sugar, preparing this, I found the sky overcast, and the wind began to rise, and in a
and a barrel of fine flour; this was surprising to me, because I had given over quarter of an hour it blew a fresh gale from the shore; it presently occurred to me
expecting any more provisions, except what was spoiled by the water. I soon that it was in vain to pretend to make a raft with the wind off shore, and that it
emptied the hogshead of that bread, and wrapped it up parcel by parcel in pieces was my business to be gone before the tide of flood began, otherwise I might not
of the sails, which I cut out; and in a word, I got all this safe on shore also. be able to reach the shore at all. Accordingly I let myself down into the water
The next day I made another voyage; and now having plundered the ship of and swam across the channel, which lay between the ship and the sands, and
what was portable and fit to hand out, I began with the cables; and cutting the even that with difficulty enough, partly with the weight of the things I had about
great cable into pieces such as I could move, I got two cables and a hawser on me, and partly the roughness of the water, for the wind rose very hastily, and
shore, with all the ironwork I could get; and having cut down the spritsail yard, before it was quite high water, it blew a storm.
and the mizzen yard, and everything I could to make a large raft, I loaded it with But I was gotten home to my little tent, where I lay with all my wealth about
all those heavy goods, and came away. But my good luck began now to leave me very secure. It blew very hard all that night, and in the morning, when I
me; for this raft was so unwieldy and so overloaden, that after I was entered the looked out, behold, no more ship was to be seen; I was a little surprised, but
little cove, where I had landed the rest of my goods, not being able to guide it so recovered myself with this satisfactory reflection, viz., that I had lost no time,
handily as I did the other, it overset, and threw me and all my cargo into the nor abated no diligence to get everything out of her that could be useful to me,
water. As for myself it was no great harm, for I was near the shore; but as to my and that indeed there was little left in her that I was able to bring away if I had
cargo, it was great part of it lost, especially the iron, which I expected would had more time.
have been of great use to me. However, when the tide was out, I got most of the I now gave over any more thoughts of the ship, or of anything out of her,
pieces of cable ashore, and some of the iron, though with infinite labour; for I except what might drive on shore from her wreck, as indeed divers pieces of her
was fain to dip for it into the water, a work which fatigued me very much. After afterwards did; but those things were of small use to me.
this I went every day on board, and brought away what I could get.
I had been now thirteen days on shore, and had been eleven times on board the
ship; in which time I had brought away all that one pair of hands could well be
supposed capable to bring, though I believe verily, had the calm weather held, I
should have brought away the whole ship, piece by piece. But preparing the
twelfth time to go on board, I found the wind began to rise; however, at low
water I went on board, and though I thought I had rummaged the cabin so
effectually, as that nothing more could be found, yet I discovered a locker with
drawers in it, in one of which I found two or three razors and one pair of large
scissors, with some ten or a dozen of good knives and forks; in another I found
about thirty-six pounds value in money, some European coin, some Brazil, some
pieces of eight, some gold, some silver.
not stand above six inches from one another.
I Build My Fortress Then I took the pieces of cable which I had cut in the ship, and laid them in
MY THOUGHTS were now wholly employed about securing myself against rows one upon another, within the circle between these two rows of stakes, up to
either savages, if any should appear, or wild beasts, if any were in the island; and the top, placing other stakes in the inside, leaning against them, about two foot
I had many thoughts of the method how to do this, and what kind of dwelling to and a half high, like a spur to a post; and this fence was so strong that neither
make; whether I should make me a cave in the earth, or a tent upon the earth. man nor beast could get into it or over it. This cost me a great deal of time and
And, in short, I resolved upon both; the manner and description of which it may labour, especially to cut the piles in the woods, bring them to the place, and drive
not be improper to give an account of. them into the earth.
I soon found the place I was in was not for my settlement, particularly because The entrance into this place I made to be, not by a door, but by a short ladder
it was upon a low moorish ground near the sea, and I believed would not be to go over the top, which ladder, when I was in, I lifted over after me, and so I
wholesome, and more particularly because there was no fresh water near it; so I was completely fenced in, and fortified, as I thought, from all the world, and
resolved to find a more healthy and more convenient spot of ground. consequently slept secure in the night, which otherwise I could not have done,
though, as it appeared afterwards, there was no need of all this caution from the
I consulted several things in my situation, which I found would be proper for
enemies that I apprehended danger from.
me: first, health and fresh water I just now mentioned; secondly, shelter from the
heat of the sun; thirdly, security from ravenous creatures, whether man or beast; Into this fence or fortress, with infinite labour, I carried all my riches, all my
fourthly, a view to the sea, that if God sent any ship in sight, I might not lose any provisions, ammunition, and stores, of which you have the account above; and I
advantage for my deliverance, of which I was not willing to banish all my made me a large tent, which, to preserve me from the rains that in one part of the
expectation yet. year are very violent there, I made double, viz., one smaller tent within, and one
larger tent above it, and covered the uppermost with a large tarpaulin which I
In search of a place proper for this, I found a little plain on the side of a rising
had saved among the sails.
hill, whose front towards this little plain was steep as a house-side, so that
nothing could come down upon me from the top; on the side of this rock there And now I lay no more for a while in the bed which I had brought on shore,
was a hollow place worn a little way in like the entrance or door of a cave, but but in a hammock, which was indeed a very good one and belonged to the mate
there was not really any cave or way into the rock at all. of the ship.
On the flat of the green, just before this hollow place, I resolved to pitch my Into this tent I brought all my provisions, and every thing that would spoil by
tent. This plain was not above an hundred yards broad, and about twice as long, the wet, and having thus enclosed all my goods, I made up the entrance, which
and lay like a green before my door, and at the end of it descended irregularly till now I had left open, and so passed and repassed, as I said, by a short ladder.
every way down into the low grounds by the seaside. It was on the north- When I had done this, I began to work my way into the rock, and bringing all
northwest side of the hill, so that I was sheltered from the heat every day, till it the earth and stones that I dug down out through my tent, I laid them up within
came to a west and by south sun, or thereabouts, which in those countries is near my fence in the nature of a terrace, so that it raised the ground within about a
the setting. foot and a half; and thus I made a cave just behind my tent, which served me like
Before I set up my tent, I drew a half circle before the hollow place, which a cellar to my house.
took in about ten yards in its semi-diameter from the rock, and twenty yards in It cost me much labour, and many days, before all these things were brought
its diameter, from its beginning and ending. to perfection, and therefore I must go back to some other things which took up
In this half circle I pitched two rows of strong stakes, driving them into the some of my thoughts. At the same time it happened, after I had laid my scheme
ground till they stood very firm like piles, the biggest end being out of the for the setting up my tent and making the cave, that a storm of rain falling from a
ground about five foot and a half, and sharpened on the top. The two rows did thick dark cloud, a sudden flash of lightning happened, and after that, a great
clap of thunder, as is naturally the effect of it. I was not so much surprised with with me upon my shoulders, the kid followed me quite to my enclosure, upon
the lightning, as I was with a thought which darted into my mind as swift as the which I laid down the dam and took the kid in my arms, and carried it over my
lightning itself: O my powder! My very heart sunk within me, when I thought, pale, in hopes to have bred it up tame, but it would not eat, so I was forced to kill
that at one blast all my powder might be destroyed; on which, not my defence it and eat it myself; these two supplied me with flesh a great while, for I ate
only, but the providing me food, as I thought, entirely depended; I was nothing sparingly, and saved my provisions (my bread especially) as much as possibly I
near so anxious about my own danger, though had the powder took fire, I had could.
never known who had hurt me. Having now fixed my habitation, I found it absolutely necessary to provide a
Such impression did this make upon me, that after the storm was over, I laid place to make a fire in, and fuel to burn; and what I did for that, as also how I
aside all my works, my building and fortifying, and applied myself to make bags enlarged my cave, and what conveniences I made, I shall give a full account of
and boxes to separate the powder, and keep it a little and a little in a parcel, in in its place. But I must first give some little account of myself and of my
hope that whatever might come, it might not all take fire at once, and to keep it thoughts about living, which it may well be supposed were not a few.
so apart that it should not be possible to make one part fire another. I finished I had a dismal prospect of my condition, for as I was not cast away upon that
this work in about a fortnight, and I think my powder, which in all was about 240 island without being driven, as is said, by a violent storm quite out of the course
pounds’ weight, was divided in not less than a hundred parcels; as to the barrel of our intended voyage and a great way, viz., some hundreds of leagues out of
that had been wet, I did not apprehend any danger from that, so I placed it in my the ordinary course of the trade of mankind, I had great reason to consider it as a
new cave, which in my fancy I called my kitchen, and the rest I hid up and down determination of Heaven, that in this desolate place and in this desolate manner I
in holes among the rocks, so that no wet might come to it, marking very should end my life; the tears would run plentifully down my face when I made
carefully where I laid it. these reflections, and sometimes I would expostulate with myself why
In the interval of time while this was doing, I went out at least once every day Providence should thus completely ruin its creatures and render them so
with my gun, as well to divert myself as to see if I could kill anything fit for absolutely miserable, so without help abandoned, so entirely depressed, that it
food, and as near as I could to acquaint myself with what the island produced. could hardly be rational to be thankful for such a life.
The first time I went out, I presently discovered that there were goats in the But something always returned swift upon me to check these thoughts and to
island, which was a great satisfaction to me; but then it was attended with this reprove me; and particularly one day, walking with my gun in my hand by the
misfortune to me, viz., that they were so shy, so subtile, and so swift of foot that seaside, I was very pensive upon the subject of my present condition, when
it was the difficultest thing in the world to come at them. But I was not Reason, as it were, put in, expostulating with me t’ other way, thus: ‘‘Well, you
discouraged at this, not doubting but I might now and then shoot one, as it soon are in a desolate condition, ’tis true, but pray remember, where are the rest of
happened; for after I had found their haunts a little, I laid wait in this manner for you? Did not you come eleven of you into the boat? Where are the ten? Why
them: I observed, if they saw me in the valleys, though they were upon the rocks, were not they saved, and you lost? Why were you singled out? Is it better to be
they would run away as in a terrible fright; but if they were feeding in the here or there?’’ And then I pointed to the sea. All evils are to be considered with
valleys, and I was upon the rocks, they took no notice of me; from whence I the good that is in them, and with what worse attends them.
concluded, that by the position of their optics, their sight was so directed Then it occurred to me again how well I was furnished for my subsistence,
downward that they did not readily see objects that were above them; so and what would have been my case if it had not happened, which was an
afterwards I took this method, I always climbed the rocks first, to get above hundred thousand to one, that the ship floated from the place where she first
them, and then had frequently a fair mark. The first shot I made among these struck, and was driven so near to the shore that I had time to get all these things
creatures, I killed a she-goat which had a little kid by her which she gave suck out of her. What would have been my case if I had been to have lived in the
to, which grieved me heartily; but when the old one fell, the kid stood stock still condition in which I at first came on shore, without necessaries of life, or
by her till I came and took her up, and not only so, but when I carried the old one
necessaries to supply and procure them? ‘‘Particularly,’’ said I aloud (though to navigation, all which I huddled together, whether I might want them or no; also I
myself), ‘‘what should I have done without a gun, without ammunition, without found three very good Bibles, which came to me in my cargo from England, and
any tools to make anything or to work with, without clothes, bedding, a tent, or which I had packed up among my things; some Portuguese books also, and
any manner of coverings?’’ and that now I had all these to a sufficient quantity, among them two or three Popish prayer-books, and several other books, all
and was in a fair way to provide myself in such a manner as to live without my which I carefully secured. And I must not forget that we had in the ship a dog
gun when my ammunition was spent; so that I had a tolerable view of subsisting and two cats, of whose eminent history I may have occasion to say something in
without any want as long as I lived; for I considered from the beginning how I its place; for I carried both the cats with me, and as for the dog, he jumped out of
would provide for the accidents that might happen, and for the time that was to the ship of himself, and swam on shore to me the day after I went on shore with
come, even not only after my ammunition should be spent, but even after my my first cargo and was a trusty servant to me many years; I wanted nothing that
health or strength should decay. he could fetch me, nor any company that he could make up to me; I only wanted
I confess I had not entertained any notion of my ammunition being destroyed to have him talk to me, but that would not do. As I observed before, I found pen,
at one blast, I mean my powder being blown up by lightning, and this made the ink, and paper, and I husbanded them to the utmost; and I shall show that while
thoughts of it so surprising to me when it lightened and thundered, as I observed my ink lasted, I kept things very exact; but after that was gone, I could not, for I
just now. could not make any ink by any means that I could devise.
And now being to enter into a melancholy relation of a scene of silent life, And this put me in mind that I wanted many things, notwithstanding all that I
such perhaps as was never heard of in the world before, I shall take it from its had amassed together; and of these, this of ink was one, as also spade, pickaxe,
beginning, and continue it in its order. It was, by my account, the 30th of and shovel, to dig or remove the earth; needles, pins, and thread; as for linen, I
September when, in the manner as above said, I first set foot upon this horrid soon learned to want that without much difficulty.
island, when the sun, being, to us, in its autumnal equinox, was almost just over This want of tools made every work I did go on heavily, and it was near a
my head, for I reckoned myself, by observation, to be in the latitude of 9 degrees whole year before I had entirely finished my little pale, or surrounded habitation.
22 minutes north of the line. The piles, or stakes, which were as heavy as I could well lift, were a long time in
After I had been there about ten or twelve days, it came into my thoughts, that cutting and preparing in the woods, and more by far in bringing home, so that I
I should lose my reckoning of time for want of books, and pen and ink, and spent sometimes two days in cutting and bringing home one of those posts and a
should even forget the Sabbath days from the working days; but to prevent this, I third day in driving it into the ground; for which purpose I got a heavy piece of
cut it with my knife upon a large post, in capital letters, and making it into a wood at first, but at last bethought myself of one of the iron crows, which,
great cross, I set it up on the shore where I first landed, viz., ‘‘I came on shore however, though I found it, yet it made driving those posts or piles very
here the 30th of September 1659.’’ Upon the sides of this square post I cut every laborious and tedious work.
day a notch with my knife, and every seventh notch was as long again as the rest, But what need I have been concerned at the tediousness of anything I had to
and every first day of the month as long again as that long one; and thus I kept do, seeing I had time enough to do it in? Nor had I any other employment if that
my calendar, or weekly, monthly, and yearly reckoning of time. had been over, at least that I could foresee, except the ranging the island to seek
In the next place we are to observe that among the many things which I for food, which I did more or less every day.
brought off the ship in the several voyages which, as above mentioned, I made to I now began to consider seriously my condition, and the circumstance I was
it, I got several things of less value, but not all less useful to me, which I omitted reduced to; and I drew up the state of my affairs in writing, not so much to leave
setting down before; as in particular, pens, ink, and paper, several parcels in the them to any that were to come after me, for I was like to have but few heirs, as to
captain’s, mate’s, gunner’s, and carpenter’s keeping, three or four compasses, deliver my thoughts from daily poring upon them, and afflicting my mind; and
some mathematical instruments, dials, perspectives, charts, and books of as my reason began now to master my despondency, I began to comfort myself
as well as I could, and to set the good against the evil, that I might have the experience of the most miserable of all conditions in this world, that we may
something to distinguish my case from worse; and I stated it very impartially, always find in it something to comfort ourselves from, and to set in the
like debtor and creditor, the comforts I enjoyed, against the miseries I suffered, description of good and evil, on the credit side of the account.
thus: Having now brought my mind a little to relish my condition and given over
looking out to sea, to see if I could spy a ship; I say, giving over these things, I
began to apply myself to accommodate my way of living and to make things as
easy to me as I could.
I have already described my habitation, which was a tent under the side of a
rock, surrounded with a strong pale of posts and cables, but I might now rather
call it a wall; for I raised a kind of wall up against it of turfs, about two foot thick
on the outside; and after some time (I think it was a year and a half) I raised
rafters from it, leaning to the rock, and thatched or covered it with boughs of
trees and such things as I could get to keep out the rain, which I found at some
times of the year very violent.
I have already observed how I brought all my goods into this pale, and into the
cave which I had made behind me. But I must observe, too, that at first this was
a confused heap of goods, which as they lay in no order, so they took up all my
place; I had no room to turn myself; so I set myself to enlarge my cave and
works farther into the earth, for it was a loose sandy rock, which yielded easily
to the labour I bestowed on it. And so, when I found I was pretty safe as to
beasts of prey, I worked sideways to the right hand into the rock; and then
turning to the right again, worked quite out, and made me a door to come out on
the outside of my pale or fortification.
This gave me not only egress and regress, as it were a back way to my tent
and to my storehouse, but gave me room to stow my goods.
And now I began to apply myself to make such necessary things as I found I
most wanted, particularly a chair and a table; for without these I was not able to
enjoy the few comforts I had in the world; I could not write or eat, or do several
things, with so much pleasure without a table.
So I went to work; and here I must needs observe that as reason is the
substance and original of the mathematics, so by stating and squaring everything
by reason, and by making the most rational judgment of things, every man may
be in time master of every mechanic art. I had never handled a tool in my life,
Upon the whole, here was an undoubted testimony that there was scarce any
and yet in time, by labour, application, and contrivance, I found at last that I
condition in the world so miserable but there was something negative or
wanted nothing but I could have made it, especially if I had had tools; however, I
something positive to be thankful for in it; and let this stand as a direction from
made abundance of things even without tools, and some with no more tools than
an adze and a hatchet, which perhaps were never made that way before, and that increase my misery by my folly.
with infinite labour. For example, if I wanted a board, I had no other way but to But having gotten over these things in some measure and having settled my
cut down a tree, set it on an edge before me, and hew it flat on either side with household stuff and habitation, made me a table and a chair, and all as handsome
my axe, till I had brought it to be thin as a plank, and then dub it smooth with my about me as I could, I began to keep my journal, of which I shall here give you
adze. It is true, by this method I could make but one board out of a whole tree, the copy (though in it will be told all these particulars over again) as long as it
but this I had no remedy for but patience, any more than I had for the prodigious lasted, for, having no more ink, I was forced to leave it off.
deal of time and labour which it took me up to make a plank or board. But my
time or labour was little worth, and so it was as well employed one way as
another.
However, I made me a table and a chair, as I observed above, in the first place,
and this I did out of the short pieces of boards that I brought on my raft from the
ship. But when I had wrought out some boards, as above, I made large shelves of
the breadth of a foot and a half, one over another, all along one side of my cave,
to lay all my tools, nails, and ironwork, and in a word, to separate everything at
large in their places, that I might easily come at them; I knocked pieces into the
wall of the rock to hang my guns and all things that would hang up.
So that had my cave been to be seen, it looked like a general magazine of all
necessary things; and I had everything so ready at my hand, that it was a great
pleasure to me to see all my goods in such order, and especially to find my stock
of all necessaries so great.
And now it was when I began to keep a journal of every day’s employment;
for, indeed, at first I was in too much hurry, and not only hurry as to labour, but
in too much discomposure of mind, and my journal would have been full of
many dull things. For example, I must have said thus:
September the 30th. After I got to shore, and had escaped drowning, instead of
being thankful to God for my deliverance, having first vomited with the great
quantity of salt water which was gotten into my stomach, and recovering myself
a little, I ran about the shore, wringing my hands and beating my head and face,
exclaiming at my misery and crying out I was undone, undone, till, tired and
faint, I was forced to lie down on the ground to repose, but durst not sleep, for
fear of being devoured.
Some days after this, and after I had been on board the ship and got all that I
could out of her, yet I could not forbear getting up to the top of a little mountain,
and looking out to sea, in hopes of seeing a ship, then fancy at a vast distance I
spied a sail, please myself with the hopes of it and then, after looking steadily till
I was almost blind, lose it quite, and sit down and weep like a child, and thus
October 26. I walked about the shore almost all day to find out a place to fix
The Journal my habitation, greatly concerned to secure myself from an attack in the night,
either from wild beasts or men. Towards night I fixed upon a proper place under
September 30, 1659. I, poor, miserable Robinson Crusoe, being shipwrecked,
during a dreadful storm in the offing, came on shore on this dismal unfortunate a rock, and marked out a semicircle for my encampment, which I resolved to
island, which I called ‘‘the Island of Despair,’’ all the rest of the ship’s company strengthen with a work, wall, or fortification, made of double piles, lined within
being drowned, and myself almost dead. with cable, and without with turf.
From the 26th to the 30th I worked very hard in carrying all my goods to my
All the rest of that day I spent in afflicting myself at the dismal circumstances
I was brought to, viz., I had neither food, house, clothes, weapon, or place to fly new habitation, though some part of the time it rained exceeding hard.
to, and in despair of any relief, saw nothing but death before me, either that I The 31st in the morning I went out into the island with my gun to seek for
should be devoured by wild beasts, murdered by savages, or starved to death for some food, and discover the country, when I killed a she-goat, and her kid
want of food. At the approach of night, I slept in a tree for fear of wild creatures, followed me home, which I afterwards killed also, because it would not feed.
but slept soundly, though it rained all night. November 1. I set up my tent under a rock, and lay there for the first night,
October 1. In the morning I saw to my great surprise, the ship had floated with making it as large as I could with stakes driven in to swing my hammock upon.
the high tide and was driven on shore again much nearer the island, which, as it November 2. I set up all my chests and boards, and the pieces of timber which
was some comfort on one hand (for seeing her sit upright and not broken to made my rafts, and with them formed a fence round me, a little within the place I
pieces, I hoped, if the wind abated, I might get on board, and get some food and had marked out for my fortification.
necessaries out of her for my relief), so on the other hand, it renewed my grief at November 3. I went out with my gun and killed two fowls like ducks, which
the loss of my comrades, who, I imagined, if we had all stayed on board, might were very good food. In the afternoon went to work to make me a table.
have saved the ship, or at least that they would not have been all drowned as November 4. This morning I began to order my times of work, of going out
they were; and that had the men been saved, we might perhaps have built us a with my gun, time of sleep, and time of diversion, viz.: Every morning I walked
boat out of the ruins of the ship, to have carried us to some other part of the out with my gun for two or three hours, if it did not rain, then employed myself
world. I spent great part of this day in perplexing myself on these things; but at to work till about eleven o’clock; then ate what I had to live on, and from twelve
length seeing the ship almost dry, I went upon the sand as near as I could, and to two I lay down to sleep, the weather being excessive hot, and then in the
then swam on board. This day also continued raining, though with no wind at all. evening to work again. The working part of this day and of the next were wholly
From the 1st of October to the 24th. All these days entirely spent in many employed in making my table, for I was yet but a very sorry workman, though
several voyages to get all I could out of the ship, which I brought on shore every time and necessity made me a complete natural mechanic soon after, as I believe
tide of flood upon rafts. Much rain also in these days, though with some intervals it would do anyone else.
of fair weather. But, it seems, this was the rainy season. November 5. This day I went abroad with my gun and my dog, and killed a
October 20. I overset my raft, and all the goods I had got upon it; but being in wild cat, her skin pretty soft, but her flesh good for nothing. Every creature I
shoal water, and the things being chiefly heavy, I recovered many of them when killed, I took off the skins and preserved them. Coming back by the seashore, I
the tide was out. saw many sorts of seafowls which I did not understand; but was surprised, and
October 25. It rained all night and all day, with some gusts of wind, during almost frighted, with two or three seals, which, while I was gazing at, not well
which time the ship broke in pieces, the wind blowing a little harder than before, knowing what they were, got into the sea, and escaped me for that time.
and was no more to be seen, except the wreck of her, and that only at low water. November 6. After my morning walk, I went to work with my table again, and
I spent this day in covering and securing the goods which I had saved, that the finished it, though not to my liking; nor was it long before I learned to mend it.
rain might not spoil them. November 7. Now it began to be settled fair weather. The 7th, 8th, 9th, 10th,
and part of the 12th (for the 11th was Sunday) I took wholly up to make me a wickerware, at least none yet found out; and as to a wheelbarrow, I fancied I
chair, and with much ado brought it to a tolerable shape, but never to please me, could make all but the wheel, but that I had no notion of, neither did I know how
and even in the making I pulled it to pieces several times. NOTE: I soon to go about it; besides, I had no possible way to make the iron gudgeons for the
neglected my keeping Sundays; for, omitting my mark for them on my post, I spindle or axis of the wheel to run in, so I gave it over; and so for carrying away
forgot which was which. the earth which I dug out of the cave, I made me a thing like a hod which the
November 13. This day it rained, which refreshed me exceedingly, and cooled labourers carry mortar in when they serve the bricklayers.
the earth, but it was accompanied with terrible thunder and lightning, which This was not so difficult to me as the making the shovel; and yet this, and the
frighted me dreadfully, for fear of my powder. As soon as it was over, I resolved shovel, and the attempt, which I made in vain, to make a wheelbarrow, took me
to separate my stock of powder into as many little parcels as possible, that it up no less than four days; I mean always excepting my morning walk with my
might not be in danger. gun, which I seldom failed, and very seldom failed also of bringing home
November 14, 15, 16. These three days I spent in making little square chests something fit to eat.
or boxes, which might hold about a pound or two pounds, at most, of powder; November 23. My other work having now stood still, because of my making
and so, putting the powder in, I stowed it in places as secure and remote from these tools, when they were finished I went on, and working every day, as my
one another as possible. On one of these three days I killed a large bird that was strength and time allowed, I spent eighteen days entirely in widening and
good to eat, but I know not what to call it. deepening my cave, that it might hold my goods commodiously.
November 17. This day I began to dig behind my tent into the rock, to make NOTE: During all this time, I worked to make this room or cave spacious
room for my further convenience. NOTE: Three things I wanted exceedingly for enough to accommodate me as a warehouse or magazine, a kitchen, a dining-
this work, viz., a pickaxe, a shovel, and a wheelbarrow or basket, so I desisted room, and a cellar; as for my lodging, I kept to the tent, except that sometimes in
from my work and began to consider how to supply that want, and make me the wet season of the year it rained so hard that I could not keep myself dry,
some tools. As for a pickaxe, I made use of the iron crows, which were proper which caused me afterwards to cover all my place within my pale with long
enough, though heavy; but the next thing was a shovel or spade. This was so poles in the form of rafters, leaning against the rock, and load them with flags,
absolutely necessary that indeed I could do nothing effectually without it; but and large leaves of trees, like a thatch.
what kind of one to make I knew not. December 10. I began now to think my cave or vault finished, when on a
November 18. The next day in searching the woods, I found a tree of that sudden (it seems I had made it too large) a great quantity of earth fell down from
wood, or like it, which in Brazil they call the iron tree, for its exceeding the top and one side, so much, that, in short, it frighted me, and not without
hardness; of this, with great labour, and almost spoiling my axe, I cut a piece, reason too; for if I had been under it I had never wanted a gravedigger. Upon this
and brought it home too with difficulty enough, for it was exceeding heavy. disaster I had a great deal of work to do over again; for I had the loose earth to
The excessive hardness of the wood, and having no other way, made me a carry out, and, which was of more importance, I had the ceiling to prop up, so
long while upon this machine, for I worked it effectually, by little and little, into that I might be sure no more would come down.
the form of a shovel or spade, the handle exactly shaped like ours in England, December 11. This day I went to work with it accordingly, and got two shores
only that the broad part having no iron shod upon it at bottom, it would not last or posts pitched upright to the top, with two pieces of boards across over each
me so long; however, it served well enough for the uses which I had occasion to post. This I finished the next day; and setting more posts up with boards, in
put it to; but never was a shovel, I believe, made after that fashion, or so long a- about a week more I had the roof secured; and the posts, standing in rows,
making. served me for partitions to part of my house.
I was still deficient, for I wanted a basket or a wheelbarrow; a basket I could December 17. From this day to the 20th, I placed shelves and knocked up
not make by any means, having no such things as twigs that would bend to make nails on the posts to hang everything up that could be hung up; and now I began
to be in some order within doors. this wall was finished; and it is scarce credible what inexpressible labour
December 20. Now I carried everything into the cave, and began to furnish everything was done with, especially the bringing piles out of the woods, and
my house, and set up some pieces of boards like a dresser, to order my victuals driving them into the ground; for I made them much bigger than I needed to
upon; but boards began to be very scarce with me. Also I made me another table. have done.
December 24. Much rain all night and all day; no stirring out. When this wall was finished, and the outside double-fenced with a turf wall
December 25. Rain all day. raised up close to it, I persuaded myself that if any people were to come on shore
there, they would not perceive anything like a habitation; and it was very well I
December 26. No rain, and the earth much cooler than before, and pleasanter.
did so, as may be observed hereafter, upon a very remarkable occasion.
December 27. Killed a young goat, and lamed another, so that I catched it, and
led it home in a string; when I had it home, I bound and splintered up its leg,
which was broke. N.B. I took such care of it that it lived, and the leg grew well, I Throw Away the Husks of Corn
and as strong as ever; but by nursing it so long it grew tame, and fed upon the
During this time, I made my rounds in the woods for game every day when the
little green at my door, and would not go away. This was the first time that I
rain admitted me, and made frequent discoveries in these walks of something or
entertained a thought of breeding up some tame creatures, that I might have food
when my powder and shot was all spent. other to my advantage; particularly I found a kind of wild pigeons, who built not
as wood pigeons in a tree, but rather as house pigeons, in the holes of the rocks;
December 28, 29, 30. Great heats and no breeze; so that there was no stirring and taking some young ones, I endeavoured to breed them up tame, and did so;
abroad, except in the evening for food; this time I spent in putting all my things but when they grew older, they flew all away, which perhaps was at first for
in order within doors. want of feeding them, for I had nothing to give them; however, I frequently
January 1. Very hot still, but I went abroad early and late with my gun, and found their nests, and got their young ones, which were very good meat.
lay still in the middle of the day; this evening going farther into the valleys, And now in the managing my household affairs, I found myself wanting in
which lay towards the center of the island, I found there was plenty of goats, many things, which I thought at first it was impossible for me to make, as indeed
though exceeding shy and hard to come at; however, I resolved to try if I could
as to some of them it was; for instance, I could never make a cask to be hooped;
not bring my dog to hunt them down. I had a small runlet or two, as I observed before, but I could never arrive to the
January 2. Accordingly, the next day I went out with my dog, and set him capacity of making one by them, though I spent many weeks about it; I could
upon the goats; but I was mistaken, for they all faced about upon the dog, and he neither put in the heads, or join the staves so true to one another, as to make
knew his danger too well, for he would not come near them. them hold water; so I gave that also over.
January 3. I began my fence or wall; which, being still jealous of my being In the next place, I was at a great loss for candle; so that as soon as ever it was
attacked by somebody, I resolved to make very thick and strong. dark, which was generally by seven o’clock, I was obliged to go to bed. I
N.B. This wall being described before, I purposely omit what was said in the remembered the lump of beeswax with which I made candles in my African
journal; it is sufficient to observe, that I was no less time than from the 3rd of adventure; but I had none of that now. The only remedy I had was that, when I
January to the 14th of April, working, finishing, and perfecting this wall, though had killed a goat, I saved the tallow, and with a little dish made of clay, which I
it was no more than about twenty-four yards in length, being a half circle from baked in the sun, to which I added a wick of some oakum, I made me a lamp;
one place in the rock to another place about eight yards from it, the door of the and this gave me light, though not a clear, steady light like a candle. In the
cave being in the center behind it. middle of all my labours it happened that, rummaging my things, I found a little
All this time I worked very hard, the rains hindering me many days, nay, bag, which, as I hinted before, had been filled with corn for the feeding of
sometimes weeks together; but I thought I should never be perfectly secure till poultry, not for this voyage, but before, as I suppose, when the ship came from
Lisbon; what little remained of corn had been in the bag was all devoured with what was common; though I ought to have been as thankful for so strange and
the rats, and I saw nothing in the bag but husks and dust; and being willing to unforeseen Providence, as if it had been miraculous; for it was really the work of
have the bag for some other use (I think it was to put powder in, when I divided Providence as to me, that should order or appoint, that ten or twelve grains of
it for fear of the lightning, or some such use), I shook the husks of corn out of it corn should remain unspoiled (when the rats had destroyed all the rest), as if it
on one side of my fortification under the rock. had been dropped from Heaven; as also that I should throw it out in that
It was a little before the great rains, just now mentioned, that I threw this stuff particular place where, it being in the shade of a high rock, it sprang up
away, taking no notice of anything, and not so much as remembering that I had immediately; whereas, if I had thrown it anywhere else at that time, it had been
thrown anything there; when about a month after or thereabouts, I saw some few burnt up and destroyed.
stalks of something green shooting out of the ground, which I fancied might be I carefully saved the ears of this corn, you may be sure, in their season, which
some plant I had not seen; but I was surprised and perfectly astonished, when was about the end of June; and laying up every corn, I resolved to sow them all
after a little longer time I saw about ten or twelve ears come out, which were again, hoping in time to have some quantity sufficient to supply me with bread;
perfect green barley of the same kind as our European, nay, as our English but it was not till the fourth year that I could allow myself the least grain of this
barley. corn to eat, and even then but sparingly, as I shall say afterwards in its order; for
It is impossible to express the astonishment and confusion of my thoughts on I lost all that I sowed the first season by not observing the proper time; for I
this occasion; I had hitherto acted upon no religious foundation at all; indeed I sowed it just before the dry season, so that it never came up at all, at least not as
had very few notions of religion in my head, nor had entertained any sense of it would have done. Of which in its place.
anything that had befallen me, otherwise than as a chance, or, as we lightly say, Besides this barley, there was, as above, twenty or thirty stalks of rice, which I
what pleases God; without so much as inquiring into the end of Providence in preserved with the same care, and whose use was of the same kind, or to the
these things, or His order in governing events in the world. But after I saw barley same purpose, viz., to make me bread, or rather food; for I found ways to cook it
grow there, in a climate which I know was not proper for corn, and especially up without baking, though I did that also after some time. But to return to my
that I knew not how it came there, it startled me strangely, and I began to suggest journal.
that God had miraculously caused this grain to grow without any help of seed I worked excessive hard these three or four months, to get my wall done; and
sown, and that it was so directed purely for my sustenance on that wild the 14th of April I closed it up, contriving to go into it, not by a door, but over
miserable place. the wall by a ladder, that there might be no sign on the outside of my habitation.
This touched my heart a little and brought tears out of my eyes, and I began to April 16. I finished the ladder, so I went up with the ladder to the top, and then
bless myself, that such a prodigy of Nature should happen upon my account; and pulled it up after me, and let it down in the inside. This was a complete enclosure
this was the more strange to me because I saw near it still, all along by the side to me; for within I had room enough, and nothing could come at me from
of the rock, some other straggling stalks, which proved to be stalks of rice, and without, unless it could first mount my wall.
which I knew, because I had seen it grow in Africa when I was ashore there. The very next day after this wall was finished, I had almost had all my labour
I not only thought these the pure productions of Providence for my support, overthrown at once, and myself killed; the case was thus: As I was busy in the
but not doubting but that there was more in the place, I went all over that part of inside of it, behind my tent, just in the entrance into my cave, I was terribly
the island where I had been before, peering in every corner and under every frighted with a most dreadful surprising thing indeed; for all on a sudden I found
rock, to see for more of it, but I could not find any; at last it occurred to my the earth come crumbling down from the roof of my cave, and from the edge of
thoughts that I had shook a bag of chickens’ meat4 out in that place, and then the the hill over my head, and two of the posts I had set up in the cave cracked in a
wonder began to cease; and I must confess, my religious thankfulness to God’s frightful manner; I was heartily scared, but thought nothing of what was really
Providence began toabate too upon the discovering that all this was nothing but the cause, only thinking that the top of my cave was falling in, as some of it had
done before; and for fear I should be buried in it, I ran forward to my ladder, and consequences of the earthquake, the earthquake itself was spent and over, and I
not thinking myself safe there neither, I got over my wall for fear of the pieces of might venture into my cave again. With this thought my spirits began to revive,
the hill which I expected might roll down upon me. I was no sooner stepped and the rain also helping to persuade me, I went in and sat down in my tent; but
down upon the firm ground but I plainly saw it was a terrible earthquake, for the the rain was so violent that my tent was ready to be beaten down with it, and I
ground I stood on shook three times, at about eight minutes’ distance, with three was forced to go into my cave, though very much afraid and uneasy for fear it
such shocks as would have overturned the strongest building that could be should fall on my head.
supposed to have stood on the earth; and a great piece of the top of a rock, which This violent rain forced me to a new work, viz., to cut a hole through my new
stood about half a mile from me next the sea, fell down with such a terrible fortification, like a sink, to let the water go out, which would else had drowned
noise, as I never heard in all my life. I perceived also the very sea was put into my cave. After I had been in my cave some time, and found still no more shocks
violent motion by it; and I believe the shocks were stronger under the water than of the earthquake follow, I began to be more composed; and now, to support my
on the island. spirits, which indeed wanted it very much, I went to my little store and took a
I was so amazed with the thing itself, having never felt the like, or discoursed small sup of rum, which, however, I did then and always very sparingly,
with anyone that had, that I was like one dead or stupefied; and the motion of the knowing I could have no more when that was gone.
earth made my stomach sick, like one that was tossed at sea; but the noise of the It continued raining all that night, and great part of the next day, so that I
falling of the rock awaked me, as it were, and rousing me from the stupefied could not stir abroad; but my mind being more composed, I began to think of
condition I was in, filled me with horror, and I thought of nothing then but the what I had best do, concluding that if the island was subject to these earthquakes,
hill falling upon my tent, and all my household goods, and burying all at once; there would be no living for me in a cave, but I must consider of building me
and this sunk my very soul within me a second time. some little hut in an open place, which I might surround with a wall, as I had
After the third shock was over, and I felt no more for some time, I began to done here, and so make myself secure from wild beasts or men; but concluded, if
take courage, and yet I had not heart enough to get over my wall again, for fear I stayed where I was, I should certainly, one time or other, be buried alive.
of being buried alive, but sat still upon the ground, greatly cast down and With these thoughts I resolved to remove my tent from the place where it
disconsolate, not knowing what to do. All this while I had not the least serious stood, which was just under the hanging precipice of the hill, and which, if it
religious thought, nothing but the common, ‘‘Lord have mercy upon me!’’ and should be shaken again, would certainly fall upon my tent. And I spent the two
when it was over, that went away too. next days, being the 19th and 20th of April, in contriving where and how to
remove my habitation.
The fear of being swallowed up alive made me that I never slept in quiet, and
It Blows a Most Dreadful Hurricane
yet the apprehension of lying abroad without any fence was almost equal to it.
While I sat thus, I found the air overcast, and grow cloudy, as if it would rain; But still, when I looked about, and saw how everything was put in order, how
soon after that the wind rose by little and little, so that in less than half an hour it pleasantly concealed I was, and how safe from danger, it made me very loath to
blew a most dreadful hurricane. The sea was all on a sudden covered over with remove.
foam and froth, the shore was covered with the breach of the water, the trees In the meantime it occurred to me that it would require a vast deal of time for
were torn up by the roots, and a terrible storm it was; and this held about three me to do this, and that I must be contented to run the venture where I was, till I
hours, and then began to abate, and in two hours more it was stark calm, and had formed a camp for myself, and had secured it so as to remove to it. So with
began to rain very hard. this resolution I composed myself for a time, and resolved that I would go to
All this while I sat upon the ground very much terrified and dejected, when on work with all speed to build me a wall with piles and cables, etc., in a circle, as
a sudden it came into my thoughts that, these winds and rain being the before, and set my tent up in it when it was finished, but that I would venture to
stay where I was till it was finished and fit to remove to. This was the 21st. than formerly, so many things came daily on shore which the sea had loosened,
April 22. The next morning I began to consider of means to put this resolve in and which the winds and water rolled by degrees to the land.
execution, but I was at a great loss about my tools. I had three large axes and This wholly diverted my thoughts from the design of removing my habitation;
abundance of hatchets (for we carried the hatchets for traffic with the Indians), and I busied myself mightily that day especially, in searching whether I could
but with much chopping and cutting knotty hard wood, they were all full of make any way into the ship, but I found nothing was to be expected of that kind,
notches, and dull, and though I had a grindstone, I could not turn it and grind my for that all the inside of the ship was choked up with sand. However, as I had
tools too; this cost me as much thought as a statesman would have bestowed learned not to despair of anything, I resolved to pull everything to pieces that I
upon a grand point of politics, or a judge upon the life and death of a man. At could of the ship, concluding that everything I could get from her would be of
length I contrived a wheel with a string, to turn it with my foot, that I might have some use or other to me.
both my hands at liberty. NOTE: I had never seen any such thing in England, or May 3. I began with my saw, and cut a piece of a beam through, which I
at least not to take notice how it was done, though since I have observed it is thought held some of the upper part, or quarter-deck, together, and when I had
very common there; besides that, my grindstone was very large and heavy. This cut it through, I cleared away the sand as well as I could from the side which lay
machine cost me a full week’s work to bring it to perfection. highest; but the tide coming in, I was obliged to give over for that time.
April 28, 29. These two whole days I took up in grinding my tools, my May 4. I went a-fishing, but caught not one fish that I durst eat of, till I was
machine for turning my grindstone performing very well. weary of my sport, when, just going to leave off, I caught a young dolphin. I had
April 30. Having perceived my bread had been low a great while, now I took a made me a long line of some rope yarn, but I had no hooks, yet I frequently
survey of it, and reduced myself to one biscuit cake a day, which made my heart caught fish enough, as much as I cared to eat; all which I dried in the sun and ate
very heavy. them dry.
May 1. In the morning, looking towards the seaside, the tide being low, I saw May 5. Worked on the wreck, cut another beam asunder, and brought three
something lie on the shore bigger than ordinary, and it looked like a cask; when I great fir planks off from the decks, which I tied together and made swim on
came to it, I found a small barrel and two or three pieces of the wreck of the shore when the tide of flood came on.
ship, which were driven on shore by the late hurricane, and looking towards the May 6. Worked on the wreck, got several iron bolts out of her, and other
wreck itself, I thought it seemed to lie higher out of the water than it used to do; pieces of ironwork; worked very hard, and came home very much tired, and had
I examined the barrel which was driven on shore, and soon found it was a barrel thoughts of giving it over.
of gunpowder, but it had taken water, and the powder was caked as hard as a May 7. Went to the wreck again, but with an intent not to work, but found the
stone; however, I rolled it farther on shore for the present, and went on upon the weight of the wreck had broke itself down, the beams being cut, that several
sands, as near as I could to the wreck of the ship, to look for more. pieces of the ship seemed to lie loose, and the inside of the hold lay so open that
When I came down to the ship I found it strangely removed. The forecastle, I could see into it, but almost full of water and sand.
which lay before buried in sand, was heaved up at least six foot, and the stern, May 8. Went to the wreck, and carried an iron crow to wrench up the deck,
which was broke to pieces and parted from the rest by the force of the sea soon which lay now quite clear of the water or sand; I wrenched open two planks and
after I had left rummaging her, was tossed, as it were, up, and cast on one side, brought them on shore also with the tide. I left the iron crow in the wreck for
and the sand was thrown so high on that side next her stern that whereas there next day.
was a great place of water before, so that I could not come within a quarter of a
May 9. Went to the wreck, and with the crow made way into the body of the
mile of the wreck without swimming, I could now walk quite up to her when the
wreck, and felt several casks and loosened them with the crow, but could not
tide was out; I was surprised with this at first, but soon concluded it must be
break them up; I felt also the roll of English lead and could stir it, but it was too
done by the earthquake, and as by this violence the ship was more broken open
heavy to remove.
May 10, 11, 12, 13, 14. Went every day to the wreck, and got a great deal of June 18. Rained all day, and I stayed within. I thought at this time the rain felt
pieces of timber and boards, or plank, and two or three hundredweight of iron. cold, and I was something chilly, which I knew was not usual in that latitude.
May 15. I carried two hatchets to try if I could not cut a piece off of the roll of June 19. Very ill, and shivering, as if the weather had been cold.
lead, by placing the edge of one hatchet and driving it with the other; but as it lay June 20. No rest all night; violent pains in my head, and feverish.
about a foot and a half in the water, I could not make any blow to drive the June 21. Very ill, frighted almost to death with the apprehensions of my sad
hatchet. condition, to be sick and no help. Prayed to God for the first time since the storm
May 16. It had blowed hard in the night, and the wreck appeared more broken off of Hull, but scarce knew what I said, or why; my thoughts being all confused.
by the force of the water; but I stayed so long in the woods to get pigeons for June 22. A little better, but under dreadful apprehensions of sickness.
food that the tide prevented me going to the wreck that day.
June 23. Very bad again, cold and shivering, and then a violent headache.
May 17. I saw some pieces of the wreck blown on shore, at a great distance,
June 24. Much better.
near two miles off me, but resolved to see what they were and found it was a
piece of the head, but too heavy for me to bring away. June 25. An ague very violent; the fit held me seven hours, cold fit and hot,
with faint sweats after it.
May 24. Every day to this day I worked on the wreck, and with hard labour I
loosened some things so much with the crow, that with the first flowing tide June 26. Better; and having no victuals to eat, took my gun, but found myself
several casks floated out, and two of the seamen’s chests; but the wind blowing very weak; however, I killed a she-goat and with much difficulty got it home and
from the shore, nothing came to land that day but pieces of timber and a broiled some of it and ate; I would fain have stewed it and made some broth, but
hogshead which had some Brazil pork in it, but the salt water and the sand had had no pot.
spoiled it. June 27. The ague again so violent that I lay abed all day and neither ate nor
I continued this work every day to the 15th of June, except the time necessary drank. I was ready to perish for thirst, but so weak I had not strength to stand up
to get food, which I always appointed, during this part of my employment, to be or to get myself any water to drink. Prayed to God again, but was lightheaded;
when the tide was up, that I might be ready when it was ebbed out, and by this and when I was not, I was so ignorant that I knew not what to say; only I lay and
time I had gotten timber and plank and ironwork enough to have builded a good cried, ‘‘Lord look upon me! Lord, pity me! Lord have mercy upon me!’’ I
boat, if I had known how; and also, I got at several times, and in several pieces, suppose I did nothing else for two or three hours till, the fit wearing off, I fell
near a hundredweight of the sheet lead. asleep, and did not wake till far in the night; when I waked, I found myself much
refreshed, but weak, and exceeding thirsty. However, as I had no water in my
June 16. Going down to the seaside, I found a large tortoise or turtle; this was
whole habitation, I was forced to lie till morning and went to sleep again. In this
the first I had seen, which it seems was only my misfortune, not any defect of the
second sleep I had this terrible dream.
place, or scarcity; for had I happened to be on the other side of the island, I
might have had hundreds of them every day, as I found afterwards; but perhaps I thought that I was sitting on the ground, on the outside of my wall, where I
had paid dear enough for them. sat when the storm blew after the earthquake, and that I saw a man descend from
a great black cloud, in a bright flame of fire, and light upon the ground. He was
June 17. I spent in cooking the turtle; I found in her threescore eggs; and her
all over as bright as a flame, so that I could but just bear to look towards him; his
flesh was to me at that time the most savoury and pleasant that ever I tasted in
countenance was most inexpressibly dreadful, impossible for words to describe;
my life, having had no flesh but of goats and fowls since I landed in this horrid
when he stepped upon the ground with his feet, I thought the earth trembled, just
place.
as it had done before in the earthquake, and all the air looked, to my
apprehension, as if it had been filled with flashes of fire.
I Am Very Ill and Frighted He was no sooner landed upon the earth but he moved forward towards me,
with a long spear or weapon in his hand, to kill me; and when he came to a rising thankfulness in my thoughts. When again I was shipwrecked, ruined, and in
ground, at some distance, he spoke to me, or I heard a voice so terrible, that it is danger of drowning on this island, I was as far from remorse or looking on it as a
impossible to express the terror of it; all that I can say I understood was this: judgment; I only said to myself often that I was an unfortunate dog and born to
‘‘Seeing all these things have not brought thee to repentance, now thou shalt be always miserable.
die.’’ At which words, I thought he lifted up the spear that was in his hand to kill It is true, when I got on shore first here, and found all my ship’s crew drowned
me. and myself spared, I was surprised with a kind of ecstasy, and some transports of
No one that shall ever read this account will expect that I should be able to soul which, had the grace of God assisted, might have come up to true
describe the horrors of my soul at this terrible vision; I mean, that even while it thankfulness; but it ended where it began, in a mere common flight of joy, or, as
was a dream, I even dreamed of those horrors; nor is it any more possible to I may say, being glad I was alive, without the least reflection upon the
describe the impression that remained upon my mind when I awaked and found distinguishing goodness of the hand which had preserved me, and had singled
it was but a dream. me out to be preserved, when all the rest were destroyed; or an inquiry why
I had, alas! no divine knowledge; what I had received by the good instruction Providence had been thus merciful to me; even just the same common sort of joy
of my father was then worn out by an uninterrupted series, for eight years, of which seamen generally have after they are got safe ashore from a shipwreck,
seafaring wickedness, and a constant conversation with nothing but such as were which they drown all in the next bowl of punch and forget almost as soon as it is
like myself, wicked and profane to the last degree. I do not remember that I had over, and all the rest of my life was like it.
in all that time one thought that so much as tended either to looking upwards Even when I was afterwards, on due consideration, made sensible of my
towards God or inwards towards a reflection upon my own ways. But a certain condition, how I was cast on this dreadful place, out of the reach of human kind,
stupidity of soul, without desire of good, or conscience of evil, had entirely out of all hope of relief, or prospect of redemption, as soon as I saw but a
overwhelmed me, and I was all that the most hardened, unthinking, wicked prospect of living and that I should not starve and perish for hunger, all the sense
creature among our common sailors can be supposed to be, not having the least of my affliction wore off, and I began to be very easy, applied myself to the
sense, either of the fear of God in danger or of thankfulness to God in works proper for my preservation and supply, and was far enough from being
deliverances. afflicted at my condition, as a judgment from Heaven, or as the hand of God
In the relating what is already past of my story, this will be the more easily against me; these were thoughts which very seldom entered into my head.
believed, when I shall add, that through all the variety of miseries that had to this The growing up of the corn, as is hinted in my journal, had at first some little
day befallen me, I never had so much as one thought of it being the hand of God, influence upon me, and began to affect me with seriousness, as long as I thought
or that it was a just punishment for my sin, my rebellious behaviour against my it had something miraculous in it; but as soon as ever that part of the thought was
father, or my present sins, which were great; or so much as a punishment for the removed, all the impression which was raised from it wore off also, as I have
general course of my wicked life. When I was on the desperate expedition on the noted already.
desert shores of Africa, I never had so much as one thought of what would Even the earthquake, though nothing could be more terrible in its nature, or
become of me; or one wish to God to direct me whither I should go, or to keep more immediately directing to the invisible Power which alone directs such
me from the danger which apparently surrounded me, as well from voracious things, yet no sooner was the first fright over but the impression it had made
creatures as cruel savages. But I was merely thoughtless of a God, or a went off also. I had no more sense of God or His judgments, much less of the
Providence, acted like a mere brute from the principles of nature, and by the present affliction, of my circumstances being from His hand, than if I had been
dictates of common sense only, and indeed hardly that. in the most prosperous condition of life.
When I was delivered and taken up at sea by the Portugal captain, well used, But now, when I began to be sick, and a leisurely view of the miseries of death
and dealt justly and honourably with, as well as charitably, I had not the least came to place itself before me; when my spirits began to sink under the burden
of a strong distemper, and nature was exhausted with the violence of the fever; day, and now was my time to get something to refresh and support myself when
conscience, that had slept so long, began to awake, and I began to reproach I should be ill; and the first thing I did, I filled a large square case bottle with
myself with my past life, in which I had so evidently, by uncommon wickedness, water, and set it upon my table, in reach of my bed; and to take off the chill or
provoked the justice of God to lay me under uncommon strokes, and to deal with aguish disposition of the water, I put about a quarter of a pint of rum into it and
me in so vindictive a manner. mixed them together; then I got me a piece of the goat’s flesh, and broiled it on
These reflections oppressed me for the second or third day of my distemper, the coals, but could eat very little; I walked about, but was very weak, and
and in the violence as well of the fever as of the dreadful reproaches of my withal, very sad and heavy-hearted in the sense of my miserable condition,
conscience extorted some words from me, like praying to God, though I cannot dreading the return of my distemper the next day. At night I made my supper of
say they were either a prayer attended with desires or with hopes; it was rather three of the turtle’s eggs, which I roasted in the ashes, and ate, as we call it, in
the voice of mere fright and distress; my thoughts were confused, the the shell; and this was the first bit of meat I had ever asked God’s blessing to,
convictions great upon my mind, and the horror of dying in such a miserable even as I could remember, in my whole life.
condition raised vapours into my head with the mere apprehensions; and in these After I had eaten, I tried to walk, but found myself so weak that I could hardly
hurries of my soul, I know not what my tongue might express. But it was rather carry the gun (for I never went out without that); so I went but a little way, and
exclamation, such as, ‘‘Lord! what a miserable creature am I! If I should be sick, sat down upon the ground, looking out upon the sea, which was just before me,
I shall certainly die for want of help, and what will become of me!’’ Then the and very calm and smooth. As I sat here, some such thoughts as these occurred
tears burst out of my eyes, and I could say no more for a good while. to me:
In this interval, the good advice of my father came to my mind, and presently What is this earth and sea, of which I have seen so much? Whence is it
his prediction, which I mentioned at the beginning of this story, viz., that if I did produced, and what am I, and all the other creatures, wild and tame, human and
take this foolish step, God would not bless me, and I would have leisure brutal, whence are we?
hereafter to reflect upon having neglected his counsel, when there might be none Sure we are all made by some secret Power who formed the earth and sea, the
to assist in my recovery. ‘‘Now,’’ said I aloud, ‘‘my dear father’s words are come air and sky; and who is that?
to pass. God’s justice has overtaken me, and I have none to help or hear me. I Then it followed most naturally, it is God that has made it all. Well, but then it
rejected the voice of Providence, which had mercifully put me in a posture or came on strangely; if God has made all these things, He guides and governs
station of life, wherein I might have been happy and easy; but I would neither them all, and all things that concern them; for the Power that could make all
see it myself, or learn to know the blessing of it from my parents; I left them to things must certainly have power to guide and direct them.
mourn over my folly, and now I am left to mourn under the consequences of it. I
If so, nothing can happen in the great circuit of His works, either without His
refused their help and assistance, who would have lifted me into the world, and
knowledge or appointment.
would have made everything easy to me, and now I have difficulties to struggle
with, too great for even nature itself to support, and no assistance, no help, no And if nothing happens without His knowledge, He knows that I am here and
comfort, no advice.’’ Then I cried out, ‘‘Lord be my help, for I am in great am in this dreadful condition; and if nothing happens without His appointment,
distress.’’ He has appointed all this to befall me.
This was the first prayer, if I may call it so, that I had made for many years. Nothing occurred to my thoughts to contradict any of these conclusions; and
But I return to my journal. therefore it rested upon me with the greater force that it must needs be, that God
had appointed all this to befall me; that I was brought to this miserable
June 28. Having been somewhat refreshed with the sleep I had had, and the fit
circumstance by His direction, He having the sole power, not of me only, but of
being entirely off, I got up; and though the fright and terror of my dream was
everything that happened in the world. Immediately it followed:
very great, yet I considered that the fit of the ague would return again the next
Why has God done this to me? What have I done to be thus used?
My conscience presently checked me in that inquiry, as if I had blasphemed, glorify me.’’
and methought it spoke to me like a voice: ‘‘WRETCH! dost thou ask what thou The words were very apt to my case, and made some impression upon my
hast done? Look back upon a dreadful misspent life and ask thyself what thou thoughts at the time of reading them, though not so much as they did afterwards;
hast not done; ask, Why is it that thou wert not long ago destroyed? Why wert for as for being delivered, the word had no sound, as I may say, to me; the thing
thou not drowned in Yarmouth Roads? Killed in the fight when the ship was was so remote, so impossible in my apprehension of things, that I began to say,
taken by the Sallee man-of-war? Devoured by the wild beasts on the coast of as the children of Israel did, when they were promised flesh to eat, ‘‘Can God
Africa? Or drowned here, when all the crew perished but thyself? Dost thou ask, spread a table in the wilderness?’’; so I began to say, ‘‘Can God Himself deliver
What have I done?’’ me from this place?’’ and as it was not for many years that any hope appeared,
I was struck dumb with these reflections, as one astonished, and had not a this prevailed very often upon my thoughts. But, however, the words made a
word to say, no, not to answer to myself, but rose up pensive and sad, walked great impression upon me, and I mused upon them very often. It grew now late,
back to my retreat, and went up over my wall, as if I had been going to bed, but and the tobacco had, as I said, dozed my head so much, that I inclined to sleep;
my thoughts were sadly disturbed, and I had no inclination to sleep; so I sat so I left my lamp burning in the cave, lest I should want anything in the night,
down in my chair and lighted my lamp, for it began to be dark. Now, as the and went to bed; but before I lay down, I did what I never had done in all my
apprehension of the return of my distemper terrified me very much, it occurred life: I kneeled down and prayed to God to fulfill the promise to me, that if I
to my thought that the Brazilians take no physic but their tobacco, for almost all called upon Him in the day of trouble, He would deliver me. After my broken
distempers; and I had a piece of a roll of tobacco in one of the chests, which was and imperfect prayer was over, I drank the rum in which I had steeped the
quite cured, and some also that was green, and not quite cured. tobacco, which was so strong and rank of the tobacco, that indeed I could scarce
I went, directed by Heaven, no doubt, for in this chest I found a cure both for get it down; immediately upon this I went to bed; I found presently it flew up in
soul and body. I opened the chest, and found what I looked for, viz., the tobacco; my head violently, but I fell into a sound sleep and waked no more till by the sun
and as the few books I had saved lay there too, I took out one of the Bibles it must necessarily be near three o’clock in the afternoon the next day; nay, to
which I mentioned before, and which to this time I had not found leisure, or so this hour I am partly of the opinion that I slept all the next day and night, and till
much as inclination, to look into; I say, I took it out, and brought both that and almost three that day after; for otherwise I knew not how I should lose a day out
the tobacco with me to the table. of my reckoning in the days of the week, as it appeared some years after I had
What use to make of the tobacco I knew not, as to my distemper, or whether it done; for if I had lost it by crossing and re-crossing the Line, I should have lost
was good for it or no; but I tried several experiments with it, as if I was resolved more than one day. But certainly I lost a day in my account, and never knew
it should hit one way or other. I first took a piece of a leaf, and chewed it in my which way.
mouth, which indeed at first almost stupefied my brain, the tobacco being green Be that, however, one way or other, when I awaked I found myself
and strong and that I had not been much used to it; then I took some and steeped exceedingly refreshed, and my spirits lively and cheerful; when I got up, I was
it an hour or two in some rum, and resolved to take a dose of it when I lay down; stronger than I was the day before, and my stomach better, for I was hungry; and
and lastly, I burnt some upon a pan of coals, and held my nose close over the in short, I had no fit the next day, but continued much altered for the better; this
smoke of it as long as I could bear it, as well for the heat as almost for was the 29th.
suffocation. The 30th was my well day, of course, and I went abroad with my gun, but did
In the interval of this operation, I took up the Bible and began to read, but my not care to travel too far. I killed a seafowl or two, something like a brand goose,
head was too much disturbed with the tobacco to bear reading, at least at that and brought them home, but was not very forward to eat them; so I ate some
time; only having opened the book casually, the first words that occurred to me more of the turtle’s eggs, which were very good. This evening I renewed the
were these, ‘‘Call on me in the day of trouble, and I will deliver, and thou shalt medicine, which I had supposed did me good the day before, viz., the tobacco
steeped in rum, only I did not take so much as before, nor did I chew any of the
leaf or hold my head over the smoke; however, I was not so well the next day, and from this time, I may say, I began to have hope that God would hear me.
which was the 1st of July, as I hoped I should have been; for I had a little spice Now I began to construe the words mentioned above, ‘‘Call on Me, and I will
of the cold fit, but it was not much. deliver you,’’ in a different sense from what I had ever done before; for then I
July 2. I renewed the medicine all the three ways, and dosed myself with it as had no notion of anything being called deliverance but my being delivered from
at first; and doubled the quantity which I drank. the captivity I was in, for though I was indeed at large in the place, yet the island
July 3. I missed the fit for good and all, though I did not recover my full was certainly a prison to me, and that in the worst sense in the world; but now I
strength for some weeks after. While I was thus gathering strength, my thoughts learned to take it in another sense. Now I looked back upon my past life with
ran exceedingly upon this Scripture, ‘‘I will deliver thee’’; and the impossibility such horror, and my sins appeared so dreadful, that my soul sought nothing of
of my deliverance lay much upon my mind, in bar of my ever expecting it. But God but deliverance from the load of guilt that bore down all my comfort. As for
as I was discouraging myself with such thoughts, it occurred to my mind that I my solitary life, it was nothing; I did not so much as pray to be delivered from it
pored so much upon my deliverance from the main affliction that I disregarded or think of it; it was all of no consideration in comparison to this; and I added
the deliverance I had received; and I was, as it were, made to ask myself such this part here to hint to whoever shall read it, that whenever they come to a true
questions as these, viz.: Have I not been delivered, and wonderfully, too, from sense of things, they will find deliverance from sin a much greater blessing than
sickness? From the most distressed condition that could be, and that was so deliverance from affliction.
frightful to me? And what notice had I taken of it? Had I done my part? God had
delivered me, but I had not glorified Him; that is to say, I had not owned and
been thankful for that as a deliverance, and how could I expect greater I Take a Survey of the Island
deliverance? But, leaving this part, I return to my journal.
This touched my heart very much, and immediately I kneeled down and gave My condition began now to be, though not less miserable as to my way of
God thanks aloud for my recovery from my sickness. living, yet much easier to my mind; and my thoughts being directed, by a
July 4. In the morning I took the Bible, and beginning at the New Testament, I constant reading the Scripture and praying to God, to things of a higher nature, I
began seriously to read it, and imposed upon myself to read a while every had a great deal of comfort within which till now I knew nothing of; also, as my
morning and every night, not tying myself to the number of chapters, but as long health and strength returned, I bestirred myself to furnish myself with everything
as my thoughts should engage me. It was not long after I set seriously to this that I wanted and make my way of living as regular as I could.
work but I found my heart more deeply and sincerely affected with the From the 4th of July to the 14th I was chiefly employed in walking about with
wickedness of my past life. The impression of my dream revived, and the words, my gun in my hand, a little and a little at a time, as a man that was gathering up
‘‘All these things have not brought thee to repentance,’’ ran seriously in my his strength after a fit of sickness. For it is hardly to be imagined how low I was,
thoughts. I was earnestly begging of God to give me repentance, when it and to what weakness I was reduced. The application which I made use of was
happened providentially the very day that reading the Scripture, I came to these perfectly new and perhaps what had never cured an ague before; neither can I
words, ‘‘He is exalted a Prince and a Saviour, to give repentance, and to give recommend it to anyone to practice, by this experiment; and though it did carry
remission.’’ I threw down the book, and with my heart as well as my hands lifted off the fit, yet it rather contributed to weakening me; for I had frequent
up to Heaven, in a kind of ecstasy of joy, I cried out aloud, ‘‘Jesus, Thou Son of convulsions in my nerves and limbs for some time.
David, Jesus, Thou exalted Prince and Saviour, give me repentance!’’ I learned from it also this in particular, that being abroad in the rainy season
This was the first time that I could say, in the true sense of the words, that I was the most pernicious thing to my health that could be, especially in those
prayed in all my life; for now I prayed with a sense of my condition, and with a rains which came attended with storms and hurricanes of wind; for as the rain
true Scripture view of hope founded on the encouragement of the Word of God; which came in a dry season was always most accompanied with such storms, so
I found that rain was much more dangerous than the rain which fell in September was warned by my experience to eat sparingly of them, remembering that when I
and October. was ashore in Barbary the eating of grapes killed several of our Englishmen who
I had been now in this unhappy island above ten months; all possibility of were slaves there, by throwing them into fluxes and fevers. But I found an
deliverance from this condition seemed to be entirely taken from me; and I excellent use for these grapes, and that was to cure or dry them in the sun and
firmly believed that no human shape had ever set foot upon that place. Having keep them as dried grapes or raisins are kept, which I thought would be, as
now secured my habitation, as I thought, fully to my mind, I had a great desire to indeed they were, as wholesome and as agreeable to eat when no grapes might
make a more perfect discovery of the island and to see what other productions I be to be had.
might find, which I yet knew nothing of. I spent all that evening there, and went not back to my habitation, which by
It was the 15th July that I began to take a more particular survey of the island the way was the first night, as I might say, I had lain from home. In the night I
itself. I went up the creek first, where, as I hinted, I brought my rafts on shore; I took my first contrivance, and got up into a tree, where I slept well; and the next
found, after I came about two miles up, that the tide did not flow any higher and morning proceeded upon my discovery, travelling near four miles, as I might
that it was no more than a little brook of running water, and very fresh and good; judge by the length of the valley, keeping still due north, with a ridge of hills on
but this being the dry season, there was hardly any water in some parts of it, at the south and north side of me.
least not enough to run in any stream, so as it could be perceived. At the end of this march I came to an opening, where the country seemed to
On the bank of this brook I found many pleasant savannas, or meadows, plain, descend to the west, and a little spring of fresh water, which issued out of the
smooth, and covered with grass; and on the rising parts of them next to the side of the hill by me, ran the other way, that is, due east; and the country
higher grounds, where the water, as it might be supposed, never overflowed, I appeared so fresh, so green, so flourishing, everything being in a constant
found a great deal of tobacco, green and growing to a great and very strong stalk. verdure, or flourish of spring, that it looked like a planted garden.
There were divers other plants, which I had no notion of, or understanding about, I descended a little on the side of that delicious vale, surveying it with a secret
and might perhaps have virtues of their own, which I could not find out. kind of pleasure (though mixed with my other afflicting thoughts), to think that
I searched for the cassava root, which the Indians in all that climate make their this was all my own, that I was king and lord of all this country indefeasibly and
bread of, but I could find none. I saw large plants of aloes, but did not then had a right of possession; and if I could convey it, I might have it in inheritance,
understand them. I saw several sugar canes, but wild, and, for want of as completely as any lord of a manor in England. I saw here abundance of cocoa
cultivation, imperfect. I contented myself with these discoveries for this time, trees, orange and lemon and citron trees; but all wild and very few bearing any
and came back musing with myself what course I might take to know the virtue fruit, at least not then. However, the green limes that I gathered were not only
and goodness of any of the fruits or plants which I should discover; but could pleasant to eat but very wholesome; and I mixed their juice afterwards with
bring it to no conclusion; for in short, I had made so little observation while I water, which made it very wholesome and very cool and refreshing.
was in the Brazils that I knew little of the plants in the field, at least very little I found now I had business enough to gather and carry home; and I resolved to
that might serve me to any purpose now in my distress. lay up a store as well of grapes as limes and lemons, to furnish myself for the
The next day, the 16th, I went up the same way again, and after going wet season, which I knew was approaching.
something farther than I had gone the day before, I found the brook and the In order to do this, I gathered a great heap of grapes in one place and a lesser
savannas began to cease, and the country became more woody than before; in heap in another place, and a great parcel of limes and lemons in another place;
this part I found different fruits, and particularly I found melons upon the ground and taking a few of each with me, I travelled homeward and resolved to come
in great abundance, and grapes upon the trees; the vines had spread indeed over again and bring a bag or sack, or what I could make, to carry the rest home.
the trees, and the clusters of grapes were just now in their prime, very ripe and Accordingly, having spent three days in this journey, I came home (so I must
rich. This was a surprising discovery, and I was exceeding glad of them; but I now call my tent and my cave). But before I got thither, the grapes were spoiled;
the richness of the fruits and the weight of the juice having broken them and very secure, sometimes two or three nights together, always going over it with a
bruised them, they were good for little or nothing; as to the limes, they were ladder, as before; so that I fancied now I had my country house and my seacoast
good, but I could bring but a few. house. And this work took me up to the beginning of August.
The next day, being the 19th, I went back, having made me two small bags to I had but newly finished my fence and began to enjoy my labour, but the rains
bring home my harvest. But I was surprised, when coming to my heap of grapes, came on and made me stick close to my first habitation; for though I had made
which were so rich and fine when I gathered them, I found them all spread me a tent like the other, with a piece of a sail, and spread it very well; yet I had
about, trod to pieces, and dragged about, some here, some there, and abundance not the shelter of a hill to keep me from storms, not a cave behind me to retreat
eaten and devoured. By this I concluded there were some wild creatures into, when the rains were extraordinary.
thereabouts, which had done this; but what they were I knew not. About the beginning of August, as I said, I had finished my bower and began
However, as I found that there was no laying them up in heaps, and no to enjoy myself. The 3rd of August I found the grapes I had hung up were
carrying them away in a sack, but that one way they would be destroyed, and the perfectly dried, and indeed, were excellent good raisins of the sun; so I began to
other way they would be crushed with their own weight, I took another course; take them down from the trees, and it was very happy that I did so; for the rains
for I gathered a large quantity of the grapes, and hung them up upon the out- which followed would have spoiled them, and I had lost the best part of my
branches of the trees, that they might cure and dry in the sun; and as for the winter food; for I had above two hundred large bunches of them. No sooner had
limes and lemons, I carried as many back as I could well stand under. I taken them all down and carried most of them home to my cave but it began to
When I came home from this journey, I contemplated with great pleasure the rain, and from hence, which was the 14th of August, it rained more or less every
fruitfulness of that valley and the pleasantness of the situation, the security from day, till the middle of October; and sometimes so violently that I could not stir
storms on that side the water, and the wood, and concluded that I had pitched out of my cave for several days.
upon a place to fix my abode which was by far the worst part of the country. In this season I was much surprised with the increase of my family. I had been
Upon the whole, I began to consider of removing my habitation, and to look out concerned for the loss of one of my cats, who ran away from me, or, as I
for a place equally safe as where I now was situate, if possible, in that pleasant thought, had been dead, and I heard no more tale or tidings of her till, to my
fruitful part of the island. astonishment, she came home about the end of August, with three kittens. This
This thought ran long in my head, and I was exceeding fond of it for some was the more strange to me because though I had killed a wild cat, as I called it,
time, the pleasantness of the place tempting me; but when I came to a nearer with my gun, yet I thought it was a quite different kind from our European cats;
view of it, and to consider that I was now by the seaside, where it was at least yet the young cats were the same kind of house breed like the old one; and both
possible that something might happen to my advantage, and by the same ill fate my cats being females, I thought it very strange. But from these three cats, I
that brought me hither might bring some other unhappy wretches to the same afterwards came to be so pestered with cats that I was forced to kill them like
place; and though it was scarce probable that any such thing should ever happen, vermin or wild beasts, and to drive them from my house as much as possible.
yet to enclose myself among the hills and woods, in the centre of the island, was From the 14th of August to the 26th, incessant rain, so that I could not stir,
to anticipate my bondage and to render such an affair not only improbable but and was now very careful not to be much wet. In this confinement I began to be
impossible; and that therefore I ought not by any means to remove. straitened for food, but venturing out twice, I one day killed a goat; and the last
However, I was so enamoured of this place that I spent much of my time there day, which was the 26th, found a very large tortoise, which was a treat to me,
for the whole remaining part of the month of July; and though upon second and my food was regulated thus: I ate a bunch of raisins for my breakfast, a
thoughts I resolved as above not to remove, yet I built me a little kind of a bower piece of the goat’s flesh, or of the turtle, for my dinner, broiled (for to my great
and surrounded it at a distance with a strong fence, being a double hedge as high misfortune, I had no vessel to boil or stew anything); and two or three of the
as I could reach, well staked and filled between with brushwood; and here I lay turtle’s eggs for my supper.
During this confinement in my cover by the rain, I worked daily two or three
hours at enlarging my cave, and by degrees worked it on towards one side, till I I Sow My Grain
came to the outside of the hill, and made a door or way out, which came beyond
THE RAINY season and the dry season began now to appear regular to me, and
my fence or wall, and so I came in and out this way; but I was not perfectly easy I learned to divide them so as to provide for them accordingly. But I bought all
at lying so open; for as I had managed myself before, I was in a perfect my experience before I had it; and this I am going to relate was one of the most
enclosure, whereas now I thought I lay exposed, and open for anything to come discouraging experiments that I made at all. I have mentioned that I had saved
in upon me; and yet I could not perceive that there was any living thing to fear, the few ears of barley and rice which I had so surprisingly found spring up, as I
the biggest creature that I had yet seen upon the island being a goat. thought, of themselves, and believe there were about thirty stalks of rice, and
September 30. I was now come to the unhappy anniversary of my landing. I about twenty of barley; and now I thought it a proper time to sow it after the
cast up the notches on my post, and found I had been on shore three hundred and rains, the sun being in its southern position, going from me.
sixty-five days. I kept this day as a solemn fast, setting it apart to religious Accordingly I dug up a piece of ground as well as I could with my wooden
exercise, prostrating myself on the ground with the most serious humiliation, spade, and dividing it into two parts, I sowed my grain; but as I was sowing, it
confessing my sins to God, acknowledging His righteous judgments upon me, casually occurred to my thoughts that I would not sow it all at first, because I did
and praying to Him to have mercy on me, through Jesus Christ; and having not not know when was the proper time for it; so I sowed about two-thirds of the
tasted the least refreshment for twelve hours, even till the going down of the sun, seed, leaving about a handful of each.
I then ate a biscuit cake and a bunch of grapes, and went to bed, finishing the
day as I began it. It was a great comfort to me afterwards that I did so, for not one grain of that I
sowed this time came to anything; for the dry months following, the earth having
I had all this time observed no Sabbath day; for as at first I had no sense of had no rain after the seed was sown, it had no moisture to assist its growth, and
religion upon my mind, I had after some time omitted to distinguish the weeks never came up at all till the wet season had come again, and then it grew as if it
by making a longer notch than ordinary for the Sabbath day, and so did not really had been but newly sown.
know what any of the days were; but now having cast up the days, as above, I
found I had been there a year; so I divided it into weeks, and set apart every Finding my first seed did not grow, which I easily imagined was by the
seventh day for a Sabbath; though I found at the end of my account I had lost a drought, I sought for a moister piece of ground to make another trial in, and I
dug up a piece of ground near my new bower and sowed the rest of my seed in
day or two in my reckoning.
February, a little before the vernal equinox; and this, having the rainy months of
A little after this my ink began to fail me, and so I contented myself to use it March and April to water it, sprung up very pleasantly and yielded a very good
more sparingly, and to write down only the most remarkable events of my life, crop; but having part of the seed left only, and not daring to sow all that I had, I
without continuing a daily memorandum of other things. had but a small quantity at last, my whole crop not amounting to above half a
peck of each kind.
But by this experiment I was made master of my business, and knew exactly
when the proper season was to sow; and that I might expect two seed times, and
two harvests, every year.
While this corn was growing, I made a little discovery which was of use to me
afterwards. As soon as the rains were over and the weather began to settle, which
was about the month of November, I made a visit up the country to my bower,
where, though I had not been some months, yet I found all things just as I left
them. The circle or double hedge that I had made was not only firm and entire,
but the stakes which I had cut out of some trees that grew thereabouts were all myself with provisions beforehand, that I might not be obliged to go out; and I
shot out and grown with long branches, as much as a willow-tree usually shoots sat within doors as much as possible during the wet months.
the first year after lopping its head. I could not tell what tree to call it, that these In this time I found much employment (and very suitable also to the time), for
stakes were cut from. I was surprised, and yet very well pleased, to see the I found great occasion of many things which I had no way to furnish myself with
young trees grow; and I pruned them, and led them up to grow as much alike as I but by hard labour and constant application; particularly, I tried many ways to
could; and it is scarce credible how beautiful a figure they grew into in three make myself a basket, but all the twigs I could get for the purpose proved so
years; so that though the hedge made a circle of about twenty-five yards in brittle that they would do nothing. It proved of excellent advantage to me now,
diameter, yet the trees, for such I might now call them, soon covered it; and it that when I was a boy, I used to take great delight in standing at a basket
was a complete shade, sufficient to lodge under all the dry season. maker’s, in the town where my father lived, to see them make their wickerware;
This made me resolve to cut some more stakes, and make me a hedge like this and being, as boys usually are, very officious to help, and a great observer of the
in a semicircle round my wall (I mean that of my first dwelling), which I did; manner how they worked those things, and sometimes lending a hand, I had by
and placing the trees or stakes in a double row, at about eight yards’ distance this means full knowledge of the methods of it, that I wanted nothing but the
from my first fence, they grew presently, and were at first a fine cover to my materials; when it came into my mind that the twigs of that tree from whence I
habitation, and afterwards served for a defence also, as I shall observe in its cut my stakes that grew might possibly be as tough as the sallows and willows
order. and osiers in England, and I resolved to try.
I found now that the seasons of the year might generally be divided, not into Accordingly, the next day I went to my country house, as I called it, and
summer and winter, as in Europe, but into the rainy seasons and the dry seasons, cutting some of the smaller twigs, I found them to my purpose as much as I
which were generally thus: could desire; whereupon I came the next time prepared with a hatchet to cut
down a quantity, which I soon found, for there was great plenty of them; these I
set up to dry within my circle or hedge, and when they were fit for use, I carried
them to my cave; and here during the next season I employed myself in making,
as well as I could, a great many baskets, both to carry earth or to carry or lay up
anything as I had occasion; and though I did not finish them very handsomely,
yet I made them sufficiently serviceable for my purpose; and thus afterwards I
took care never to be without them; and as my wickerware decayed, I made
more; especially I made strong deep baskets to place my corn in, instead of
sacks, when I should come to have any quantity of it.
Having mastered this difficulty, and employed a world of time about it, I
bestirred myself to see, if possible, how to supply two wants. I had no vessels to
hold anything that was liquid, except two runlets which were almost full of rum,
and some glass bottles, some of the common size, and others which were case
bottles, square, for the holding of waters, spirits, etc. I had not so much as a pot
to boil anything, except a great kettle which I saved out of the ship, and which
The rainy season sometimes held longer or shorter, as the winds happened to was too big for such use as I desired it, viz., to make broth and stew a bit of meat
blow; but this was the general observation I made. After I had found by by itself. The second thing I would fain have had was a tobacco pipe; but it was
experience the ill consequence of being abroad in the rain, I took care to furnish impossible to me to make one; however, I found a contrivance for that too at last.
I employed myself in planting my second rows of stakes, or piles, and in this
wicker working all the summer, or dry season, when another business took me I Travel Quite Across the Island
up more time than it could be imagined I could spare.
I MENTIONED before that I had a great mind to see the whole island, and that I
had travelled up the brook, and so on to where I built my bower, and where I had
an opening quite to the sea on the other side of the island; I now resolved to
travel quite across to the seashore on that side; so taking my gun, a hatchet, and
my dog, and a larger quantity of powder and shot than usual, with two biscuit
cakes and a great bunch of raisins in my pouch for my store, I began my journey.
When I had passed the vale where my bower stood, as above, I came within
view of the sea to the west, and it being a very clear day, I fairly descried land,
whether an island or a continent I could not tell; but it lay very high, extending
from the west to the west-southwest at a very great distance; by my guess it
could not be less than fifteen or twenty leagues off.
I could not tell what part of the world this might be, otherwise than that I
knew it must be part of America; and, as I concluded by all my observations,
must be near the Spanish dominions, and perhaps was all inhabited by savages,
where if I should have landed, I had been in a worse condition than I was now;
and therefore I acquiesced in the dispositions of Providence, which, I began now
to own, and to believe, ordered everything for the best; I say, I quieted my mind
with this, and left afflicting myself with fruitless wishes of being there.
Besides, after some pause upon this affair, I considered that if this land was
the Spanish coast, I should certainly, one time or other, see some vessel pass or
repass one way or other; but if not, then it was the savage coast between the
Spanish country and Brazil, which are indeed the worst of savages; for they are
cannibals, or men-eaters, and fail not to murder and devour all the human bodies
that fall into their hands.
With these considerations I walked very leisurely forward. I found that side of
the island, where I now was, much pleasanter than mine, the open or savanna
fields sweet, adorned with flowers and grass, and full of very fine woods. I saw
abundance of parrots, and fain I would have caught one, if possible, to have kept
it to be tame and taught it to speak to me. I did, after some painstaking, catch a
young parrot, for I knocked it down with a stick, and having recovered it, I
brought it home; but it was some years before I could make him speak. However,
at last I taught him to call me by my name very familiarly. But the accident that
followed, though it be a trifle, will be very diverting in its place.
I was exceedingly diverted with this journey. I found in the low grounds hares,
as I thought them to be, and foxes, but they differed greatly from all the other all the island so much in my view that I could not miss finding my first dwelling
kinds I had met with; nor could I satisfy myself to eat them, though I killed by viewing the country; but I found myself mistaken; for being come about two
several. But I had no need to be venturous; for I had no want of food, and of that or three miles, I found myself descended into a very large valley, but so
which was very good too; especially these three sorts, viz., goats, pigeons, and surrounded with hills, and those hills covered with wood, that I could not see
turtle or tortoise; which, added to my grapes, Leadenhall Market could not have which was my way by any direction but that of the sun, nor even then, unless I
furnished a table better than I, in proportion to the company; and though my case knew very well the position of the sun at that time of the day.
was deplorable enough, yet I had great cause for thankfulness, that I was not It happened, to my further misfortune, that the weather proved hazy for three
driven to any extremities for food; but rather plenty, even to dainties. or four days while I was in this valley; and not being able to see the sun, I
I never travelled in this journey above two miles outright in a day, or wandered about very uncomfortably, and at last was obliged to find out the
thereabouts; but I took so many turns and returns, to see what discoveries I could seaside, look for my post, and come back the same way I went; and then by easy
make, that I came weary enough to the place where I resolved to sit down for all journeys I turned homeward, the weather being exceeding hot, and my gun,
night; and then I either reposed myself in a tree, or surrounded myself with a row ammunition, hatchet, and other things very heavy.
of stakes set upright in the ground, either from one tree to another, or so as no In this journey my dog surprised a young kid, and seized upon it, and I,
wild creature could come at me without waking me. running in to take hold of it, caught it, and saved it alive from the dog. I had a
As soon as I came to the seashore, I was surprised to see that I had taken up great mind to bring it home if I could; for I had often been musing, whether it
my lot on the worst side of the island; for here indeed the shore was covered might not be possible to get a kid or two and so raise a breed of tame goats,
with innumerable turtles, whereas on the other side I had found but three in a which might supply me when my powder and shot should be all spent.
year and a half. Here was also an infinite number of fowls of many kinds, some I made a collar to this little creature, and with a string which I made of some
which I had seen, and some of which I had not seen before, and many of them rope-yarn which I always carried about me, I led him along, though with some
very good meat; but such as I knew not the names of, except those called difficulty, till I came to my bower, and there I enclosed him and left him; for I
penguins. was very impatient to be at home, from whence I had been absent above a
I could have shot as many as I pleased, but was very sparing of my powder month.
and shot; and therefore had more mind to kill a she-goat, if I could, which I I cannot express what a satisfaction it was to me to come into my old hutch
could better feed on; and though there were many goats here more than on my and lie down in my hammock-bed. This little wandering journey, without settled
side the island, yet it was with much more difficulty that I could come near them, place of abode, had been so unpleasant to me that my own house, as I called it to
the country being flat and even, and they saw me much sooner than when I was myself, was a perfect settlement to me compared to that; and it rendered
on the hill. everything about me so comfortable that I resolved I would never go a great way
I confess this side of the country was much pleasanter than mine, but yet I had from it again while it should be my lot to stay on the island.
not the least inclination to remove; for as I was fixed in my habitation, it became I reposed myself here a week, to rest and regale myself after my long journey;
natural to me, and I seemed all the while I was here to be, as it were, upon a during which most of the time was taken up in the weighty affair of making a
journey, and from home. However, I travelled along the shore of the sea, towards cage for my Poll, who began now to be a mere domestic and to be mighty well
the east, I suppose about twelve miles; and then setting up a great pole upon the acquainted with me. Then I began to think of the poor kid, which I had penned in
shore for a mark, I concluded I would go home again; and that the next journey I within my little circle, and resolved to go and fetch it home, or give it some
took should be on the other side of the island, east from my dwelling, and so food; accordingly I went, and found it where I left it; for indeed it could not get
round till I came to my post again. Of which in its place. out, but was almost starved for want of food. I went and cut boughs of trees, and
I took another way to come back than that I went, thinking I could easily keep branches of such shrubs as I could find, and threw it over, and having fed it, I
tied it as I did before to lead it away; but it was so tame with being hungry that I of God and applied all the comforts of it to my present state. One morning, being
had no need to have tied it, for it followed me like a dog; and as I continually fed very sad, I opened the Bible upon these words, ‘‘I will never, never leave thee,
it, the creature became so loving, so gentle, and so fond, that it became from that nor forsake thee’’; immediately it occurred that these words were to me; why
time one of my domestics also, and would never leave me afterwards. else should they be directed in such a manner, just at the moment when I was
The rainy season of the autumnal equinox was now come, and I kept the 30th mourning over my condition, as one forsaken of God and man? ‘‘Well then,’’
of September in the same solemn manner as before, being the anniversary of my said I, ‘‘if God does not forsake me, of what ill consequence can it be, or what
landing on the island, having now been there two years, and no more prospect of matters it, though the world should all forsake me; seeing on the other hand, if I
being delivered than the first day I came there. I spent the whole day in humble had all the world and should lose the favour and blessing of God, there would be
and thankful acknowledgements of the many wonderful mercies which my no comparison in the loss?’’
solitary condition was attended with, and without which it might have been From this moment I began to conclude in my mind that it was possible for me
infinitely more miserable. I gave humble and hearty thanks that God had been to be more happy in this forsaken, solitary condition than it was probable I
pleased to discover to me, even that it was possible I might be more happy in should ever have been in any other particular state in the world; and with this
this solitary condition than I should have been in a liberty of society and in all thought I was going to give thanks to God for bringing me to this place.
the pleasures of the world. That He could fully make up to me the deficiencies of I know not what it was, but something shocked my mind at that thought, and I
my solitary state and the want of human society by His presence, and the durst not speak the words. ‘‘How canst thou be such a hypocrite,’’ said I, even
communications of His grace to my soul, supporting, comforting, and audibly, ‘‘to pretend to be thankful for a condition which however thou may’st
encouraging me to depend upon His Providence here, and hope for His eternal endeavour to be contented with, thou wouldst rather pray heartily to be delivered
presence hereafter. from?’’ So I stopped there. But though I could not say I thanked God for being
It was now that I began sensibly to feel how much more happy this life I now there, yet I sincerely gave thanks to God for opening my eyes, by whatever
led was, with all its miserable circumstances, than the wicked, cursed, afflicting providences, to see the former condition of my life, and to mourn for
abominable life I led all the past part of my days; and now I changed both my my wickedness, and repent. I never opened the Bible or shut it but my very soul
sorrows and my joys; my very desires altered, my affections changed their gusts, within me blessed God for directing my friend in England, without any order of
and my delights were perfectly new, from what they were at my first coming, or mine, to pack it up among my goods; and for assisting me afterwards to save it
indeed for the two years past. out of the wreck of the ship.
Before, as I walked about, either on my hunting or for viewing the country, the
anguish of my soul at my condition would break out upon me on a sudden, and
my very heart would die within me to think of the woods, the mountains, the
deserts I was in; and how I was a prisoner locked up with the eternal bars and
bolts of the ocean, in an uninhabited wilderness, without redemption. In the
midst of the greatest composures of my mind, this would break out upon me like
a storm and make me wring my hands and weep like a child. Sometimes it would
take me in the middle of my work, and I would immediately sit down and sigh,
and look upon the ground for an hour or two together; and this was still worse to
me; for if I could burst out into tears or vent myself by words, it would go off,
and the grief having exhausted itself would abate.
But now I began to exercise myself with new thoughts; I daily read the Word
do, as will appear by what follows.
I Am Very Seldom Idle I was now, in the months of November and December, expecting my crop of
THUS, and in this disposition of mind, I began my third year; and though I have barley and rice. The ground I had manured or dug up for them was not great; for
not given the reader the trouble of so particular an account of my works this year as I observed, my seed of each was not above the quantity of half a peck; for I
as the first, yet in general it may be observed that I was very seldom idle; but had lost one whole crop by sowing in the dry season; but now my crop promised
having regularly divided my time, according to the several daily employments very well, when on a sudden I found I was in danger of losing it all again by
that were before me, such as, first, my duty to God, and the reading the enemies of several sorts, which it was scarce possible to keep from it; at first, the
Scriptures, which I constantly set apart some time for thrice every day; secondly, goats, and wild creatures which I called hares, who, tasting the sweetness of the
the going abroad with my gun for food, which generally took me up three hours blade, lay in it night and day, as soon as it came up, and eat it so close that it
in every morning, when it did not rain; thirdly, the ordering, curing, preserving could get no time to shoot up into stalk.
and cooking what I had killed or caught for my supply; these took up great part This I saw no remedy for, but by making an enclosure about it with a hedge,
of the day; also it is to be considered that the middle of the day, when the sun which I did with a great deal of toil; and the more, because it required speed.
was in the zenith, the violence of the heat was too great to stir out; so that about However, as my arable land was but small, suited to my crop, I got it totally well
four hours in the evening was all the time I could be supposed to work in; with fenced in about three weeks’ time; and shooting some of the creatures in the
this exception, that sometimes I changed my hours of hunting and working, and daytime, I set my dog to guard it in the night, tying him up to a stake at the gate,
went to work in the morning and abroad with my gun in the afternoon. where he would stand and bark all night long; so in a little time the enemies
To this short time allowed for labour, I desire may be added the exceeding forsook the place, and the corn grew very strong and well, and began to ripen
laboriousness of my work, the many hours which for want of tools, want of help, apace.
and want of skill, everything I did took up out of my time. For example, I was But as the beasts ruined me before, while my corn was in the blade, so the
full two-and-forty days making me a board for a long shelf, which I wanted in birds were as likely to ruin me now, when it was in the ear; for going along by
my cave; whereas two sawyers with their tools and a saw-pit would have cut six the place to see how it throve, I saw my little crop surrounded with fowls of I
of them out of the same tree in half a day. know not how many sorts, who stood, as it were, watching till I should be gone.
My case was this: it was to be a large tree which was to be cut down, because I immediately let fly among them (for I always had my gun with me). I had no
my board was to be a broad one. This tree I was three days a-cutting down, and sooner shot, but there rose up a little cloud of fowls, which I had not seen at all,
two more cutting off the boughs, and reducing it to a log, or piece of timber. from among the corn itself.
With inexpressible hacking and hewing, I reduced both the sides of it into chips, This touched me sensibly, for I foresaw that in a few days they would devour
till it began to be light enough to move; then I turned it and made one side of it all my hopes, that I should be starved, and never be able to raise a crop at all,
smooth and flat as a board from end to end; then turning that side downward, cut and what to do I could not tell. However, I resolved not to lose my corn, if
the other side, till I brought the plank to be about three inches thick, and smooth possible, though I should watch it night and day. In the first place, I went among
on both sides. Anyone may judge the labour of my hands in such a piece of it to see what damage was already done, and found they had spoiled a good deal
work; but labour and patience carried me through that and many other things. I of it, but that as it was yet too green for them, the loss was not so great, but that
only observe this in particular, to show the reason why so much of my time went the remainder was like to be a good crop if it could be saved.
away with so little work, viz., that what might be a little to be done with help and I stayed by it to load my gun, and then coming away I could easily see the
tools was a vast labour and required a prodigious time to do alone and by hand. thieves sitting upon all the trees about me, as if they only waited till I was gone
But notwithstanding this, with patience and labour I went through many away, and the event proved it to be so; for as I walked off as if I was gone, I was
things; and indeed everything that my circumstances made necessary to me to no sooner out of their sight but they dropped down one by one into the corn
again. I was so provoked that I could not have patience to stay till more came on, unexpectedly and indeed to a surprise.
knowing that every grain that they ate now was, as it might be said, a peck-loaf First, I had no plough to turn up the earth, no spade or shovel to dig it. Well,
to me in the consequence; but coming up to the hedge, I fired again, and killed this I conquered by making a wooden spade, as I observed before; but this did
three of them. This was what I wished for; so I took them up and served them as my work in but a wooden manner; and though it cost me a great many days to
we serve notorious thieves in England, viz., hanged them in chains for a terror to make it, yet for want of iron it not only wore out the sooner, but made my work
others; it is impossible to imagine, almost, that this should have such an effect as the harder, and made it be performed much worse.
it had; for the fowls would not only not come at the corn, but in short, they However, this I bore with, and was content to work it out with patience and
forsook all that part of the island, and I could never see a bird near the place as bear with the badness of the performance. When the corn was sowed, I had no
long as my scarecrows hung there. harrow but was forced to go over it myself and drag a great heavy bough of a
This I was very glad of, you may be sure, and about the latter end of tree over it, to scratch it, as it may be called, rather than rake or harrow it.
December, which was our second harvest of the year, I reaped my crop. When it was growing and grown, I have observed already how many things I
I was sadly put to it for a scythe or a sickle to cut it down, and all I could do wanted, to fence it, secure it, mow or reap it, cure and carry it home, thrash, part
was to make one as well as I could out of one of the broadswords, or cutlasses, it from the chaff, and save it. Then I wanted a mill to grind it, sieves to dress it,
which I saved among the arms out of the ship. However, as my first crop was but yeast and salt to make it into bread, and an oven to bake it; and yet all these
small, I had no great difficulty to cut it down; in short, I reaped it my way, for I things I did without, as shall be observed; and yet the corn was an inestimable
cut nothing off but the ears, and carried it away in a great basket which I had comfort and advantage to me too. All this, as I said, made everything laborious
made, and so rubbed it out with my hands; and at the end of all my harvesting, I and tedious to me, but that there was no help for; neither was my time so much
found that out of my half peck of seed I had near two bushels of rice and above loss to me, because, as I had divided it, a certain part of it was every day
two bushels and a half of barley, that is to say, by my guess, for I had no measure appointed to these works; and as I resolved to use none of the corn for bread till I
at that time. had a greater quantity by me, I had the next six months to apply myself wholly
However, this was a great encouragement to me, and I foresaw that in time it by labour and invention to furnish myself with utensils proper for the performing
would please God to supply me with bread. And yet here I was perplexed again, all the operations necessary for the making the corn (when I had it) fit for my
for I neither knew how to grind or make meal of my corn, or indeed how to clean use.
it and part it; nor if made into meal, how to make bread of it; and if how to make But first I was to prepare more land, for I had now seed enough to sow above
it, yet I knew not how to bake it. These things being added to my desire of an acre of ground. Before I did this, I had a week’s work at least to make me a
having a good quantity for store, and to secure a constant supply, I resolved not spade, which when it was done was but a sorry one indeed, and very heavy, and
to taste any of this crop, but to preserve it all for seed against the next season, required double labour to work with it; however, I went through that, and sowed
and in the meantime to employ all my study and hours of working to accomplish my seed in two large flat pieces of ground, as near my house as I could find them
this great work of providing myself with corn and bread. to my mind, and fenced them in with a good hedge, the stakes of which were all
It might be truly said that now I worked for my bread. ’Tis a little wonderful, cut of that wood which I had set before, and knew it would grow; so that in one
and what I believe few people have thought much upon, viz., the strange year’s time I knew I should have a quick or living hedge that would want but
multitude of little things necessary in the providing, producing, curing, dressing, little repair. This work was not so little as to take me up less than three months,
making, and finishing this one article of bread. because great part of that time was of the wet season, when I could not go
I, that was reduced to a mere state of nature, found this to my daily abroad.
discouragement, and was made more and more sensible of it every hour, even Within doors, that is, when it rained, and I could not go out, I found
after I had got the first handful of seed corn, which, as I have said, came up employment on the following occasions; always observing, that all the while I
was at work I diverted myself with talking to my parrot and teaching him to put it out after I had done with it, I found a broken piece of one of my
speak, and I quickly learned him to know his own name and at last to speak it earthenware vessels in the fire, burnt as hard as a stone, and red as a tile. I was
out pretty loud, ‘‘Poll,’’ which was the first word I ever heard spoken in the agreeably surprised to see it, and said to myself that certainly they might be
island by any mouth but my own. This therefore was not my work, but an made to burn whole, if they would burn broken.
assistant to my work, for now, as I said, I had a great employment upon my This set me to studying how to order my fire, so as to make it burn me some
hands, as follows, viz., I had long studied, by some means or other, to make pots. I had no notion of a kiln such as the potters burn in, or of glazing them with
myself some earthen vessels, which indeed I wanted sorely, but knew not where lead, though I had some lead to do it with; but I placed three large pipkins and
to come at them. However, considering the heat of the climate, I did not doubt two or three pots in a pile one upon another and placed my firewood all round it
but if I could find out any such clay, I might botch up some such pot, as might, with a great heap of embers under them; I plied the fire with fresh fuel round the
being dried in the sun, be hard enough and strong enough to bear handling, and outside and upon the top, till I saw the pots in the inside red hot quite through,
to hold anything that was dry, and required to be kept so; and as this was and observed that they did not crack at all; when I saw them clear red, I let them
necessary in the preparing corn, meal, etc., which was the thing I was upon, I stand in that heat about five or six hours, till I found one of them, though it did
resolved to make some as large as I could, and fit only to stand like jars to hold not crack, did melt or run, for the sand which was mixed with the clay melted by
what should be put into them. the violence of the heat, and would have run into glass if I had gone on; so I
It would make the reader pity me, or rather laugh at me, to tell how many slacked my fire gradually, till the pots began to abate of the red colour, and
awkward ways I took to raise this paste; what odd, misshapen, ugly things I watching them all night, that I might not let the fire abate too fast, in the morning
made; how many of them fell in, and how many fell out, the clay not being stiff I had three very good, I will not say handsome, pipkins, and two other earthen
enough to bear its own weight; how many cracked by the over-violent heat of the pots, as hard burnt as could be desired; and one of them perfectly glazed with the
sun, being set out too hastily; and how many fell in pieces with only removing, running of the sand.
as well before as after they were dried; and in a word, how after having laboured After this experiment, I need not say that I wanted no sort of earthenware for
hard to find the clay, to dig it, to temper it, to bring it home and work it, I could my use; but I must needs say, as to the shapes of them, they were very
not make above two large earthen ugly things, I cannot call them jars, in about indifferent, as anyone may suppose, when I had no way of making them, but as
two months’ labour. the children make dirt pies, or as a woman would make pies that never learned to
However, as the sun baked these two very dry and hard, I lifted them very raise paste.
gently up, and set them down again in two great wicker baskets, which I had No joy at a thing of so mean a nature was ever equal to mine, when I found I
made on purpose for them, that they might not break; and as between the pot and had made an earthen pot that would bear the fire; and I had hardly patience to
the basket there was a little room to spare, I stuffed it full of the rice and barley stay till they were cold, before I set one upon the fire again, with some water in
straw, and these two pots being to stand always dry, I thought would hold my dry it, to boil me some meat, which it did admirably well; and with a piece of a kid I
corn, and perhaps the meal when the corn was bruised. made some very good broth, though I wanted oatmeal, and several other
Though I miscarried so much in my design for large pots, yet I made several ingredients requisite to make it so good as I would have had it been.
smaller things with better success; such as little round pots, flat dishes, pitchers, My next concern was to get me a stone mortar to stamp or beat some corn in;
and pipkins, and anything my hand turned to, and the heat of the sun baked them for as to the mill, there was no thought at arriving to that perfection of art with
strangely hard. one pair of hands. To supply this want I was at a great loss; for of all trades in
But all this would not answer my end, which was to get an earthen pot to hold the world I was as perfectly unqualified for a stone-cutter as for any whatever;
what was liquid, and bear the fire, which none of these could do. It happened neither had I any tools to go about it with. I spent many a day to find out a great
after some time, making a pretty large fire for cooking my meat, when I went to stone big enough to cut hollow and make fit for a mortar, and could find none at
all, except what was in the solid rock, and which I had no way to dig or cut out; all round the outside of the pot, to keep in, and add to the heat; and thus, as well
nor indeed were the rocks in the island of hardness sufficient, but were all of a as in the best oven in the world, I baked my barley loaves, and became in little
sandy crumbling stone, which would neither bear the weight of a heavy pestle or time a mere pastry-cook into the bargain; for I made myself several cakes of the
would break the corn without filling it with sand; so after a great deal of time rice and puddings; indeed I made no pies, neither had I anything to put into
lost in searching for a stone, I gave it over, and resolved to look out for a great them, supposing I had, except the flesh either of fowls or goats.
block of hard wood, which I found indeed much easier; and getting one as big as It need not be wondered at, if all these things took me up most part of the third
I had strength to stir, I rounded it, and formed it in the outside with my axe and year of my abode here; for it is to be observed that in the intervals of these things
hatchet, and then with the help of fire, and infinite labour, made a hollow place I had my new harvest and husbandry to manage; for I reaped my corn in its
in it, as the Indians in Brazil make their canoes. After this, I made a great heavy season and carried it home as well as I could, and laid it up in the ear, in my
pestle or beater, of the wood called the iron-wood, and this I prepared and laid large baskets, till I had time to rub it out; for I had no floor to thrash it on, or
by against I had my next crop of corn, when I proposed to myself to grind, or instrument to thrash it with.
rather pound, my corn into meal, to make my bread. And now indeed my stock of corn increasing, I really wanted to build my
My next difficulty was to make a sieve, or searce, to dress my meal and to part barns bigger. I wanted a place to lay it up in; for the increase of the corn now
it from the bran and the husk, without which I did not see it possible I could have yielded me so much that I had of the barley about twenty bushels, and of the rice
any bread. This was a most difficult thing, so much as but to think on; for to be as much or more; insomuch that now I resolved to begin to use it freely, for my
sure I had nothing like the necessary thing to make it; I mean fine thin canvas or bread had been quite gone a great while; also I resolved to see what quantity
stuff, to searce the meal through. And here I was at a full stop for many months; would be sufficient for me a whole year, and to sow but once a year.
nor did I really know what to do; linen I had none left, but what was mere rags; I Upon the whole, I found that the forty bushels of barley and rice was much
had goats’ hair, but neither knew I how to weave it or spin it; and had I known more than I could consume in a year; so I resolved to sow just the same quantity
how, here was no tools to work it with; all the remedy that I found for this was, every year that I sowed the last, in hopes that such a quantity would fully
that at last I did remember I had among the seamen’s clothes which were saved provide me with bread, etc.
out of the ship, some neckcloths of calico or muslin; and with some pieces of
All the while these things were doing, you may be sure my thoughts ran many
these, I made three small sieves, but proper enough for the work; and thus I
times upon the prospect of land which I had seen from the other side of the
made shift for some years. How I did afterwards, I shall show in its place.
island, and I was not without secret wishes that I were on shore there, fancying
The baking part was the next thing to be considered and how I should make that seeing the mainland, and an inhabited country, I might find some way or
bread when I came to have corn; for, first, I had no yeast; as to that part, as there other to convey myself farther, and perhaps at last find some means of escape.
was no supplying the want, so I did not concern myself much about it; but for an
But all this while I made no allowance for the dangers of such a condition, and
oven I was indeed in great pain. At length I found out an experiment for that
how I might fall into the hands of savages, and perhaps such as I might have
also, which was this: I made some earthen vessels very broad, but not deep; that
reason to think far worse than the lions and tigers of Africa. That if I once came
is to say, about two foot diameter, and not above nine inches deep; these I burned
into their power, I should run a hazard more than a thousand to one of being
in the fire, as I had done the other, and laid them by; and when I wanted to bake,
killed and perhaps of being eaten; for I had heard that the people of the
I made a great fire upon my hearth, which I had paved with some square tiles of
Caribbean coasts were cannibals, or man-eaters, and I knew by the latitude that I
my own making and burning also; but I should not call them square.
could not be far off from that shore. That suppose they were not cannibals, yet
When the firewood was burned pretty much into embers, or live coals, I drew that they might kill me, as many Europeans who had fallen into their hands had
them forward upon this hearth, so as to cover it all over, and there I let them lie, been served, even when they had been ten or twenty together; much more I, that
till the hearth was very hot; then sweeping away all the embers, I set down my was but one, and could make little or no defence. All these things, I say, which I
loaf, or loaves, and whelming down the earthen pot upon them, drew the embers
ought to have considered well of, and did cast up in my thoughts afterwards, yet
took up none of my apprehensions at first; but my head ran mightily upon the I Make Myself a Canoe
thought of getting over to the shore.
THIS at length put me upon thinking whether it was not possible to make myself
Now I wished for my boy Xury, and the longboat with the shoulder-of-mutton a canoe or piragua, such as the natives of those climates make, even without
sail with which I sailed above a thousand miles on the coast of Africa; but this tools, or, as I might say, without hands, viz., of the trunk of a great tree. This I
was in vain. Then I thought I would go and look at our ship’s boat, which, as I not only thought possible, but easy, and pleased myself extremely with the
have said, was blown up upon the shore a great way in the storm, when we were thoughts of making it, and with my having much more convenience for it than
first cast away. She lay almost where she did at first, but not quite; and was any of the Negroes or Indians; but not at all considering the particular
turned by the force of the waves and the winds, almost bottom upward against a inconveniences which I lay under, more than the Indians did, viz., want of hands
high ridge of beachy rough sand; but no water about her as before. to move it, when it was made, into the water, a difficulty much harder for me to
If I had had hands to have refitted her and to have launched her into the water, surmount than all the consequences of want of tools could be to them; for what
the boat would have done well enough, and I might have gone back into Brazil was it to me, that when I had chosen a vast tree in the woods, I might with great
with her easily enough; but I might have foreseen that I could no more turn her trouble cut it down, if after I might be able with my tools to hew and dub the
and set her upright upon her bottom than I could remove the island. However, I outside into the proper shape of a boat, and burn or cut out the inside to make it
went to the woods and cut levers and rollers, and brought them to the boat, hollow, so to make a boat of it if after all this, I must leave it just there where I
resolved to try what I could do; suggesting to myself that if I could but turn her found it, and was not able to launch it into the water?
down, I might easily repair the damage she had received, and she would be a One would have thought I could not have had the least reflection upon my
very good boat, and I might go to sea in her very easily. mind of my circumstance, while I was making this boat; but I should have
I spared no pains, indeed, in this piece of fruitless toil, and spent, I think, three immediately thought how I should get it into the sea; but my thoughts were so
or four weeks about it; at last finding it impossible to heave it up with my little intent upon my voyage over the sea in it that I never once considered how I
strength, I fell to digging away the sand to undermine it, and so to make it fall should get it off of the land; and was really in its own nature more easy for me to
down, setting pieces of wood to thrust and guide it right in the fall. guide it over forty-five miles of sea, than about forty-five fathom of land, where
But when I had done this, I was unable to stir it up again, or to get under it, it lay, to set it afloat in the water.
much less to move it forward towards the water; so I was forced to give it over; I went to work upon this boat the most like a fool that ever man did, who had
and yet, though I gave over the hopes of the boat, my desire to venture over for any of his senses awake. I pleased myself with the design, without determining
the main increased, rather than decreased, as the means for it seemed impossible. whether I was ever able to undertake it; not but that the difficulty of launching
my boat came often into my head; but I put a stop to my own inquiries into it, by
this foolish answer which I gave myself, ‘‘Let’s first make it; I’ll warrant I’ll find
some way or other to get it along, when ’tis done.’’
This was a most preposterous method; but the eagerness of my fancy
prevailed, and to work I went. I felled a cedar tree. I question much whether
Solomon ever had such a one for the building of the Temple at Jerusalem. It was
five foot ten inches diameter at the lower part next the stump, and four foot
eleven inches diameter at the end of twenty-two foot, after which it lessened for
a while, and then parted into branches. It was not without infinite labour that I
felled this tree. I was twenty days hacking and hewing at it at the bottom; I was
fourteen more getting the branches and limbs, and the vast spreading head of it by a constant study, and serious application of the Word of God, and by the
cut off, which I hacked and hewed through with axe and hatchet, and assistance of His grace, I gained a different knowledge from what I had before. I
inexpressible labour. After this, it cost me a month to shape it and dub it to a entertained different notions of things. I looked now upon the world as a thing
proportion, and to something like the bottom of a boat, that it might swim remote, which I had nothing to do with, no expectation from, and, indeed, no
upright as it ought to do. It cost me near three months more to clear the inside, desires about. In a word, I had nothing indeed to do with it, nor was ever like to
and work it out so as to make an exact boat of it. This I did indeed without fire, have; so I thought it looked as we may perhaps look upon it hereafter, viz., as a
by mere mallet and chisel, and by the dint of hard labour, till I had brought it to place I had lived in but was come out of it; and well might I say, as Father
be a very handsome piragua and big enough to have carried six and twenty men, Abraham to Dives, ‘‘Between me and thee is a great gulf fixed.’’
and consequently big enough to have carried me and all my cargo. In the first place, I was removed from all the wickedness of the world here. I
When I had gone through this work, I was extremely delighted with it. The had neither the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eye, or the pride of life. I had
boat was really much bigger than I ever saw a canoe, or piragua, that was made nothing to covet; for I had all that I was now capable of enjoying. I was lord of
of one tree, in my life. Many a weary stroke it had cost, you may be sure; and the whole manor; or if I pleased, I might call myself king, or emperor over the
there remained nothing but to get it into the water; and had I gotten it into the whole country which I had possession of. There were no rivals. I had no
water, I make no question but I should have begun the maddest voyage and the competitor, none to dispute sovereignty or command with me. I might have
most unlikely to be performed that ever was undertaken. raised shiploadings of corn; but I had no use for it; so I let as little grow as I
But all my devices to get it into the water failed me; though they cost me thought enough for my occasion. I had tortoise or turtles enough; but now and
infinite labour too. It lay about one hundred yards from the water, and not more. then one was as much as I could put to any use. I had timber enough to have
But the first inconvenience was, it was uphill towards the creek. Well, to take built a fleet of ships. I had grapes enough to have made wine, or to have cured
away this discouragement, I resolved to dig into the surface of the earth, and so into raisins, to have loaded that fleet, when they had been built.
make a declivity. This I began, and it cost me a prodigious deal of pains; but who But all I could make use of was all that was valuable. I had enough to eat, and
grudges pains, that have their deliverance in view? But when this was worked to supply my wants, and what was all the rest to me? If I killed more flesh than I
through, and this difficulty managed, it was still much at one; for I could no could eat, the dog must eat it, or the vermin. If I sowed more corn than I could
more stir the canoe than I could the other boat. eat, it must be spoiled. The trees that I cut down were lying to rot on the ground.
Then I measured the distance of ground, and resolved to cut a dock, or canal, I could make no more use of them than for fuel; and that I had no occasion for
to bring the water up to the canoe, seeing I could not bring the canoe down to the but to dress my food.
water. Well, I began this work, and when I began to enter into it and calculate In a word, the nature and experience of things dictated to me upon just
how deep it was to be dug, how broad, how the stuff to be thrown out, I found reflection that all the good things of this world are no farther good to us than
that by the number of hands I had, being none but my own, it must have been ten they are for our use; and that whatever we may heap up indeed to give others, we
or twelve years before I should have gone through with it; but the shore lay high, enjoy just as much as we can use, and no more. The most covetous griping miser
so that at the upper end it must have been at least twenty foot deep; so at length, in the world would have been cured of the vice of covetousness, if he had been
though with great reluctancy, I gave this attempt over also. in my case; for I possessed infinitely more than I knew what to do with. I had no
This grieved me heartily, and now I saw, though too late, the folly of room for desire, except it was of things which I had not, and they were but
beginning a work before we count the cost, and before we judge rightly of our trifles, though indeed of great use to me. I had, as I hinted before, a parcel of
own strength to go through with it. money, as well gold as silver, about thirty-six pounds sterling. Alas! There the
In the middle of this work I finished my fourth year in this place, and kept my nasty, sorry, useless stuff lay; I had no manner of business for it; and I often
anniversary with the same devotion and with as much comfort as ever before; for thought with myself that I would have given a handful of it for a gross of
tobacco pipes or for a hand mill to grind my corn; nay, I would have given it all
for sixpennyworth of turnip and carrot seed out of England, or for a handful of who are apt in their misery to say, ‘‘Is any affliction like mine?’’ Let them
peas and beans and a bottle of ink. As it was, I had not the least advantage by it consider how much worse the cases of some people are, and their case might
or benefit from it; but there it lay in a drawer and grew mouldy with the damp of have been, if Providence had thought fit.
the cave in the wet season; and if I had had the drawer full of diamonds, it had I had another reflection which assisted me also to comfort my mind with
been the same case; and they had been of no manner of value to me because of hopes; and this was comparing my present condition with what I had deserved,
no use. and had therefore reason to expect from the hand of Providence. I had lived a
I had now brought my state of life to be much easier in itself than it was at dreadful life, perfectly destitute of the knowledge and fear of God. I had been
first and much easier to my mind, as well as to my body. I frequently sat down to well instructed by father and mother; neither had they been wanting to me in
my meat with thankfulness, and admired the hand of God’s providence, which their early endeavours to infuse a religious awe of God into my mind, a sense of
had thus spread my table in the wilderness. I learned to look more upon the my duty, and of what the nature and end of my being required of me. But alas!
bright side of my condition and less upon the dark side; and to consider what I falling early into the seafaring life, which of all the lives is the most destitute of
enjoyed rather than what I wanted; and this gave me sometimes such secret the fear of God, though His terrors are always before them; I say, falling early
comforts that I cannot express them; and which I take notice of here, to put those into the seafaring life, and into seafaring company, all that little sense of religion
discontented people in mind of it who cannot enjoy comfortably what God has which I had entertained was laughed out of me by my messmates, by a hardened
given them because they see and covet something that He has not given them. despising of dangers, and the views of death, which grew habitual to me, by my
All our discontents about what we want appeared to me to spring from the want long absence from all manner of opportunities to converse with anything but
of thankfulness for what we have. what was like myself or to hear anything that was good, or tended towards it.
Another reflection was of great use to me, and doubtless would be so to So void was I of everything that was good, or of the least sense of what I was
anyone that should fall into such distress as mine was; and this was to compare or was to be, that in the greatest deliverances I enjoyed, such as my escape from
my present condition with what I at first expected it should be; nay, with what it Sallee, my being taken up by the Portuguese master of the ship, my being
would certainly have been, if the good providence of God had not wonderfully planted so well in Brazil, my receiving the cargo from England, and the like, I
ordered the ship to be cast up nearer to the shore, where I not only could come at never had once the words, ‘‘Thank God,’’ so much as on my mind, or in my
her but could bring what I got out of her to the shore for my relief and comfort; mouth; nor in the greatest distress had I so much as a thought to pray to Him; or
without which, I had wanted for tools to work, weapons for defence, or so much as to say, ‘‘Lord, have mercy upon me’’; no, nor to mention the name of
gunpowder and shot for getting my food. God, unless it was to swear by and blaspheme it.
I spent whole hours, I may say whole days, in representing to myself, in the I had terrible reflections upon my mind for many months, as I have already
most lively colours, how I must have acted if I had got nothing out of the ship; observed, on the account of my wicked and hardened life past; and when I
how I could not have so much as got any food, except fish and turtles; and that looked about me and considered what particular providences had attended me
as it was long before I found any of them, I must have perished first; that I since my coming into this place, and how God had dealt bountifully with me;
should have lived, if I had not perished, like a mere savage; that if I had killed a had not only punished me less than my iniquity had deserved, but had so
goat, or a fowl, by any contrivance, I had no way to flay or open them, or part plentifully provided for me; this gave me great hopes that my repentance was
the flesh from the skin and the bowels, or to cut it up, but must gnaw it with my accepted, and that God had yet mercy in store for me.
teeth and pull it with my claws like a beast. With these reflections I worked my mind up, not only to resignation to the will
These reflections made me very sensible of the goodness of Providence to me, of God in the present disposition of my circumstances, but even to a sincere
and very thankful for my present condition, with all its hardships and thankfulness for my condition; and that I, who was yet a living man, ought not to
misfortunes. And this part also I cannot but recommend to the reflection of those complain, seeing I had not the due punishment of my sins; that I enjoyed so
many mercies which I had no reason to have expected in that place; that I ought biscuit which I brought out of the ship. This I had husbanded to the last degree,
never more to repine at my condition, but to rejoice and to give daily thanks for allowing myself but one cake of bread a day for above a year; and yet I was
that daily bread which nothing but a crowd of wonders could have brought. That quite without bread for near a year before I got any corn of my own; and great
I ought to consider I had been fed even by a miracle, even as great as that of reason I had to be thankful that I had any at all, the getting it being, as has been
feeding Elijah by ravens; nay, by a long series of miracles; and that I could already observed, next to miraculous.
hardly have named a place in the unhabitable part of the world where I could My clothes began to decay too mightily. As to linen, I had none a good while,
have been cast more to my advantage. A place, where as I had no society, which except some checkered shirts which I found in the chests of the other seamen,
was my affliction on one hand, so I found no ravenous beasts, no furious wolves and which I carefully preserved, because many times I could bear no other
or tigers to threaten my life; no venomous creatures or poisonous which I might clothes on but a shirt; and it was a very great help to me that I had among all the
feed on to my hurt, no savages to murder and devour me. men’s clothes of the ship almost three dozen of shirts. There were also several
In a word, as my life was a life of sorrow one way, so it was a life of mercy thick watch coats of the seamen’s, which were left indeed, but they were too hot
another; and I wanted nothing to make it a life of comfort, but to be able to make to wear; and though it is true that the weather was so violent hot that there was
my sense of God’s goodness to me, and care over me in this condition, be my no need of clothes, yet I could not go quite naked; no, though I had been inclined
daily consolation; and after I did make a just improvement of these things, I to it, which I was not, nor could abide the thoughts of it, though I was all alone.
went away and was no more sad. The reason why I could not go quite naked was, I could not bear the heat of
I had now been here so long that many things which I brought on shore for my the sun so well when quite naked, as with some clothes on; nay, the very heat
help were either quite gone, or very much wasted and near spent. frequently blistered my skin; whereas with a shirt on, the air itself made some
My ink, as I observed, had been gone for some time, all but a very little, motion, and whistling under that shirt, was twofold cooler than without it. No
which I eked out with water a little and a little, till it was so pale it scarce left more could I ever bring myself to go out in the heat of the sun without a cap or a
any appearance of black upon the paper. As long as it lasted I made use of it to hat; the heat of the sun, beating with such violence as it does in that place, would
minute down the days of the month on which any remarkable thing happened to give me the headache presently, by darting so directly on my head, without a cap
me; and first by casting up times past, I remember that there was a strange or hat on, so that I could not bear it; whereas if I put on my hat, it would
concurrence of days in the various providences which befell me, and which, if I presently go away.
had been superstitiously inclined to observe days as fatal or fortunate, I might Upon those views I began to consider about putting the few rags I had, which
have had reason to have looked upon with a great deal of curiosity. I called clothes, into some order; I had worn out all the waistcoats I had, and my
First, I had observed that the same day that I broke away from my father and business was now to try if I could not make jackets out of the great watch coats
my friends and ran away to Hull in order to go to sea, the same day afterwards I which I had by me, and with such other materials as I had; so I set to work a-
was taken by the Sallee man-of-war and made a slave. tailoring, or rather indeed a-botching, for I made most piteous work of it.
The same day of the year that I escaped out of the wreck of that ship in However, I made shift to make two or three new waistcoats, which I hoped
Yarmouth Roads, that same day-year afterwards I made my escape from Sallee would serve me a great while; as for breeches or drawers, I made but a very
in the boat. sorry shift indeed, till afterwards.
The same day of the year I was born on, viz., the 30th of September, that same I have mentioned that I saved the skins of all the creatures that I killed, I mean
day I had my life so miraculously saved twenty-six years after, when I was cast four-footed ones, and I had hung them up stretched out with sticks in the sun, by
on shore in this island; so that my wicked life and my solitary life begun both on which means some of them were so dry and hard that they were fit for little, but
a day. others it seems were very useful. The first thing I made of these was a great cap
for my head, with the hair on the outside, to shoot off the rain; and this I
The next thing to my ink’s being wasted was that of my bread, I mean the
performed so well, that after this I made me a suit of clothes wholly of these canal to it of six foot wide, and four foot deep, I brought it into the creek, almost
skins, that is to say, a waistcoat, and breeches open at knees, and both loose, for half a mile. As for the first, which was so vastly big, as I made it without
they were rather wanting to keep me cool than to keep me warm. I must not omit considering beforehand, as I ought to do, how I should be able to launch it; so
to acknowledge that they were wretchedly made; for if I was a bad carpenter, I never being able to bring it to the water, or bring the water to it, I was obliged to
was a worse tailor. However, they were such as I made very good shift with; and let it lie where it was, as a memorandum to teach me to be wiser next time.
when I was abroad, if it happened to rain, the hair of my waistcoat and cap being Indeed the next time, though I could not get a tree proper for it, and in a place
outermost, I was kept very dry. where I could not get the water to it at any less distance than, as I have said, near
After this I spent a great deal of time and pains to make me an umbrella; I was half a mile; yet as I saw it was practicable at last, I never gave it over; and
indeed in great want of one, and had a great mind to make one; I had seen them though I was near two years about it, yet I never grudged my labour, in hopes of
made in Brazil, where they are very useful in the great heats which are there. having a boat to go off to sea at last.
And I felt the heats every jot as great here, and greater too, being nearer the However, though my little piragua was finished, yet the size of it was not at all
equinox; besides, as I was obliged to be much abroad, it was a most useful thing answerable to the design which I had in view, when I made the first; I mean, of
to me, as well for the rains as the heats. I took a world of pains at it, and was a venturing over to the terra firma, where it was above forty miles broad;
great while before I could make anything likely to hold; nay, after I thought I had accordingly, the smallness of my boat assisted to put an end to that design, and
hit the way, I spoiled two or three before I made one to my mind; but at last I now I thought no more of it. But as I had a boat, my next design was to make a
made one that answered indifferently well. The main difficulty I found was to tour round the island; for as I had been on the other side in one place, crossing,
make it to let down. I could make it to spread, but if it did not let down too and as I have already described it, over the land, so the discoveries I made in that
draw in, it was not portable for me any way but just over my head, which would little journey made me very eager to see other parts of the coast; and now I had a
not do. However, at last, as I said, I made one to answer, and covered it with boat, I thought of nothing but sailing round the island.
skins, the hair upwards, so that it cast off the rains like a penthouse and kept off For this purpose, that I might do everything with discretion and consideration,
the sun so effectually, that I could walk out in the hottest of the weather with I fitted up a little mast to my boat, and made a sail to it out of some of the pieces
greater advantage than I could before in the coolest, and when I had no need of of the ship’s sail, which lay in store, and of which I had a great stock by me.
it, could close it and carry it under my arm. Having fitted my mast and sail and tried the boat, I found she would sail very
Thus I lived mighty comfortably, my mind being entirely composed by well. Then I made little lockers, or boxes, at either end of my boat, to put
resigning to the will of God and throwing myself wholly upon the disposal of provisions, necessaries and ammunition, etc., into, to be kept dry, either from
His Providence. This made my life better than sociable; for when I began to rain or the spray of the sea; and a little long hollow place I cut in the inside of
regret the want of conversation, I would ask myself whether thus conversing the boat, where I could lay my gun, making a flap to hang down over it to keep it
mutually with my own thoughts, and as I hope I may say, with even God dry.
Himself, by ejaculations, was not better than the utmost enjoyment of human I fixed my umbrella also in a step at the stern, like a mast, to stand over my
society in the world. head, and keep the heat of the sun off of me like an awning; and thus I every
I cannot say that after this, for five years, any extraordinary thing happened to now and then took a little voyage upon the sea, but never went far out, nor far
me, but I lived on in the same course, in the same posture and place, just as from the little creek; but at last being eager to view the circumference of my
before; the chief thing I was employed in, besides my yearly labour of planting little kingdom, I resolved upon my tour and accordingly I victualled my ship for
my barley and rice and curing my raisins, of both which I always kept up just the voyage, putting in two dozen of my loaves (cakes I should rather call them)
enough to have sufficient stock of one year’s provisions beforehand; I say, of barley bread, an earthen pot full of parched rice, a food I ate a great deal of, a
besides this yearly labour and my daily labour of going out with my gun, I had little bottle of rum, half a goat, and powder and shot for killing more, and two
one labour, to make me a canoe, which at last I finished. So that by digging a
large watch coats, of those which, as I mentioned before, I had saved out of the all I could do could not keep her so much as on the edge of it; but I found it
seamen’s chests; these I took, one to lie upon, and the other to cover me in the hurried me farther and farther out from the eddy, which was on my left hand.
night. There was no wind stirring to help me, and all I could do with my paddles
It was the 6th of November, in the sixth year of my reign, or my captivity, signified nothing; and now I began to give myself over for lost; for as the current
which you please, that I set out on this voyage, and I found it much longer than I was on both sides of the island, I knew in a few leagues’ distance they must join
expected; for though the island itself was not very large, yet when I came to the again, and then I was irrecoverably gone; nor did I see any possibility of
east side of it, I found a great ledge of rocks lie out about two leagues into the avoiding it; so that I had no prospect before me but of perishing; not by the sea,
sea, some above water, some under it; and beyond that, a shoal of sand lying dry for that was calm enough, but of starving for hunger. I had indeed found a
half a league more; so that I was obliged to go a great way out to sea to double tortoise on the shore, as big almost as I could lift, and had tossed it into the boat;
the point. and I had a great jar of fresh water, that is to say, one of my earthen pots; but
When first I discovered them, I was going to give over my enterprise, and what was all this to being driven into the vast ocean, where, to be sure, there was
come back again, not knowing how far it might oblige me to go out to sea; and no shore, no mainland or island, for a thousand leagues at least?
above all, doubting how I should get back again; so I came to an anchor; for I And now I saw how easy it was for the Providence of God to make the most
had made me a kind of an anchor with a piece of a broken grappling, which I got miserable condition mankind could be in, worse. Now I looked back upon my
out of the ship. desolate solitary island as the most pleasant place in the world, and all the
Having secured my boat, I took my gun, and went on shore, climbing up upon happiness my heart could wish for was to be but there again. I stretched out my
a hill, which seemed to overlook that point, where I saw the full extent of it, and hands to it with eager wishes. "O happy desert!’’ said I, ‘‘I shall never see thee
resolved to venture. more! O miserable creature,’’ said I, ‘‘whither am I going!’’ Then I reproached
myself with my unthankful temper, and how I had repined at my solitary
In my viewing the sea from that hill where I stood, I perceived a strong, and
condition; and now what would I give to be on shore there again! Thus we never
indeed a most furious current, which ran to the east, and even came close to the
see the true state of our condition till it is illustrated to us by its contraries; nor
point; and I took the more notice of it, because I saw there might be some danger
know how to value what we enjoy, but by the want of it. It is scarce possible to
that when I came into it, I might be carried out to sea by the strength of it and not
imagine the consternation I was now in, being driven from my beloved island
be able to make the island again; and indeed, had I not gotten first up upon this
(for so it appeared to me now to be) into the wide ocean almost two leagues, and
hill, I believe it would have been so; for there was the same current on the other
in the utmost despair of ever recovering it again. However, I worked hard till
side the island, only that it set off at a farther distance; and I saw there was a
indeed my strength was almost exhausted, and kept my boat as much to the
strong eddy under the shore; so I had nothing to do but to get in out of the first
northward, that is, towards the side of the current which the eddy lay on, as
current, and I should presently be in an eddy.
possibly I could; when about noon, as the sun passed the meridian, I thought I
I lay here, however, two days; because the wind, blowing pretty fresh at east- felt a little breeze of wind in my face, springing up from the south-southeast.
southeast, and that being just contrary to the said current, made a great breach of This cheered my heart a little, and especially when, in about half an hour more, it
the sea upon the point; so that it was not safe for me to keep too close to the blew a pretty small gentle gale. By this time I was gotten at a frightful distance
shore for the breach, nor to go too far off because of the stream. from the island, and had the least cloud or hazy weather intervened, I had been
The third day in the morning, the wind having abated overnight, the sea was undone another way too; for I had no compass on board, and should never have
calm, and I ventured; but I am a warning piece again to all rash and ignorant known how to have steered towards the island, if I had but once lost sight of it;
pilots; for no sooner was I come to the point, when even I was not my boat’s but the weather continuing clear, I applied myself to get up my mast again and
length from the shore, but I found myself in a great depth of water, and a current spread my sail, standing away to the north as much as possible, to get out of the
like the sluice of a mill. It carried my boat along with it with such violence that current.
Just as I had set my mast and sail, and the boat began to stretch away, I saw deliverance, resolving to lay aside all thoughts of my deliverance by my boat;
even by the clearness of the water some alteration of the current was near; for and refreshing myself with such things as I had, I brought my boat close to the
where the current was so strong, the water was foul; but perceiving the water shore in a little cove that I had spied under some trees, and laid me down to
clear, I found the current abate, and presently I found to the east, at about half a sleep, being quite spent with the labour and fatigue of the voyage.
mile, a breach of the sea upon some rocks; these rocks I found caused the current I was now at a great loss which way to get home with my boat. I had run so
to part again, and as the main stress of it ran away more southerly, leaving the much hazard, and knew too much the case, to think of attempting it by the way I
rocks to the northeast, so the other returned by the repulse of the rocks and made went out; and what might be at the other side (I mean the west side) I knew not,
a strong eddy, which ran back again to the northwest with a very sharp stream. nor had I any mind to run any more ventures; so I only resolved in the morning
They who know what it is to have a reprieve brought to them upon the ladder to make my way westward along the shore and to see if there was no creek
or to be rescued from thieves just going to murder them, or who have been in where I might lay up my frigate in safety, so as to have her again if I wanted her.
such like extremities, may guess what my present surprise of joy was, and how In about three miles, or thereabouts, coasting the shore, I came to a very good
gladly I put my boat into the stream of this eddy, and the wind also freshening, inlet, or bay, about a mile over, which narrowed till it came to a very little rivulet
how gladly I spread my sail to it, running cheerfully before the wind, and with a or brook, where I found a very convenient harbour for my boat, and where she
strong tide or eddy under foot. lay as if she had been in a little dock made on purpose for her. Here I put in, and
This eddy carried me about a league in my way back again directly towards having stowed my boat very safe, I went on shore to look about me and see
the island, but about two leagues more to the northward than the current which where I was.
carried me away at first; so that when I came near the island, I found myself I soon found I had but a little passed by the place where I had been before,
open to the northern shore of it, that is to say, the other end of the island, when I travelled on foot to that shore; so taking nothing out of my boat but my
opposite to that which I went out from. gun and my umbrella, for it was exceeding hot, I began my march. The way was
When I had made something more than a league of way by the help of this comfortable enough after such a voyage as I had been upon, and I reached my
current or eddy, I found it was spent and served me no further. However, I found old bower in the evening, where I found everything standing as I left it; for I
that being between the two great currents, viz., that on the south side, which had always kept it in good order, being, as I said before, my country house.
hurried me away, and that on the north, which lay about a league on the other I got over the fence and laid me down in the shade to rest my limbs, for I was
side: I say, between these two, in the wake of the island, I found the water at very weary, and fell asleep. But judge you, if you can, that read my story, what a
least still and running no way, and having still a breeze of wind fair for me, I surprise I must be in, when I was waked out of my sleep by a voice calling me
kept on steering directly for the island, though not making such fresh way as I by my name several times, ‘‘Robin, Robin, Robin Crusoe, poor Robin Crusoe!
did before. Where are you, Robin Crusoe? Where are you? Where have you been?’’
About four o’clock in the evening, being then within about a league of the I was so dead asleep at first, being fatigued with rowing, or paddling, as it is
island, I found the point of the rocks which occasioned this disaster, stretching called, the first part of the day and with walking the latter part, that I did not
out, as is described before, to the southward, and casting off the current more wake thoroughly; but dozing between sleeping and waking, thought I dreamed
southwardly, had of course made another eddy to the north, and this I found very that somebody spoke to me. But as the voice continued to repeat ‘‘Robin Crusoe,
strong, but not directly setting the way my course lay, which was due west, but Robin Crusoe,’’ at last I began to wake more perfectly, and was at first dreadfully
almost full north. However, having a fresh gale, I stretched across this eddy, frighted and started up in the utmost consternation. But no sooner were my eyes
slanting northwest, and in about an hour came within about a mile of the shore, open, but I saw my Poll sitting on the top of the hedge; and immediately knew
where, it being smooth water, I soon got to land. that it was he that spoke to me; for just in such bemoaning language I had used
When I was on shore, I fell on my knees, and gave God thanks for my to talk to him, and teach him; and he had learned it so perfectly that he would sit
upon my finger and lay his bill close to my face, and cry, ‘‘Poor Robin Crusoe!
Where are you? Where have you been? How come you here?’’ and such things I Improve Myself in the Mechanic Exercises
as I had taught him.
I HAD now had enough of rambling to sea for some time, and had enough to do
However, even though I knew it was the parrot, and that indeed it could be for many days to sit still and reflect upon the danger I had been in. I would have
nobody else, it was a good while before I could compose myself. First, I was been very glad to have had my boat again on my side of the island; but I knew
amazed how the creature got thither, and then how he should just keep about the not how it was practicable to get it about. As to the east side of the island, which
place and nowhere else. But as I was well satisfied it could be nobody but honest I had gone round, I knew well enough there was no venturing that way; my very
Poll, I got it over; and holding out my hand, and calling him by his name, heart would shrink and my very blood run chill but to think of it. And as to the
‘‘Poll,’’ the sociable creature came to me, and sat upon my thumb, as he used to other side of the island, I did not know how it might be there; but supposing the
do, and continued talking to me, ‘‘Poor Robin Crusoe!’’ and how did I come current ran with the same force against the shore at the east as it passed by it on
here? and where had I been? just as if he had been overjoyed to see me again; the other, I might run the same risk of being driven down the stream, and carried
and so I carried him home along with me. by the island, as I had been before, of being carried away from it; so with these
thoughts I contented myself to be without any boat, though it had been the
product of so many months’ labour to make it, and of so many more to get it
unto the sea.
In this government of my temper I remained near a year, lived a very sedate,
retired life, as you may well suppose; and my thoughts being very much
composed as to my condition, and fully comforted in resigning myself to the
dispositions of Providence, I thought I lived really very happily in all things,
except that of society.
I improved myself in this time in all the mechanic exercises which my
necessities put me upon applying myself to, and I believe could, upon occasion,
have made a very good carpenter, especially considering how few tools I had.
Besides this, I arrived at an unexpected perfection in my earthenware, and
contrived well enough to make them with a wheel, which I found infinitely
easier and better; because I made things round and shapeable which before were
filthy things indeed to look on. But I think I was never more vain of my own
performance, or more joyful for anything I found out, than for my being able to
make a tobacco pipe. And though it was a very ugly, clumsy thing when it was
done, and only burned red, like other earthenware, yet as it was hard and firm,
and would draw the smoke, I was exceedingly comforted with it; for I had been
always used to smoke and there were pipes in the ship, but I forgot them at first,
not knowing that there was tobacco in the island; and afterwards, when I
searched the ship again, I could not come at any pipes at all.
In my wickerware also I improved much, and made abundance of necessary
baskets, as well as my invention showed me; though not very handsome, yet
they were such as were very handy and convenient for my laying things up in, or hunger will tame a lion. If I had let him stay there three or four days without
fetching things home in. For example, if I killed a goat abroad, I could hang it up food and then have carried him some water to drink, and then a little corn, he
in a tree, flay it and dress it and cut it in pieces and bring it home in a basket; and would have been as tame as one of the kids, for they are mighty sagacious,
the like by a turtle, I could cut it up, take out the eggs, and a piece or two of the tractable creatures where they are well used.
flesh, which was enough for me, and bring them home in a basket, and leave the However, for the present I let him go, knowing no better at that time; then I
rest behind me. Also large deep baskets were my receivers for my corn, which I went to the three kids, and taking them one by one, I tied them with strings
always rubbed out as soon as it was dry, and cured, and kept it in great baskets. together and with some difficulty brought them all home.
I began now to perceive my powder abated considerably, and this was a want It was a good while before they would feed, but throwing them some sweet
which it was impossible for me to supply; and I began seriously to consider what corn, it tempted them and they began to be tame; and now I found that if I
I must do when I should have no more powder; that is to say, how I should do to expected to supply myself with goat-flesh when I had no powder or shot left,
kill any goats. I had, as is observed in the third year of my being here, kept a breeding some up tame was my only way, when perhaps I might have them
young kid, and bred her up tame, and I was in hopes of getting a he-goat; but I about my house like a flock of sheep.
could not by any means bring it to pass, till my kid grew an old goat; and I could But then it presently occurred to me that I must keep the tame from the wild,
never find in my heart to kill her, till she died at last of mere age. or else they would always run wild when they grew up, and the only way for this
But being now in the eleventh year of my residence, and, as I have said, my was to have some enclosed piece of ground, well fenced either with hedge or
ammunition growing low, I set myself to study some art to trap and snare the pale, to keep them in so effectually that those within might not break out, or
goats, to see whether I could not catch some of them alive, and particularly I those without break in.
wanted a she-goat great with young. This was a great undertaking for one pair of hands, yet as I saw there was an
To this purpose I made snares to hamper them, and I do believe they were absolute necessity of doing it, my first piece of work was to find out a proper
more than once taken in them; but my tackle was not good, for I had no wire, piece of ground, viz., where there was likely to be herbage for them to eat, water
and I always found them broken and my bait devoured. for them to drink, and cover to keep them from the sun.
At length I resolved to try a pitfall, so I dug several large pits in the earth, in Those who understand such enclosures will think I had very little contrivance,
places where I had observed the goats used to feed, and over these pits I placed when I pitched upon a place very proper for all these, being a plain open piece of
hurdles of my own making too, with a great weight upon them; and several times meadow land, or savanna (as our people call it in the western colonies), which
I put ears of barley and dry rice, without setting the trap, and I could easily had two or three little drills of fresh water in it and at one end was very woody. I
perceive that the goats had gone in and eaten up the corn, for I could see the say, they will smile at my forecast, when I shall tell them I began my enclosing
mark of their feet. At length I set three traps in one night, and going the next of this piece of ground in such a manner that my hedge or pale must have been at
morning I found them all standing, and yet the bait eaten and gone. This was least two mile about. Nor was the madness of it so great as to the compass, for if
very discouraging. However, I altered my traps, and, not to trouble you with it was ten mile about, I was like to have time enough to do it in. But I did not
particulars, going one morning to see my traps, I found in one of them a large consider that my goats would be as wild in so much compass as if they had had
old he-goat, and in one of the others, three kids, a male and two females. the whole island, and I should have so much room to chase them in that I should
As to the old one, I knew not what to do with him, he was so fierce I durst not never catch them.
go into the pit to him; that is to say, to go about to bring him away alive, which My hedge was begun and carried on, I believe, about 50 yards, when this
was what I wanted. I could have killed him, but that was not my business, nor thought occurred to me; so I presently stopped short, and for the first beginning I
would it answer my end. So I e’en let him out, and he ran away, as if he had been resolved to enclose a piece of about 150 yards in length, and 100 yards in
frighted out of his wits. But I had forgot then what I learned afterwards, that breadth, which, as it would maintain as many as I should have in any reasonable
time, so, as my flock increased, I could add more ground to my enclosure. as a mark of special favour.
This was acting with some prudence, and I went to work with courage. I was But these were not the two cats which I brought on shore at first, for they were
about three months hedging in the first piece, and till I had done it I tethered the both of them dead, and had been interred near my habitation by my own hand;
three kids in the best part of it, and used them to feed as near me as possible to but one of them having multiplied by I know not what kind of creature, these
make them familiar; and very often I would go and carry them some ears of were two which I had preserved tame, whereas the rest ran wild in the woods,
barley, or a handful of rice, and feed them out of my hand; so that after my and became indeed troublesome to me at last; for they would often come into my
enclosure was finished and I let them loose, they would follow me up and down, house, and plunder me too, till at last I was obliged to shoot them, and did kill a
bleating after me for a handful of corn. great many; at length they left me with this attendance; and in this plentiful
This answered my end, and in about a year and a half I had a flock of about manner I lived; neither could I be said to want anything but society, and of that
twelve goats, kids and all; and in two years more I had three and forty, besides in some time after this I was like to have too much.
several that I took and killed for my food. And after that I enclosed five several I was something impatient, as I have observed, to have the use of my boat,
pieces of ground to feed them in, with little pens to drive them into, to take them though very loath to run any more hazards; and therefore sometimes I sat
as I wanted, and gates out of one piece of ground into another. contriving ways to get her about the island, and at other times I sat myself down
But this was not all; for now I not only had goat’s flesh to feed on when I contented enough without her. But I had a strange uneasiness in my mind to go
pleased, but milk too, a thing which indeed in my beginning I did not so much as down to the point of the island, where, as I have said, in my last ramble I went
think of, and which, when it came into my thoughts, was really an agreeable up the hill to see how the shore lay and how the current set, that I might see what
surprise. For now I set up my dairy and had sometimes a gallon or two of milk in I had to do. This inclination increased upon me every day, and at length I
a day. And as Nature, who gives supplies of food to every creature, dictates even resolved to travel thither by land; following the edge of the shore I did so. But
naturally how to make use of it, so I that had never milked a cow, much less a had anyone in England been to meet such a man as I was, it must either have
goat, or seen butter or cheese made, very readily and handily, though after a frighted them or raised a great deal of laughter; and as I frequently stood still to
great many essays and miscarriages, made me both butter and cheese at last, and look at myself, I could not but smile at the notion of my travelling through
never wanted it afterwards. Yorkshire with such an equipage and in such a dress. Be pleased to take a sketch
How mercifully can our great Creator treat His creatures, even in those of my figure as follows:
conditions in which they seemed to be overwhelmed in destruction! How can He I had a great high shapeless cap, made of a goat’s skin, with a flap hanging
sweeten the bitterest providences, and give us cause to praise Him for dungeons down behind, as well to keep the sun from me as to shoot the rain off from
and prisons! What a table was here spread for me in a wilderness, where I saw running into my neck; nothing being so hurtful in these climates as the rain upon
nothing at first but to perish for hunger! the flesh under the clothes.
It would have made a stoic smile to have seen me and my little family sit I had a short jacket of goatskin, the skirts coming down to about the middle of
down to dinner; there was my majesty, the prince and lord of the whole island: I my thighs; and a pair of open-kneed breeches of the same; the breeches were
had the lives of all my subjects at my absolute command. I could hang, draw, made of the skin of an old he-goat, whose hair hung down such a length on
give liberty, and take it away, and no rebels among all my subjects. either side that, like pantaloons, it reached to the middle of my legs; stockings
Then to see how like a king I dined, too, all alone, attended by my servants; and shoes I had none, but I had made me a pair of somethings, I scarce know
Poll, as if he had been my favourite, was the only person permitted to talk to me. what to call them, like buskins, to flap over my legs, and lace on either side like
My dog, who was now grown very old and crazy, and had found no species to spatterdashes; but of a most barbarous shape, as indeed were all the rest of my
multiply his kind upon, sat always at my right hand; and two cats, one on one clothes.
side the table and one on the other, expecting now and then a bit from my hand, I had on a broad belt of goatskin dried, which I drew together with two thongs
of the same, instead of buckles, and in a kind of a frog on either side of this, whereas in my case it set close upon the shore, and hurried me and my canoe
instead of a sword and a dagger, hung a little saw and a hatchet, one on one side, along with it, which at another time it would not have done.
one on the other. I had another belt, not so broad, and fastened in the same This observation convinced me that I had nothing to do but to observe the
manner, which hung over my shoulder; and at the end of it, under my left arm, ebbing and the flowing of the tide, and I might very easily bring my boat about
hung two pouches, both made of goatskin too; in one of which hung my powder, the island again. But when I began to think of putting it in practice, I had such a
in the other my shot. At my back I carried my basket, on my shoulder my gun, terror upon my spirits at the remembrance of the danger I had been in that I
and over my head a great clumsy ugly goatskin umbrella, but which, after all, could not think of it again with any patience; but on the contrary, I took up
was the most necessary thing I had about me, next to my gun. As for my face, another resolution, which was more safe, though more laborious; and this was
the colour of it was really not so mulatto-like as one might expect from a man that I would build, or rather make, me another piragua, or canoe; and so have
not at all careful of it and living within nine or ten degrees of the equinox. My one for one side of the island and one for the other.
beard I had once suffered to grow till it was about a quarter of a yard long; but as You are to understand that now I had, as I may call it, two plantations in the
I had both scissors and razors sufficient, I had cut it pretty short, except what island; one my little fortification or tent, with the wall about it under the rock,
grew on my upper lip, which I had trimmed into a large pair of Mahometan with the cave behind me, which by this time I had enlarged into several
whiskers, such as I had seen worn by some Turks whom I saw at Sallee; for the apartments, or caves, one within another. One of these, which was the driest and
Moors did not wear such, though the Turks did; of these mustachios, or largest, and had a door out beyond my wall of fortification, that is to say, beyond
whiskers, I will not say they were long enough to hang my hat upon them, but where my wall joined to the rock, was all filled up with the large earthen pots, of
they were of a length and shape monstrous enough and such as in England would which I have given an account, and with fourteen or fifteen great baskets, which
have passed for frightful. would hold five or six bushels each, where I laid up my stores of provision,
But all this is by the by; for as to my figure, I had so few to observe me that it especially my corn, some in the ear cut off short from the straw, and the other
was of no manner of consequence; so I say no more to that part. In this kind of rubbed out with my hand.
figure I went my new journey, and was out five or six days. I travelled first along As for my wall, made, as before, with long stakes, or piles, those piles grew
the seashore, directly to the place where I first brought my boat to an anchor, to all like trees, and were by this time grown so big and spread so very much that
get up upon the rocks; and having no boat now to take care of, I went over the there was not the least appearance to anyone’s view of any habitation behind
land a nearer way to the same height that I was upon before; when, looking them.
forward to the point of the rocks which lay out, and which I was obliged to
Near this dwelling of mine, but a little farther within the land and upon lower
double with my boat, as I said above, I was surprised to see the sea all smooth
ground, lay my two pieces of corn ground, which I kept duly cultivated and
and quiet, no rippling, no motion, no current, any more there than in other
sowed, and which duly yielded me their harvest in its season; and whenever I
places.
had occasion for more corn, I had more land adjoining as fit as that.
I was at a strange loss to understand this, and resolved to spend some time in
Besides this, I had my country seat, and I had now a tolerable plantation there
the observing it, to see if nothing from the sets of the tide had occasioned it; but I
also; for first, I had my little bower, as I called it, which I kept in repair; that is to
was presently convinced how it was, viz., that the tide of ebb setting from the
say, I kept the hedge which circled it in, constantly fitted up to its usual height,
west and joining with the current of waters from some great river on the shore
the ladder standing always in the inside; I kept the trees, which at first were no
must be the occasion of this current; and that according as the wind blew more
more than my stakes, but were now grown very firm and tall; I kept them always
forcibly from the west or from the north, this current came near, or went farther
so cut that they might spread and grow thick and wild, and make the more
from the shore; for waiting thereabouts till evening, I went up to the rock again,
agreeable shade, which they did effectually to my mind. In the middle of this I
and then the tide of the ebb being made, I plainly saw the current again as
had my tent always standing, being a piece of a sail spread over poles set up for
before, only that it ran further off, being near half a league from the shore;
that purpose, and which never wanted any repair or renewing; and under this I
had made me a squab, or couch, with the skins of the creatures I had killed and I Find the Print of a Man’s Naked Foot
with other soft things, and a blanket laid on them such as belonged to our
IT HAPPENED one day about noon, going towards my boat, I was exceedingly
seabedding, which I had saved, and a great watch coat to cover me; and here, surprised with the print of a man’s naked foot on the shore, which was very plain
whenever I had occasion to be absent from my chief seat, I took up my country to be seen in the sand. I stood like one thunderstruck, or as if I had seen an
habitation. apparition; I listened, I looked round me, I could hear nothing, nor see anything;
Adjoining to this I had my enclosures for my cattle, that is to say, my goats. I went up to a rising ground to look farther; I went up the shore and down the
And as I had taken an inconceivable deal of pains to fence and enclose this shore, but it was all one, I could see no other impression but that one; I went to it
ground, so I was so uneasy to see it kept entire, lest the goats should break again to see if there were any more, and to observe if it might not be my fancy;
through, that I never left off till with infinite labour I had stuck the outside of the but there was no room for that, for there was exactly the very print of a foot,
hedge so full of small stakes, and so near to one another, that it was rather a pale toes, heel, and every part of a foot; how it came thither I knew not, nor could in
than a hedge, and there was scarce room to put a hand through between them, the least imagine. But after innumerable fluttering thoughts, like a man perfectly
which afterwards, when those stakes grew, as they all did in the next rainy confused and out of myself, I came home to my fortification, not feeling, as we
season, made the enclosure strong, like a wall, indeed stronger than any wall. say, the ground I went on, but terrified to the last degree, looking behind me at
This will testify for me that I was not idle, and that I spared no pains to bring every two or three steps, mistaking every bush and tree, and fancying every
to pass whatever appeared necessary for my comfortable support; for I stump at a distance to be a man; nor is it possible to describe how many various
considered the keeping up a breed of tame creatures thus at my hand would be a shapes affrighted imagination represented things to me in; how many wild ideas
living magazine of flesh, milk, butter, and cheese for me as long as I lived in the were found every moment in my fancy, and what strange, unaccountable
place, if it were to be forty years, and that keeping them in my reach depended whimsies came into my thoughts by the way.
entirely upon my perfecting my enclosures to such a degree that I might be sure When I came to my castle, for so I think I called it ever after this, I fled into it
of keeping them together; which by this method indeed I so effectually secured like one pursued; whether I went over by the ladder, as first contrived, or went in
that when these little stakes began to grow, I had planted them so very thick, I at the hole in the rock, which I called a door, I cannot remember; no, nor could I
was forced to pull some of them up again. remember the next morning; for never frighted hare fled to cover, or fox to earth,
In this place also I had my grapes growing, which I principally depended on with more terror of mind than I to this retreat.
for my winter store of raisins, and which I never failed to preserve very I slept none that night; the farther I was from the occasion of my fright, the
carefully, as the best and most agreeable dainty of my whole diet; and indeed greater my apprehensions were; which is something contrary to the nature of
they were not agreeable only, but physical, wholesome, nourishing, and such things, and especially to the usual practice of all creatures in fear. But I was
refreshing to the last degree. so embarrassed with my own frightful ideas of the thing that I formed nothing
As this was also about halfway between my other habitation and the place but dismal imaginations to myself, even though I was now a great way off it.
where I had laid up my boat, I generally stayed and lay here in my way thither; Sometimes I fancied it must be the Devil; and reason joined in with me upon this
for I used frequently to visit my boat, and I kept all things about or belonging to supposition. For how should any other thing in human shape come into the
her in very good order; sometimes I went out in her to divert myself, but no place? Where was the vessel that brought them? What marks were there of any
more hazardous voyages would I go, nor scarce ever above a stone’s cast or two other footsteps? And how was it possible a man should come there? But then to
from the shore, I was so apprehensive of being hurried out of my knowledge think that Satan should take human shape upon him in such a place where there
again by the currents, or winds, or any other accident. But now I come to a new could be no manner of occasion for it, but to leave the print of his foot behind
scene of my life. him, and that even for no purpose too (for he could not be sure I should see it);
this was an amusement 5 the other way. I considered that the Devil might have circumstances present! Today we love what tomorrow we hate; today we seek
found out abundance of other ways to have terrified me than this of the single what tomorrow we shun; today we desire what tomorrow we fear; nay, even
print of a foot. That as I lived quite on the other side of the island, he would tremble at the apprehensions of. This was exemplified in me at this time in the
never have been so simple to leave a mark in a place where it was ten thousand most lively manner imaginable; for I, whose only affliction was that I seemed
to one whether I should ever see it or not, and in the sand too, which the first banished from human society, that I was alone, circumscribed by the boundless
surge of the sea upon a high wind would have defaced entirely. All this seemed ocean, cut off from mankind, and condemned to what I call silent life; that I was
inconsistent with the thing itself, and with all the notions we usually entertain of as one whom Heaven thought not worthy to be numbered among the living, or to
the subtlety of the Devil. appear among the rest of His creatures; that to have seen one of my own species
Abundance of such things as these assisted to argue me out of all would have seemed to me a raising me from death to life, and the greatest
apprehensions of its being the Devil. And I presently concluded then that it must blessing that Heaven itself, next to the supreme blessing of salvation, could
be some more dangerous creature, viz., that it must be some of the savages of the bestow; I say, that I should now tremble at the very apprehensions of seeing a
mainland over against me, who had wandered out to sea in their canoes, and man, and was ready to sink into the ground at but the shadow or silent
either driven by the currents or by contrary winds, had made the island; and had appearance of a man’s having set his foot in the island.
been on shore, but were gone away again tosea, being as loath, perhaps, to have Such is the uneven state of human life; and it afforded me a great many
stayed in this desolate island as I would have been to have had them. curious speculations afterwards, when I had a little recovered my first surprise; I
While these reflections were rolling upon my mind, I was very thankful in my considered that this was the station of life the infinitely wise and good
thoughts that I was so happy as not to be thereabouts at that time, or that they did providence of God had determined for me; that as I could not foresee what the
not see my boat, by which they would have concluded that some inhabitants had ends of divine wisdom might be in all this, so I was not to dispute His
been in the place, and perhaps have searched farther for me. Then terrible sovereignty, who, as I was His creature, had an undoubted right by creation to
thoughts racked my imagination about their having found my boat, and that there govern and dispose of me absolutely as He thought fit; and who, as I was a
were people here; and that if so, I should certainly have them come again in creature who had offended Him, had likewise a judicial right to condemn me to
greater numbers, and devour me; that if it should happen so that they should not what punishment He thought fit; and that it was my part to submit to bear His
find me, yet they would find my enclosure, destroy all my corn, carry away all indignation, because I had sinned against Him.
my flock of tame goats, and I should perish at last for mere want. I then reflected that God, who was not only righteous but omnipotent, as He
Thus my fear banished all my religious hope, all that former confidence in had thought fit thus to punish and afflict me, so He was able to deliver me; that if
God, which was founded upon such wonderful experience as I had had of His He did not think fit to do it, ’twas my unquestioned duty to resign myself
goodness, now vanished, as if He that had fed me by miracle hitherto could not absolutely and entirely to His will; and on the other hand, it was my duty also to
preserve by His power the provision which He had made for me by His hope in Him, pray to Him, and quietly to attend the dictates and directions of His
goodness. I reproached myself with my easiness, that would not sow any more daily providence.
corn one year than would just serve me till the next season, as if no accident These thoughts took me up many hours, days, nay, I may say, weeks and
could intervene to prevent my enjoying the crop that was upon the ground; and months; and one particular effect of my cogitations on this occasion I cannot
this I thought so just a reproof that I resolved for the future to have two or three omit, viz., one morning early, lying in my bed, and filled with thought about my
years’ corn beforehand, so that whatever might come, I might not perish for want danger from the appearance of savages, I found it discomposed me very much,
of bread. upon which those words of the Scripture came into my thoughts, ‘‘Call upon Me
How strange a checker-work of Providence is the life of man! and by what in the day of trouble, and I will deliver, and thou shalt glorify Me.’’
secret differing springs are the affections hurried about, as differing Upon this, rising cheerfully out of my bed, my heart was not only comforted,
but I was guided and encouraged to pray earnestly to God for deliverance. When secondly, when I came to measure the mark with my own foot, I found my foot
I had done praying, I took up my Bible, and opening it to read, the first words not so large by a great deal. Both these things filled my head with new
that presented to me were, ‘‘Wait on the Lord, and be of good cheer, and He shall imaginations, and gave me the vapours again to the highest degree; so that I
strengthen thy heart; wait, I say, on the Lord.’’ It is impossible to express the shook with cold, like one in an ague, and I went home again, filled with the
comfort this gave me. In answer, I thankfully laid down the book, and was no belief that some man or men had been on shore there; or, in short, that the island
more sad, at least not on that occasion. was inhabited, and I might be surprised before I was aware; and what course to
In the middle of these cogitations, apprehensions, and reflections, it came into take for my security, I knew not.
my thought one day that all this might be a mere chimera of my own; and that O what ridiculous resolution men take when possessed with fear! It deprives
this foot might be the print of my own foot, when I came on shore from my boat. them of the use of those means which reason offers for their relief. The first
This cheered me up a little too, and I began to persuade myself it was all a thing I proposed to myself was to throw down my enclosures, and turn all my
delusion; that it was nothing else but my own foot; and why might not I come tame cattle wild into the woods, that the enemy might not find them and then
that way from the boat, as well as I was going that way to the boat? Again, I frequent the island in prospect of the same or the like booty: then to the simple
considered also that I could by no means tell for certain where I had trod, and thing of digging up my two cornfields, that they might not find such a grain there
where I had not; and that if at last this was only the print of my own foot, I had and still be prompted to frequent the island; then to demolish my bower and tent,
played the part of those fools who strive to make stories of spectres and that they might not see any vestiges of habitation, and be prompted to look
apparitions, and then are frighted at them more than anybody. further, in order to find out the persons inhabiting.
Now I began to take courage and to peep abroad again, for I had not stirred These were the subject of the first night’s cogitation, after I was come home
out of my castle for three days and nights, so that I began to starve for provision; again, while the apprehensions which had so overrun my mind were fresh upon
for I had little or nothing within doors, but some barley-cakes and water. Then I me, and my head was full of vapours, as above. Thus fear of danger is ten
knew that my goats wanted to be milked too, which usually was my evening thousand times more terrifying than danger itself, when apparent to the eyes; and
diversion; and the poor creatures were in great pain and inconvenience for want we find the burden of anxiety greater, by much, than the evil which we are
of it; and indeed, it almost spoiled some of them, and almost dried up their milk. anxious about; and, which was worse than all this, I had not that relief in this
Heartening myself therefore with the belief that this was nothing but the print trouble from the resignation I used to practice, that I hoped to have. I looked, I
of one of my own feet (and so I might be truly said to start at my own shadow), I thought, like Saul, who complained not only that the Philistines were upon him
began to go abroad again, and went to my country house to milk my flock; but to but that God had forsaken him; for I did not now take due ways to compose my
see with what fear I went forward, how often I looked behind me, how I was mind, by crying to God in my distress, and resting upon His providence, as I had
ready every now and then to lay down my basket, and run for my life, it would done before, for my defence and deliverance; which if I had done, I had, at least,
have made anyone have thought I was haunted with an evil conscience, or that I been more cheerfully supported under this new surprise, and perhaps carried
had been lately most terribly frighted; and so indeed I had. through it with more resolution.
However, as I went down thus two or three days, and having seen nothing, I This confusion of my thoughts kept me waking all night; but in the morning I
began to be a little bolder, and to think there was really nothing in it but my own fell asleep, and having, by the amusement of my mind, been, as it were, tired,
imagination. But I could not persuade myself fully of this, till I should go down and my spirits exhausted, I slept very soundly, and waked much better composed
to the shore again, and see this print of a foot, and measure it by my own, and than I had ever been before. And now I began to think sedately; and upon the
see if there was any similitude or fitness, that I might be assured it was my own utmost debate with myself, I concluded that this island, which was so exceeding
foot. But when I came to the place, first, it appeared evidently to me, that when I pleasant, fruitful, and no farther from the mainland than as I had seen, was not so
laid up my boat, I could not possibly be on shore anywhere thereabouts: entirely abandoned as I might imagine. That although there were no stated
inhabitants who lived on the spot, yet that there might sometimes come boats off
from the shore, who either with design, or perhaps never but when they were from the young trees, if they attempted to approach my outer wall.
driven by cross winds, might come to this place. Thus in two years’ time I had a thick grove, and in five or six years’ time I had
That I had lived here fifteen years now, and had not met with the least shadow a wood before my dwelling, growing so monstrous thick and strong that it was
or figure of any people yet; and that if at any time they should be driven here, it indeed perfectly impassable; and no men of what kind soever would ever
was probable they went away again as soon as ever they could, seeing they had imagine that there was anything beyond it, much less a habitation. As for the
never thought fit to fix there upon any occasion, to this time. way which I proposed to myself to go in and out, for I left no avenue, it was by
That the most I could suggest any danger from was from any such casual setting two ladders; one to a part of the rock which was low, and then broke in,
accidental landing of straggling people from the main, who, as it was likely if and left room to place another ladder upon that; so when the two ladders were
they were driven hither, were here against their wills; so they made no stay here, taken down, no man living could come down to me without mischieving
but went off again with all possible speed, seldom staying one night on shore, himself; and if they had come down, they were still on the outside of my outer
lest they should not have the help of the tides and daylight back again; and that wall.
therefore I had nothing to do but to consider of some safe retreat, in case I Thus I took all the measures human prudence could suggest for my own
should see any savages land upon the spot. preservation; and it will be seen at length that they were not altogether without
Now I began sorely to repent that I had dug my cave so large as to bring a just reason; though I foresaw nothing at that time more than my mere fear
door through again, which door, as I said, came out beyond where my suggested to me.
fortification joined to the rock; upon maturely considering this, therefore, I While this was doing, I was not altogether careless of my other affairs; for I
resolved to draw me a second fortification, in the same manner of a semicircle, had a great concern upon me for my little herd of goats; they were not only a
at a distance from my wall, just where I had planted a double row of trees about present supply to me upon every occasion, and began to be sufficient to me,
twelve years before, of which I made mention. These trees having been planted without the expense of powder and shot, but also without the fatigue of hunting
so thick before, there wanted but a few piles to be driven between them, that after the wild ones; and I was loath to lose the advantage of them, and to have
they should be thicker and stronger, and my wall would be soon finished. them all to nurse up over again.
So that I had now a double wall, and my outer wall was thickened with pieces To this purpose, after long consideration, I could think of but two ways to
of timber, old cables, and everything I could think of to make it strong; having in preserve them; one was to find another convenient place to dig a cave
it seven little holes, about as big as I might put my arm out at. In the inside of underground, and to drive them into it every night; and the other was to enclose
this I thickened my wall to above ten foot thick, with continually bringing earth two or three little bits of land, remote from one another and as much concealed
out of my cave, and laying it at the foot of the wall, and walking upon it; and as I could, where I might keep about half a dozen young goats in each place; so
through the seven holes I contrived to plant the muskets, of which I took notice that if any disaster happened to the flock in general, I might be able to raise them
that I got seven on shore out of the ship; these, I say, I planted like my cannon, again with little trouble and time. And this, though it would require a great deal
and fitted them into frames that held them like a carriage, that so I could fire all of time and labour, I thought was the most rational design.
the seven guns in two minutes’ time. This wall I was many a weary month a- Accordingly, I spent some time to find out the most retired parts of the island;
finishing, and yet never thought myself safe till it was done. and I pitched upon one which was as private indeed as my heart could wish for;
When this was done, I stuck all the ground without my wall, for a great way it was a little damp piece of ground in the middle of the hollow and thick woods,
every way, as full with stakes or sticks, or the osier-like wood, which I found so where, as is observed, I almost lost myself once before, endeavouring to come
apt to grow, as they could well stand; insomuch, that I believe I might set in near back that way from the eastern part of the island. Here I found a clear piece of
twenty thousand of them, leaving a pretty large space between them and my land, near three acres, so surrounded with woods that it was almost an enclosure
wall, that I might have room to see an enemy, and they might have no shelter by Nature; at least it did not want near so much labour to make it so as the other
pieces of ground I had worked so hard at.
I immediately went to work with this piece of ground, and in less than a I See the Shore Spread with Bones
month’s time I had so fenced it round that my flock or herd, call it which you BUT to go on. After I had thus secured one part of my little living stock, I went
please, who were not so wild now as at first they might be supposed to be, were about the whole island, searching for another private place, to make such another
well enough secured in it. So without any further delay, I removed ten young deposit; when wandering more to the west point of the island than I had ever
she-goats and two he-goats to this place; and when they were there, I continued done yet, and looking out to sea, I thought I saw a boat upon the sea, at a great
to perfect the fence till I had made it as secure as the other, which, however, I did distance. I had found a perspective-glass or two, in one of the seamen’s chests
at more leisure, and it took me up more time by a great deal. which I saved out of our ship; but I had it not about me, and this was so remote
All this labour I was at the expense of, purely from my apprehensions on the that I could not tell what to make of it, though I looked at it till my eyes were not
account of the print of a man’s foot which I had seen; for as yet I never saw any able to hold to look any longer; whether it was a boat or not, I do not know; but
human creature come near the island, and I had now lived two years under these as I descended from the hill, I could see no more of it, so I gave it over; only I
uneasinesses, which indeed made my life much less comfortable than it was resolved to go no more out without a perspective-glass in my pocket.
before; as may well be imagined by any who know what it is to live in the When I was come down the hill to the end of the island, where indeed I had
constant snare of the fear of man; and this I must observe with grief too, that the never been before, I was presently convinced that the seeing the print of a man’s
discomposure of my mind had too great impressions also upon the religious part foot was not such a strange thing in the island as I imagined; and but that it was a
of my thoughts, for the dread and terror of falling into the hands of savages and special providence that I was cast upon the side of the island where the savages
cannibals lay so upon my spirits that I seldom found myself in a due temper for never came, I should easily have known that nothing was more frequent than for
application to my Maker, at least not with the sedate calmness and resignation of the canoes from the main, when they happened to be a little too far out at sea, to
soul which I was wont to do; I rather prayed to God as under great affliction and shoot over to that side of the island for harbour; likewise, as they often met and
pressure of mind, surrounded with danger, and in expectation every night of fought in their canoes, the victors, having taken any prisoners, would bring them
being murdered and devoured before morning; and I must testify from my over to this shore, where, according to their dreadful customs, being all
experience that a temper of peace, thankfulness, love, and affection is much cannibals, they would kill and eat them; of which hereafter.
more the proper frame for prayer than that of terror and discomposure; and that
When I was come down the hill to the shore, as I said above, being the
under the dread of mischief impending, a man is no more fit for a comforting
southwest point of the island, I was perfectly confounded and amazed; nor is it
performance of the duty of praying to God than he is for repentance on a
possible for me to express the horror of my mind at seeing the shore spread with
sickbed. For these discomposures affect the mind, as the others do the body; and
skulls, hands, feet, and other bones of human bodies; and particularly, I observed
the discomposure of the mind must necessarily be as great a disability as that of
a place where there had been a fire made, and a circle dug in the earth, like a
the body, and much greater, praying to God being properly an act of the mind,
cockpit, where it is supposed the savage wretches had sat down to their inhuman
not of the body.
feastings upon the bodies of their fellow creatures.
I was so astonished with the sight of these things that I entertained no notions
of any danger to myself from it for a long while; all my apprehensions were
buried in the thoughts of such a pitch of inhuman, hellish brutality, and the
horror of the degeneracy of human nature; which though I had heard of often,
yet I never had so near a view of before; in short, I turned away my face from
the horrid spectacle; my stomach grew sick, and I was just at the point of
fainting, when Nature discharged the disorder from my stomach; and having
vomited with an uncommon violence, I was a little relieved, but could not bear Time, however, and the satisfaction I had that I was in no danger of being
to stay in the place a moment; so I got me up the hill again, with all the speed I discovered by these people, began to wear off my uneasiness about them; and I
could, and walked on towards my own habitation. began to live just in the same composed manner as before; only with this
When I came a little out of that part of the island, I stood still a while as difference, that I used more caution, and kept my eyes more about me than I did
amazed; and then recovering myself, I looked up with the utmost affection of my before, lest I should happen to be seen by any of them; and particularly I was
soul, and with a flood of tears in my eyes, gave God thanks that had cast my first more cautious of firing my gun, lest any of them, being on the island, should
lot in a part of the world where I was distinguished from such dreadful creatures happen to hear of it; and it was therefore a very good providence to me that I had
as these; and that though I had esteemed my present condition very miserable, furnished myself with a tame breed of goats, that I needed not hunt any more
had yet given me so many comforts in it that I had still more to give thanks for about the woods, or shoot at them; and if I did catch any of them after this, it was
than to complain of; and this above all, that I had, even in this miserable by traps and snares, as I had done before; so that for two years after this, I
condition, been comforted with the knowledge of Himself and the hope of His believe I never fired my gun off once, though I never went out without it; and
blessing, which was a felicity more than sufficiently equivalent to all the misery which was more, as I had saved three pistols out of the ship, I always carried
which I had suffered or could suffer. them out with me, or at least two of them, sticking them in my goatskin belt; also
In this frame of thankfulness I went home to my castle, and began to be much I furbished up one of the great cutlasses that I had out of the ship, and made me a
easier now, as to the safety of my circumstances, than ever I was before; for I belt to put it on also; so that I was now a most formidable fellow to look at when
observed that these wretches never came to this island in search of what they I went abroad, if you add to the former description of myself the particular of
could get; perhaps not seeking, not wanting, or not expecting anything here; and two pistols and a great broadsword, hanging at my side in a belt, but without a
having often, no doubt, been up in the covered, woody part of it, without finding scabbard.
anything to their purpose. I knew I had been here now almost eighteen years, and Things going on thus, as I have said, for some time, I seemed, excepting these
never saw the least footsteps of human creature there before; and I might be here cautions, to be reduced to my former calm, sedate way of living; all these things
eighteen more as entirely concealed as I was now, if I did not discover myself to tended to showing me more and more how far my condition was from being
them, which I had no manner of occasion to do, it being my only business to miserable, compared to some others; nay, to many other particulars of life which
keep myself entirely concealed where I was, unless I found a better sort of it might have pleased God to have made my lot. It put me upon reflecting how
creatures than cannibals to make myself known to. little repining there would be among mankind, at any condition of life, if people
Yet I entertained such an abhorrence of the savage wretches that I have been would rather compare their condition with those that are worse, in order to be
speaking of, and of the wretched, inhuman custom of their devouring and eating thankful, than be always comparing them with those which are better, to assist
one another up, that I continued pensive and sad, and kept close within my own their murmurings and complainings.
circle for almost two years after this. When I say my own circle, I mean by it my As in my present condition there were not really many things which I wanted,
three plantations, viz., my castle, my country seat, which I called my bower, and so indeed I thought that the frights I had been in about these savage wretches,
my enclosure in the woods; nor did I look after this for any other use than as an and the concern I had been in for my own preservation, had taken off the edge of
enclosure for my goats; for the aversion which Nature gave me to these hellish my invention for my own conveniences; and I had dropped a good design, which
wretches was such that I was fearful of seeing them as of seeing the Devil I had once bent my thoughts too much upon; and that was to try if I could not
himself; nor did I so much as go to look after my boat in all this time, but began make some of my barley into malt, and then try to brew myself some beer. This
rather to think of making me another; for I could not think of ever making any was really a whimsical thought, and I reproved myself often for the simplicity of
more attempts to bring the other boat round the island to me, lest I should meet it; for I presently saw there would be the want of several things necessary to the
with some of these creatures at sea, in which, if I had happened to have fallen making my beer that it would be impossible for me to supply; as first, casks to
into their hands, I knew what would have been my lot. preserve it in, which was a thing that, as I have observed already, I could never
compass; no, though I spent not many days, but weeks, nay, months, in of a bloody putting twenty or thirty of them to the sword, as I may call it, the
attempting it, but to no purpose. In the next place, I had no hops to make it keep, horror I had at the place and at the signals of the barbarous wretches devouring
no yeast to make it work, no copper or kettle to make it boil; and yet all these one another abated my malice.
things notwithstanding, I verily believe, had not these things intervened, I mean Well, at length I found a place in the side of the hill where I was satisfied I
the frights and terrors I was in about the savages, I had undertaken it, and might securely wait till I saw any of their boats coming, and might then, even
perhaps brought it to pass too, for I seldom gave anything over without before they would be ready to come on shore, convey myself unseen into
accomplishing it, when I once had it in my head enough to begin it. thickets of trees, in one of which there was a hollow large enough to conceal me
But my invention now ran quite another way; for night and day I could think entirely; and where I might sit and observe all their bloody doings, and take my
of nothing but how I might destroy some of these monsters in their cruel bloody full aim at their heads, when they were so close together as that it would be next
entertainment, and, if possible, save the victim they should bring hither to to impossible that I should miss my shoot, or that I could fail wounding three or
destroy. It would take up a larger volume than this whole work is intended to be, four of them at the first shoot.
to set down all the contrivances I hatched, or rather brooded upon in my In this place, then, I resolved to fix my design, and accordingly I prepared two
thoughts, for the destroying these creatures, or at least frighting them so as to muskets and my ordinary fowling piece. The two muskets I loaded with a brace
prevent their coming hither any more; but all was abortive, nothing could be of slugs each, and four or five smaller bullets, about the size of pistol bullets;
possible to take effect, unless I was to be there to do it myself; and what could and the fowling piece I loaded with near a handful of swan shot, of the largest
one man do among them, when perhaps there might be twenty or thirty of them size; I also loaded my pistols with about four bullets each, and in this posture,
together, with their darts, or their bows and arrows, with which they could shoot well provided with ammunition for a second and third charge, I prepared myself
as true to a mark as I could with my gun? for my expedition.
Sometimes I contrived to dig a hole under the place where they made their After I had thus laid the scheme of my design, and in my imagination put it in
fire, and put in five or six pound of gunpowder, which, when they kindled their practice, I continually made my tour every morning up to the top of the hill,
fire, would consequently take fire and blow up all that was near it; but as in the which was from my castle, as I called it, about three miles, or more, to see if I
first place I should be very loath to waste so much powder upon them, my store could observe any boats upon the sea, coming near the island, or standing over
being now within the quantity of one barrel, so neither could I be sure of its towards it; but I began to tire of this hard duty, after I had for two or three
going off at any certain time, when it might surprise them; and at best, that it months constantly kept my watch; but came always back without any discovery,
would do little more than just blow the fire about their ears and fright them, but there having not in all that time been the least appearance, not only on or near
not sufficient to make them forsake the place; so I laid it aside, and then the shore, but not on the whole ocean, so far as my eyes or glasses could reach
proposed that I would place myself in ambush, in some convenient place, with every way.
my three guns all double-loaded; and in the middle of their bloody ceremony, let As long as I kept up my daily tour to the hill to look out, so long also I kept up
fly at them, when I should be sure to kill or wound perhaps two or three at every the vigour of my design, and my spirits seemed to be all the while in a suitable
shoot; and then falling in upon them with my three pistols and my sword, I made form for so outrageous an execution as the killing twenty or thirty naked savages
no doubt but that if there was twenty I should kill them all. This fancy pleased for an offence which I had not at all entered into a discussion of in my thoughts,
my thoughts for some weeks, and I was so full of it that I often dreamed of it; any farther than my passions were at first fired by the horror I conceived at the
and sometimes that I was just going to let fly at them in my sleep. unnatural custom of that people of the country, who it seems had been suffered
I went so far with it in my imagination that I employed myself several days to by Providence, in His wise disposition of the world, to have no other guide than
find out proper places to put myself in ambuscade, as I said, to watch for them; that of their own abominable and vitiated passions; and consequently were left,
and I went frequently to the place itself, which was now grown more familiar to and perhaps had been so for some ages, to act such horrid things and receive
me; and especially while my mind was thus filled with thoughts of revenge, and
such dreadful customs, as nothing but nature entirely abandoned of Heaven, and Europe, as a mere butchery, a bloody and unnatural piece of cruelty, unjustifiable
acted by some hellish degeneracy, could have run them into. But now, when, as I either to God or man; and such, as for which the very name of a Spaniard is
have said, I began to be weary of the fruitless excursion which I had made so reckoned to be frightful and terrible to all people of humanity or of Christian
long, and so far every morning in vain, so my opinion of the action itself began compassion; as if the kingdom of Spain were particularly eminent for the
to alter, and I began with cooler and calmer thoughts to consider what it was I product of a race of men who were without principles of tenderness, or the
was going to engage in: What authority or call I had to pretend to be judge and common bowels of pity to the miserable, which is reckoned to be a mark of
executioner upon these men as criminals, whom Heaven had thought fit for so generous temper in the mind.
many ages to suffer unpunished to go on, and to be, as it were, the executioners These considerations really put me to a pause, and to a kind of a full stop; and
of His judgments one upon another. How far these people were offenders against I began by little and little to be off of my design, and to conclude I had taken
me, and what right I had to engage in the quarrel of that blood, which they shed wrong measures in my resolutions to attack the savages; that it was not my
promiscuously one upon another. I debated this very often with myself thus: business to meddle with them unless they first attacked me; and this it was my
‘‘How do I know what God Himself judges in this particular case? It is certain business, if possible, to prevent; but that if I were discovered and attacked, then I
these people do not commit this as a crime; it is not against their own knew my duty.
consciences’ reproving, or their light reproaching them. They do not know it to On the other hand, I argued with myself that this really was the way not to
be an offence, and then commit it in defiance of Divine justice, as we do in deliver myself, but entirely to ruin and destroy myself; for unless I was sure to
almost all the sins we commit. They think it no more a crime to kill a captive kill every one that not only should be on shore at that time, but that should ever
taken in war than we do to kill an ox; nor to eat human flesh, than we do to eat come on shore afterwards, if but one of them escaped to tell their country people
mutton.’’ what had happened, they would come over again by thousands to revenge the
When I had considered this a little, it followed necessarily that I was certainly death of their fellows, and I should only bring upon myself a certain destruction,
in the wrong in it; that these people were not murderers in the sense that I had which at present I had no manner of occasion for.
before condemned them in my thoughts; any more than those Christians were Upon the whole I concluded that neither in principle or in policy I ought one
murderers, who often put to death the prisoners taken in battle; or more way or other to concern myself in this affair. That my business was by all
frequently, upon many occasions, put whole troops of men to the sword, without possible means to conceal myself from them and not to leave the least signal to
giving quarter, though they threw down their arms and submitted. them to guess by, that there were any living creatures upon the island; I mean of
In the next place it occurred to me that albeit the usage they thus gave one human shape.
another was thus brutish and inhuman, yet it was really nothing to me. These Religion joined in with this prudential, and I was convinced now, many ways,
people had done me no injury. That if they attempted me, or I saw it necessary that I was perfectly out of my duty, when I was laying all my bloody schemes for
for my immediate preservation to fall upon them, something might be said for it; the destruction of innocent creatures, I mean innocent as to me. As to the crimes
but that I was yet out of their power and they had really no knowledge of me, they were guilty of towards one another, I had nothing to do with them; they
and consequently no design upon me; and therefore it could not be just for me to were national, and I ought to leave them to the justice of God, who is the
fall upon them. That this would justify the conduct of the Spaniards in all their Governor of nations, and knows how by national punishments to make a just
barbarities practiced in America, where they destroyed millions of these people, retribution for national offences; and to bring public judgments upon those who
who, however they were idolaters and barbarians and had several bloody and offend in a public manner, by such ways as best please Him.
barbarous rites in their customs, such as sacrificing human bodies to their idols,
This appeared so clear to me now that nothing was a greater satisfaction to me
were yet, as to the Spaniards, very innocent people; and that the rooting them out
than that I had not been suffered to do a thing which I now saw so much reason
of the country is spoken of with the utmost abhorrence and detestation by even
to believe would have been no less a sin than that of willful murder, if I had
the Spaniards themselves, at this time, and by all other Christian nations of
committed it; and I gave most humble thanks on my knees to God, that had thus
delivered me from blood-guiltiness; beseeching Him to grant me the protection I Seldom Go from My Cell
of His Providence, that I might not fall into the hands of the barbarians; or that I
IN THIS disposition I continued for near a year after this; and so far was I from
might not lay my hands upon them, unless I had a more clear call from Heaven desiring an occasion for falling upon these wretches, that in all that time I never
to do it, in defence of my own life. once went up the hill to see whether there were any of them in sight, or to know
whether any of them had been on shore there or not, that I might not be tempted
to renew any of my contrivances against them, or be provoked by any advantage
which might present itself to fall upon them; only this I did, I went and removed
my boat, which I had on the other side the island, and carried it down to the east
end of the whole island, where I ran it into a little cove which I found under
some high rocks, and where I knew, by reason of the currents, the savages durst
not, at least would not, come with their boats upon any account whatsoever.
I SELDOM GO FROM MY CELL
With my boat I carried away everything that I had left there belonging to her,
though not necessary for the bare going thither, viz., a mast and sail which I had
made for her, and a thing like an anchor, but indeed which could not be called
either anchor or grappling; however, it was the best I could make of its kind. All
these I removed, that there might not be the least shadow of any discovery, or
any appearance of any boat or of any human habitation upon the island.
Besides this, I kept myself, as I said, more retired than ever, and seldom went
from my cell, other than upon my constant employment, viz., to milk my she-
goats and manage my little flock in the wood; which, as it was quite on the other
part of the island, was quite out of danger; for certain it is that these savage
people who sometimes haunted this island never came with any thoughts of
finding anything here; and consequently never wandered off from the coast; and
I doubt not but they might have been several times on shore, after my
apprehensions of them had made me cautious, as well as before; and indeed, I
looked back with some horror upon the thoughts of what my condition would
have been, if I had chopped6 upon them and been discovered before that, when
naked and unarmed, except with one gun, and that loaden often only with small
shot, I walked everywhere, peeping and peeping about the island to see what I
could get; what a surprise should I have been in, if, when I discovered the print
of a man’s foot, I had instead of that seen fifteen or twenty savages and found
them pursuing me, and by the swiftness of their running, no possibility of my
escaping them!
The thoughts of this sometimes sunk my very soul within me, and distressed
my mind so much that I could not soon recover it, to think what I should have residence in this dismal place.
done, and how I not only should not have had presence of mind enough to do I believe the reader of this will not think strange if I confess that these
what I might have done; much less what now, after so much consideration and anxieties, these constant dangers I lived in, and the concern that was now upon
preparation, I might be able to do. Indeed, after serious thinking of these things, I me, put an end to all invention and to all the contrivances that I had laid for my
would be very melancholy, and sometimes it would last a great while; but I future accommodations and conveniences. I had the care of my safety more now
resolved it at last all into thankfulness to that Providence which had delivered upon my hands than that of my food. I cared not to drive a nail or chop a stick of
me from so many unseen dangers and had kept me from those mischiefs which I wood now, for fear the noise I should make should be heard; much less would I
could no way have been the agent in delivering myself from, because I had not fire a gun, for the same reason; and above all, I was intolerably uneasy at making
the least notion of any such thing depending, or the least supposition of it being any fire, lest the smoke, which is visible at a great distance in the day, should
possible. betray me; and for this reason I removed that part of my business which required
This renewed a contemplation which often had come to my thoughts in former fire, such as burning of pots and pipes, etc., into my new apartment in the woods,
time, when first I began to see the merciful dispositions of Heaven in the dangers where after I had been some time, I found, to my unspeakable consolation, a
we run through in this life. How wonderfully we are delivered, when we know mere natural cave in the earth, which went in a vast way, and where, I dare say,
nothing of it. How when we are in (a quandary, as we call it), a doubt or no savage, had he been at the mouth of it, would be so hardy as to venture in, nor
hesitation, whether to go this way, or that way, a secret hint shalldirect us this indeed would any man else, but one who, like me, wanted nothing so much as a
way, when we intended to go that way; nay, when sense, our own inclination, safe retreat.
and perhaps business has called to go the other way, yet a strange impression The mouth of this hollow was at the bottom of a great rock, where, by mere
upon the mind, from we know not what springs, and by we know not what accident (I would say, if I did not see abundant reason to ascribe all such things
power, shall overrule us to go this way; and it shall afterwards appear that had now to Providence), I was cutting down some thick branches of trees to make
we gone that way which we should have gone, and even to our imagination charcoal; and before I go on, I must observe the reason of my making this
ought to have gone, we should have been ruined and lost. Upon these, and many charcoal, which was thus:
like reflections, I afterwards made it a certain rule with me that whenever I I was afraid of making a smoke about my habitation, as I said before; and yet I
found those secret hints, or pressings of my mind, to doing or not doing anything could not live there without baking my bread, cooking my meat, etc.; so I
that presented, or to going this way or that way, I never failed to obey the secret contrived to burn some wood here, as I had seen done in England, under turf, till
dictate; though I knew no other reason for it than that such a pressure, or such a it became chark, or dry coal; and then putting the fire out, I preserved the coal to
hint, hung upon my mind. I could give many examples of the success of this carry home and perform the other services which fire was wanting for at home,
conduct in the course of my life; but more especially in the latter part of my without danger of smoke.
inhabiting this unhappy island; besides many occasions which it is very likely I
But this by the by. While I was cutting down some wood here, I perceived that
might have taken notice of, if I had seen with the same eyes then that I saw with
behind a very thick branch of low brushwood, or underwood, there was a kind of
now. But ’tis never too late to be wise; and I cannot but advise all considering
hollow place; I was curious to look into it, and getting with difficulty into the
men, whose lives are attended with such extraordinary incidents as mine, or even
mouth of it, I found it was pretty large, that is to say, sufficient for me to stand
though not so extraordinary, not to slight such secret intimations of Providence,
upright in it, and perhaps another with me; but I must confess to you, I made
let them come from what invisible intelligence they will, that I shall not discuss,
more haste out than I did in, when looking farther into the place, and which was
and perhaps cannot account for; but certainly they are a proof of the converse of
perfectly dark, I saw two broad shining eyes of some creature, whether devil or
spirits and the secret communication between those embodied and those
man I knew not, which twinkled like two stars, the dim light from the cave’s
unembodied; and such a proof as can never be withstood. Of which I shall have
mouth shining directly in and making the reflection.
occasion to give some very remarkable instances in the remainder of my solitary
However, after some pause, I recovered myself, and began to call myself a sides and roof of this vault, or cave; the walls reflected a hundred thousand lights
thousand fools, and tell myself that he that was afraid to see the Devil was not fit to me from my two candles; what it was in the rock, whether diamonds, or any
to live twenty years in an island all alone; and that I durst to believe there was other precious stones, or gold, which I rather supposed it to be, I knew not.
nothing in this cave that was more frightful than myself; upon this, plucking up The place I was in was a most delightful cavity or grotto of its kind, as could
my courage, I took up a great firebrand, and in I rushed again, with the stick be expected, though perfectly dark; the floor was dry and level and had a sort of
flaming in my hand; I had not gone three steps in but I was almost as much small loose gravel upon it, so that there was no nauseous or venomous creature
frighted as I was before; for I heard a very loud sigh, like that of a man in some to be seen, neither was there any damp or wet on the sides or roof. The only
pain, and it was followed by a broken noise, as if of words half expressed, and difficulty in it was the entrance, which, however, as it was a place of security,
then a deep sigh again. I stepped back, and was indeed struck with such a and such a retreat as I wanted, I thought that was a convenience; so that I was
surprise that it put me into a cold sweat; and if I had had a hat on my head, I will really rejoiced at the discovery and resolved, without any delay, to bring some of
not answer for it that my hair might not have lifted it off. But still plucking up those things which I was most anxious about to this place; particularly, I
my spirits as well as I could, and encouraging myself a little with considering resolved to bring hither my magazine of powder, and all my spare arms, viz., two
that the power and presence of God was everywhere and was able to protect me, fowling pieces (for I had three in all) and three muskets (for of them I had eight
upon this I stepped forward again, and by the light of the firebrand, holding it up in all); so I kept at my castle only five, which stood ready mounted, like pieces
a little over my head, I saw lying on the ground a most monstrous, frightful old of cannon, on my outmost fence; and were ready also to take out upon any
he-goat, just making his will, as we say, and gasping for life, and dying indeed of expedition.
mere old age. Upon this occasion of removing my ammunition, I took occasion to open the
I stirred him a little to see if I could get him out, and he essayed to get up, but barrel of powder which I took up out of the sea, and which had been wet; and I
was not able to raise himself; and I thought with myself, he might even lie there; found that the water had penetrated about three or four inches into the powder on
for if he had frighted me so, he would certainly fright any of the savages, if any every side, which, caking and growing hard, had preserved the inside like a
of them should be so hardy as to come in there while he had any life in him. kernel in a shell; so that I had near sixty pound of very good powder in the
I was now recovered from my surprise and began to look round me, when I centre of the cask; and this was an agreeable discovery to me at that time; so I
found the cave was but very small, that is to say, it might be about twelve foot carried all away thither, never keeping above two or three pound of powder with
over, but in no manner of shape, either round or square, no hands having ever me in my castle, for fear of a surprise of any kind. I also carried thither all the
been employed in making it but those of mere nature. I observed also that there lead I had left for bullets.
was a place at the farther side of it that went in farther but was so low that it I fancied myself now like one of the ancient giants, which were said to live in
required me to creep upon my hands and knees to go into it, and whither I went I caves and holes in the rocks, where none could come at them; for I persuaded
knew not; so having no candle, I gave it over for some time; but resolved to myself, while I was here, if five hundred savages were to hunt me, they could
come again the next day, provided with candles and a tinderbox, which I had never find me out; or if they did, they would not venture to attack me here.
made of the lock of one of the muskets, with some wildfire in the pan. The old goat which I found expiring died in the mouth of the cave the next
Accordingly, the next day I came provided with six large candles of my own day after I made this discovery; and I found it much easier to dig a great hole
making, for I made very good candles now of goat’s tallow; and going into this there and throw him in and cover him with earth than to drag him out; so I
low place, I was obliged to creep upon all fours, as I have said, almost ten yards; interred him there, to prevent offence to my nose.
which, by the way, I thought was a venture bold enough, considering that I knew I was now in my twenty-third year of residence in this island and was so
not how far it might go, nor what was beyond it. When I was got through the naturalized to the place and to the manner of living that could I have but enjoyed
strait, I found the roof rose higher up, I believe near twenty foot; but never was the certainty that no savages would come to the place to disturb me, I could have
such a glorious sight seen in the island, I dare say, as it was to look round the
been content to have capitulated for spending the rest of my time there, even to It was now the month of December, as I said above, in my twenty-third year;
the last moment, till I had laid me down and died, like the old goat in the cave. I and this, being the southern solstice, for winter I cannot call it, was the particular
had also arrived to some little diversions and amusements, which made the time time of my harvest, and required my being pretty much abroad in the fields;
pass more pleasantly with me a great deal than it did before; as, first, I had when, going out pretty early in the morning, even before it was thorough
taught my Poll, as I noted before, to speak; and he did it so familiarly, and talked daylight, I was surprised with seeing a light of some fire upon the shore, at a
so articulately and plain, that it was very pleasant to me; and he lived with me no distance from me of about two miles, towards the end of the island, where I had
less than six and twenty years. How long he might live afterwards I know not; observed some savages had been, as before, but not on the other side; but to my
though I know they have a notion in Brazil that they live a hundred years; great affliction, it was on my side of the island.
perhaps poor Poll may be alive there still, calling after poor Robin Crusoe to this I was indeed terribly surprised at the sight, and stopped short within my grove,
day. I wish no Englishman the ill luck to come there and hear him; but if he did, not daring to go out, lest I might be surprised; and yet I had no more peace
he would certainly believe it was the Devil. My dog was a very pleasant and within, from the apprehensions I had that if these savages, in rambling over the
loving companion to me for no less than sixteen years of my time, and then died island, should find my corn standing, or cut, or any of my works and
of mere old age; as for my cats, they multiplied, as I have observed, to that improvements, they would immediately conclude that there were people in the
degree, that I was obliged to shoot several of them at first to keep them from place, and would then never give over till they had found me out. In this
devouring me and all I had; but at length, when the two old ones I brought with extremity I went back directly to my castle, pulled up the ladder after me, and
me were gone, and after some time continually driving them from me and letting made all things without look as wild and natural as I could.
them have no provision with me, they all ran wild into the woods, except two or Then I prepared myself within, putting myself in a posture of defence; I
three favourites, which I kept tame, and whose young, when they had any, I loaded all my cannon, as I called them; that is to say, my muskets, which were
always drowned; and these were part of my family. Besides these, I always kept mounted upon my new fortification, and all my pistols, and resolved to defend
two or three household kids about me, which I taught to feed out of my hand; myself to the last gasp, not forgetting seriously to commend myself to the Divine
and I had two more parrots, which talked pretty well, and would all call ‘‘Robin protection, and earnestly to pray to God to deliver me out of the hands of the
Crusoe,’’ but none like my first; nor indeed did I take the pains with any of them barbarians; and in this posture I continued about two hours; but began to be
that I had done with him. I had also several tame seafowls, whose names I know mighty impatient for intelligence abroad, for I had no spies to send out.
not, which I caught upon the shore, and cut their wings; and the little stakes
After sitting a while longer and musing what I should do in this case, I was
which I had planted before my castle wall being now grown up to a good thick
not able to bear sitting in ignorance any longer; so setting up my ladder to the
grove, these fowls all lived among these low trees and bred there, which was
side of the hill, where there was a flat place, as I observed before, and then
very agreeable to me; so that, as I said above, I began to be very well contented
pulling the ladder up after me, I set it up again and mounted to the top of the hill;
with the life I led, if it might but have been secured from the dread of the
and pulling out my perspective-glass, which I had taken on purpose, I laid me
savages.
down flat on my belly on the ground and began to look for the place. I presently
But it was otherwise directed; and it may not be amiss for all people who shall found there was no less than nine naked savages sitting round a small fire they
meet with my story to make this just observation from it, viz., how frequently, in had made, not to warm them, for they had no need of that, the weather being
the course of our lives, the evil which in itself we seek most to shun, and which, extreme hot; but, as I suppose, to dress some of their barbarous diet of human
when we are fallen into, is the most dreadful to us, is oftentimes the very means flesh, which they had brought with them, whether alive or dead I could not
or door of our deliverance, by which alone we can be raised again from the know.
affliction we are fallen into. I could give many examples of this in the course of
They had two canoes with them, which they had hauled up upon the shore;
my unaccountable life; but in nothing was it more particularly remarkable than
and as it was then tide of ebb, they seemed to me to wait for the return of the
in the circumstances of my last years of solitary residence in this island.
flood to go away again; it is not easy to imagine what confusion this sight put me During all this time, I was in the murdering humour, and took up most of my
into, especially seeing them come on my side the island, and so near me too; but hours, which should have been better employed, in contriving how to circumvent
when I observed their coming must be always with the current of the ebb, I and fall upon them the very next time I should see them; especially if they
began afterwards to be more sedate in my mind, being satisfied that I might go should be divided, as they were the last time, into two parties; nor did I consider
abroad with safety all the time of the tide of flood, if they were not on shore at all that if I killed one party, suppose ten or a dozen, I was still the next day, or
before. And having made this observation, I went abroad about my harvest work week, or month, to kill another, and so another, even ad infinitum, till I should be
with the more composure. at length no less a murderer than they were in being man-eaters, and perhaps
As I expected, so it proved; for as soon as the tide made to the westward, I much more so.
saw them all take boat, and row (or paddle, as we call it) all away. I should have I spent my days now in great perplexity and anxiety of mind, expecting that I
observed that, for an hour and more before they went off, they went to dancing, should one day or other fall into the hands of these merciless creatures; and if I
and I could easily discern their postures and gestures by my glasses. I could not did at any time venture abroad, it was not without looking round me with the
perceive, by my nicest observation, but that they were stark naked and had not greatest care and caution imaginable; and now I found to my great comfort how
the least covering upon them; but whether they were men or women, that I could happy it was that I provided for a tame flock or herd of goats; for I durst not
not distinguish. upon any account fire my gun, especially near that side of the island where they
As soon as I saw them shipped and gone, I took two guns upon my shoulders usually came, lest I should alarm the savages; and if they had fled from me now,
and two pistols at my girdle and my great sword by my side, without a scabbard, I was sure to have them come back again, with perhaps two or three hundred
and with all the speed I was able to make I went away to the hill where I had canoes with them, in a few days, and then I knew what to expect.
discovered the first appearance of all; and as soon as I got thither, which was not However, I wore out a year and three months more before I ever saw any more
less than two hours (for I could not go apace, being so loaden with arms as I of these savages, and then I found them again, as I shall soon observe. It is true,
was), I perceived there had been three canoes more of savages on that place; and they might have been there once or twice; but either they made no stay, or at
looking out farther, I saw they were all at sea together, making over for the main. least I did not hear them; but in the month of May, as near as I could calculate,
This was a dreadful sight to me, especially when, going down to the shore, I and in my four and twentieth year, I had a very strange encounter with them, of
could see the marks of horror which the dismal work they had been about had which in its place.
left behind it, viz., the blood, the bones, and part of the flesh of human bodies,
eaten and devoured by those wretches, with merriment and sport. I was so filled
with indignation at the sight that I began now to premeditate the destruction of
the next that I saw there, let them be who or how many soever.
It seemed evident to me that the visits which they thus made to this island are
not very frequent; for it was above fifteen months before any more of them came
on shore there again; that is to say, I neither saw them, or any footsteps, or
signals of them, in all that time; for as to the rainy seasons, then they are sure not
to come abroad, at least not so far; yet all this while I lived uncomfortably, by
reason of the constant apprehensions I was in of their coming upon me by
surprise; from whence I observe that the expectation of evil is more bitter than
the suffering; especially if there is no room to shake off that expectation, or those
apprehensions.
I looked frequently at it all that day, and soon perceived that it did not move;
I See the Wreck of a Ship so I presently concluded that it was a ship at an anchor; and being eager, you
may be sure, to be satisfied, I took my gun in my hand, and ran towards the
THE perturbation of my mind, during this fifteen or sixteen months’ interval,
southeast side of the island, to the rocks where I had formerly been carried away
was very great; I slept unquiet, dreamed always frightful dreams, and often
with the current, and getting up there, the weather by this time being perfectly
started out of my sleep in the night. In the day great troubles overwhelmed my
clear, I could plainly see, to my great sorrow, the wreck of a ship cast away in
mind, and in the night I dreamed often of killing the savages, and of the reasons
the night upon those concealed rocks which I found when I was out in my boat;
why I might justify the doing of it; but to waive all this for a while; it was in the
and which rocks, as they checked the violence of the stream, and made a kind of
middle of May, on the sixteenth day, I think, as well as my poor wooden
counterstream or eddy, were the occasion of my recovering from the most
calendar would reckon; for I marked all upon the post still; I say, it was the
sixteenth of May that it blew a very great storm of wind all day, with a great deal desperate, hopeless condition that ever I had been in, in all my life.
of lightning and thunder, and a very foul night it was after it; I know not what Thus what is one man’s safety is another man’s destruction; for it seems these
was the particular occasion of it; but as I was reading in the Bible, and taken up men, whoever they were, being out of their knowledge, and the rocks being
with very serious thoughts about my present condition, I was surprised with a wholly under water, had been driven upon them in the night, the wind blowing
noise of a gun, as I thought, fired at sea. hard at east and east-northeast. Had they seen the island, as I must necessarily
This was, to be sure, a surprise of a quite different nature from any I had met suppose they did not, they must, as I thought, have endeavoured to have saved
with before; for the notions this put into my thoughts were quite of another kind. themselves on shore by the help of their boat; but their firing of guns for help,
I started up in the greatest haste imaginable, and in a trice clapped my ladder to especially when they saw, as I imagined, my fire, filled me with many thoughts.
the middle place of the rock, and pulled it after me, and mounting it the second First I imagined that upon seeing my light, they might have put themselves into
time, got to the top of the hill the very moment that a flash of fire bade me listen their boat and have endeavoured to make the shore; but that the sea going very
high, they might have been cast away; other times I imagined that they might
for a second gun, which accordingly, in about half a minute I heard, and by the
sound knew that it was from that part of the sea where I was driven down the have lost their boat before, as might be the case many ways; as particularly by
current in my boat. the breaking of the sea upon their ship, which many times obliges men to stave
or take in pieces their boat, and sometimes to throw it overboard with their own
I immediately considered that this must be some ship in distress, and that they hands. Other times I imagined they had some other ship or ships in company,
had some comrade, or some other ship in company, and fired these guns for who, upon the signals of distress they had made, had taken them up and carried
signals of distress and to obtain help. I had this presence of mind at that minute, them off. Other whiles I fancied they were all gone off to sea in their boat, and
as to think that, though I could not help them, it may be they might help me; so I being hurried away by the current that I had been formerly in, were carried out
brought together all the dry wood I could get at hand, and making a good into the great ocean, where there was nothing but misery and perishing; and that
handsome pile, I set it on fire upon the hill; the wood was dry and blazed freely; perhaps they might by this time think of starving and of being in a condition to
and though the wind blew very hard, yet it burned fairly out, that I was certain, if eat one another. condition I was in, I could do no more than look on upon the
there was any such thing as a ship, they must needs see it, and no doubt they did, misery of the poor men, and pity them, which had still this good effect on my
for as soon as ever my fire blazed up, I heard another gun, and after that several side, that it gave me more and more cause to give thanks to God, who had so
others, all from the same quarter; I plied my fire all night long, till day broke; happily and comfortably provided for me in my desolate condition; and that of
and when it was broad day, and the air cleared up, I saw something at a great two ships’ companies who were now cast away upon this part of the world, not
distance at sea, full east of the island, whether a sail or a hull I could not one life should be spared but mine. I learned here again to observe that it is very
distinguish, no, not with my glasses, the distance was so great, and the weather rare that the providence of God casts us into any condition of life so low, or any
still something hazy also; at least it was so out at sea. misery so great, but we may see something or other to be thankful for; and may
see others in worse circumstances than our own. linen drawers, and a blue linen shirt; but nothing to direct me so much as to
Such certainly was the case of these men, of whom I could not so much as see guess what nation he was of. He had nothing in his pocket but two pieces of
room to suppose any of them were saved; nothing could make it rational, so eight and a tobacco pipe; the last was to me of ten times more value than the
much as to wish or expect that they did not all perish there, except the possibility first.
only of their being taken up by another ship in company; and this was but mere It was now calm, and I had a great mind to venture out in my boat to this
possibility indeed; for I saw not the least signal or appearance of any such thing. wreck, not doubting but I might find something on board that might be useful to
I cannot explain by any possible energy of words what a strange longing or me; but that did not altogether press me so much as the possibility that there
hankering of desires I felt in my soul upon this sight, breaking out sometimes might be yet some living creature on board, whose life I might not only save but
thus: "O that there had been but one or two, nay, or but one soul, saved out of might, by saving that life, comfort my own to the last degree; and this thought
this ship, to have escaped to me, that I might but have had one companion, one clung so to my heart that I could not be quiet night or day, but I must venture out
fellow creature to have spoken to me and to have conversed with!’’ In all the in my boat on board this wreck; and committing the rest to God’s providence, I
time of my solitary life, I never felt so earnest, so strong a desire after the society thought the impression was so strong upon my mind that it could not be resisted,
of my fellow creatures, or so deep a regret at the want of it. that it must come from some invisible direction, and that I should be wanting to
There are some secret moving springs in the affections, which when they are myself if I did not go.
set a-going by some object in view, or be it some object, though not in view, yet Under the power of this impression, I hastened back to my castle, prepared
rendered present to the mind by the power of imagination, that motion carries everything for my voyage, took a quantity of bread, a great pot for fresh water, a
out the soul by its impetuosity to such violent, eager embracings of the object, compass to steer by, a bottle of rum (for I had still a great deal of that left), a
that the absence of it is insupportable. basket full of raisins. And thus loading myself with everything necessary, I went
Such were these earnest wishings, that but one man had been saved! "O that it down to my boat, got the water out of her, and got her afloat, loaded all my cargo
had been but one!’’ I believe I repeated the words, "O that it had been but one!’’ in her, and then went home again for more; my second cargo was a great bag full
a thousand times; and the desires were so moved by it that when I spoke the of rice, the umbrella to set up over my head for shade, another large pot full of
words my hands would clinch together and my fingers press the palms of my fresh water, and about two dozen of my small loaves, or barley cakes, more than
hands, that if I had had any soft thing in my hand, it would have crushed it before, with a bottle of goat’s milk, and a cheese; all which, with great labour
involuntarily; and my teeth in my head would strike together and set against one and sweat, I brought to my boat; and praying to God to direct my voyage, I put
another so strong that for some time I could not part them again. out, and rowing or paddling the canoe along the shore, I came at last to the
utmost point of the island on that side, viz., northeast. And now I was to launch
Let the naturalists explain these things, and the reason and manner of them; all
out into the ocean, and either to venture, or not to venture. I looked on the rapid
I can say to them is to describe the fact, which was even surprising to me when I
currents which ran constantly on both sides of the island, at a distance, and
found it; though I knew not from what it should proceed, it was doubtless the
which were very terrible to me, from the remembrance of the hazard I had been
effect of ardent wishes and of strong ideas formed in my mind, realizing the
in before, and my heart began to fail me; for I foresaw that if I was driven into
comfort which the conversation of one of my fellow Christians would have been
either of those currents, I should be carried a vast way out to sea, and perhaps
to me.
out of my reach or sight of the island again; and that then, as my boat was but
But it was not to be; either their fate or mine, or both, forbade it; for till the small, if any little gale or wind should rise, I should be inevitably lost.
last year of my being on this island, I never knew whether any were saved out of
These thoughts so oppressed my mind that I began to give over my enterprise,
that ship or no; and had only the affliction some days after to see the corpse of a
and having hauled my boat into a little creek on the shore, I stepped out and sat
drowned boy come on shore at the end of the island which was next the
me down upon a little rising bit of ground, very pensive and anxious, between
shipwreck. He had on no clothes but a seaman’s waistcoat, a pair of open-kneed
fear and desire about my voyage; when, as I was musing, I could perceive that
the tide was turned and the flood came on, upon which my going was for so much as if they had been under water. Besides the dog, there was nothing left in
many hours impracticable; upon this, presently it occurred to me that I should go the ship that had life, nor any goods that I could see, but what were spoiled by
up to the highest piece of ground I could find, and observe, if I could, how the the water. There were some casks of liquor, whether wine or brandy, I knew not,
sets of the tide or currents lay, when the flood came in, that I might judge which lay lower in the hold; and which, the water being ebbed out, I could see;
whether, if I was driven one way out, I might not expect to be driven another but they were too big to meddle with. I saw several chests, which I believed
way home, with the same rapidness of the currents. This thought was no sooner belonged to some of the seamen, and I got two of them into the boat, without
in my head, but I cast my eye upon a little hill, which sufficiently overlooked the examining what was in them.
sea both ways, and from whence I had a clear view of the currents, or sets of the Had the stern of the ship been fixed, and the forepart broken off, I am
tide, and which way I was to guide myself in my return; here I found, that as the persuaded I might have made a good voyage; for by what I found in these two
current of the ebb set out close by the south point of the island, so the current of chests, I had room to suppose the ship had a great deal of wealth on board; and if
the flood set in close by the shore of the north side, and that I had nothing to do I may guess by the course she steered, she must have been bound from Buenos
but to keep to the north of the island in my return, and I should do well enough. Aires, or the Rio de la Plata, in the south part of America, beyond Brazil, to
Encouraged with this observation, I resolved the next morning to set out with Havana, in the Gulf of Mexico, and so perhaps to Spain. She had, no doubt, a
the first of the tide; and reposing myself for the night in the canoe, under the great treasure in her; but of no use at that time to anybody; and what became of
great watch coat I mentioned, I launched out. I made first a little out to sea full the rest of her people, I then knew not.
north, till I began to feel the benefit of the current, which set eastward, and I found, besides these chests, a little cask full of liquor, of about twenty
which carried me at a great rate, and yet did not so hurry me as the southern side gallons, which I got into my boat with much difficulty; there were several
current had done before, and so as to take from me all government of the boat; muskets in a cabin and a great powder horn, with about four pounds of powder
but having a strong steerage with my paddle, I went at a great rate, directly for in it; as for the muskets, I had no occasion for them, so I left them, but took the
the wreck, and in less than two hours I came up to it. powder horn. I took a fire shovel and tongs, which I wanted extremely; as also
It was a dismal sight to look at. The ship, which by its building was Spanish, two little brass kettles, a copper pot to make chocolate, and a gridiron; and with
stuck fast, jammed in between two rocks; all the stern and quarter of her was this cargo and the dog I came away, the tide beginning to make home again; and
beaten to pieces with the sea; and as her forecastle, which stuck in the rocks, had the same evening, about an hour within night, I reached the island again, weary
run on with great violence, her mainmast and foremast were brought by the and fatigued to the last degree.
board; that is to say, broken short off; but her bowsprit was sound, and the head I reposed that night in the boat, and in the morning I resolved to harbour what
and bow appeared firm. When I came close to her, a dog appeared upon her, I had gotten in my new cave, not to carry it home to my castle. After refreshing
who, seeing me coming, yelped and cried; and as soon as I called him, jumped myself, I got all my cargo on shore, and began to examine the particulars. The
into the sea to come to me, and I took him into the boat; but found him almost cask of liquor I found to be a kind of rum, but not such as we had at Brazil; and
dead for hunger and thirst. I gave him a cake of my bread, and he ate it like a in a word, not at all good; but when I came to open the chests, I found several
ravenous wolf that had been starving a fortnight in the snow. I then gave the poor things of great use to me. For example, I found in one a fine case of bottles, of
creature some fresh water, with which, if I would have let him, he would have an extraordinary kind, and filled with cordial waters, fine and very good; the
burst himself. bottles held about three pints each, and were tipped with silver. I found two pots
After this I went on board; but the first sight I met with was two men drowned of very good succades, or sweetmeats, so fastened also on top that the salt water
in the cook-room, or forecastle of the ship, with their arms fast about one had not hurt them; and two more of the same, which the water had spoiled. I
another. I concluded, as is indeed probable, that when the ship struck, it being in found some very good shirts, which were very welcome to me, and about a
a storm, the sea broke so high and so continually over her that the men were not dozen and a half of linen white handkerchiefs and coloured neckcloths; the
able to bear it and were strangled with the constant rushing in of the water, as former were also very welcome, being exceeding refreshing to wipe my face in a
hot day; besides this, when I came to the till in the chests, I found there were
three great bags of pieces of eight, which held about eleven hundred pieces in I Hear the First Sound of a Man’s Voice
all; and in one of them, wrapped up in a paper, six doubloons of gold and some
I LIVED in this condition near two years more; but my unlucky head, that was
small bars or wedges of gold; I suppose they might all weigh near a pound. always to let me know it was born to make my body miserable, was all this two
The other chest I found had some clothes in it, but of little value; but by the years filled with projects and designs how, if it were possible, I might get away
circumstances it must have belonged to the gunner’s mate, though there was no from this island; for sometimes I was for making another voyage to the wreck,
powder in it, but about two pound of fine glazed powder, in three small flasks, though my reason told me that there was nothing left there worth the hazard of
kept, I suppose, for charging their fowling pieces on occasion. Upon the whole, I my voyage, sometimes for a ramble one way, sometimes another; and I believe
got very little by this voyage that was of any use to me; for as to the money, I verily, if I had had the boat that I went from Sallee in, I should have ventured to
had no manner of occasion for it. ’Twas to me as the dirt under my feet; and I sea, bound anywhere, I knew not whither.
would have given it all for three or four pair of English shoes and stockings, I had been in all my circumstances a memento to those who are touched with
which were things I greatly wanted but had not had on my feet now for many the general plague of mankind, whence, for aught I know, one half of their
years. I had, indeed, gotten two pair of shoes now, which I took off of the feet of miseries flow; I mean, that of not being satisfied with the station wherein God
the two drowned men whom I saw in the wreck; and I found two pair more in and Nature hath placed them; for not to look back upon my primitive condition,
one of the chests, which were very welcome to me; but they were not like our and the excellent advice of my father, the opposition to which was, as I may call
English shoes, either for ease or service, being rather what we call pumps than it, my original sin, my subsequent mistakes of the same kind had been the means
shoes. I found in this seaman’s chest about fifty pieces of eight in royals but no of my coming into this miserable condition; for had that Providence, which so
gold; I suppose this belonged to a poorer man than the other, which seemed to happily had seated me at Brazil as a planter, blessed me with confined desires,
belong to some officer. and I could have been contented to have gone on gradually, I might have been by
Well, however, I lugged this money home to my cave and laid it up, as I had this time, I mean in the time of my being in this island, one of the most
done that before which I brought from our own ship; but it was great pity, as I considerable planters in Brazil; nay, I am persuaded, that by the improvements I
said, that the other part of this ship had not come to my share, for I am satisfied I had made in that little time I lived there and the increase I should probably have
might have loaded my canoe several times over with money, which, if I had ever made if I had stayed, I might have been worth a hundred thousand moidores; and
escaped to England, would have lain here safe enough till I might have come what business had I to leave a settled fortune, a well-stocked plantation,
again and fetched it. improving and increasing, to turn supercargo to Guinea, to fetch Negroes, when
Having now brought all my things on shore and secured them, I went back to patience and time would have so increased our stock at home that we could have
my boat and rowed or paddled her along the shore to her old harbour, where I bought them at our own door from those whose business it was to fetch them?
laid her up, and made the best of my way to my old habitation, where I found And though it had cost us something more, yet the difference of that price was
everything safe and quiet; so I began to repose myself, live after my old fashion, by no means worth saving at so great a hazard.
and take care of my family affairs; and, for a while, I lived easy enough; only But as this is ordinarily the fate of young heads, so reflection upon the folly of
that I was more vigilant than I used to be, looked out oftener, and did not go it is as ordinarily the exercise of more years, or of the dear-bought experience of
abroad so much; and if at any time I did stir with any freedom, it was always to time; and so it was with me now; and yet so deep had the mistake taken root in
the east part of the island, where I was pretty well satisfied the savages never my temper that I could not satisfy myself in my station, but was continually
came, and where I could go without so many precautions and such a load of poring upon the means and possibility of my escape from this place; and that I
arms and ammunition as I always carried with me if I went the other way. may with the greater pleasure to the reader bring on the remaining part of my
story, it may not be improper to give some account of my first conceptions on
the subject of this foolish scheme for my escape; and how, and upon what tranquillity, even when perhaps nothing but a brow of a hill, a great tree, or the
foundation, I acted. casual approach of night, had been between me and the worst kind of
I am now to be supposed retired into my castle, after my late voyage to the destruction, viz., that of falling into the hands of cannibals and savages, who
wreck, my frigate laid up and secured under water as usual, and my condition would have seized on me with the same view as I did of a goat or a turtle; and
restored to what it was before. I had more wealth, indeed, than I had before, but have thought it no more a crime to kill and devour me than I did of a pigeon or a
was not at all the richer; for I had no more use for it than the Indians of Peru had curlew. I should injustly slander myself if I should say I was not sincerely
before the Spaniards came there. thankful to my great Preserver, to whose singular protection I acknowledged,
It was one of the nights in the rainy season in March, the four and twentieth with great humility, that all these unknown deliverances were due; and without
year of my first setting foot in this island of solitariness. I was lying in my bed, which I must inevitably have fallen into their merciless hands.
or hammock, awake, very well in health, had no pain, no distemper, no When these thoughts were over, my head was for some time taken up in
uneasiness of body, no, nor any uneasiness of mind, more than ordinary; but considering the nature of these wretched creatures, I mean the savages; and how
could by no means close my eyes; that is, so as to sleep; no, not a wink all night it came to pass in the world that the wise Governor of all things should give up
long, otherwise than as follows: any of His creatures to such inhumanity; nay, to something so much below even
It is as impossible as needless to set down the innumerable crowd of thoughts brutality itself as to devour its own kind; but as this ended in some (at that time
that whirled through that great thoroughfare of the brain, the memory, in this fruitless) speculations, it occurred to me to inquire what part of the world these
night’s time. I ran over the whole history of my life in miniature, or by wretches lived in; how far off the coast was from whence they came; what they
abridgment, as I may call it, to my coming to this island; and also of the part of ventured over so far from home for; what kind of boats they had; and why I
my life since I came to this island. In my reflections upon the state of my case might not order myself and my business so that I might be as able to go over
since I came on shore on this island, I was comparing the happy posture of my thither as they were to come to me.
affairs in the first years of my habitation here, compared to the life of anxiety, I never so much as troubled myself to consider what I should do with myself
fear, and care, which I had lived ever since I had seen the print of a foot in the when I came thither; what would become of me, if I fell into the hands of the
sand; not that I did not believe the savages had frequented the island even all the savages; or how I should escape from them, if they attempted me; no, nor so
while, and might have been several hundreds of them at times on shore there; but much as how it was possible for me to reach the coast and not be attempted by
I had never known it, and was incapable of any apprehensions about it; my some or other of them, without any possibility of delivering myself; and if I
satisfaction was perfect, though my danger was the same; and I was as happy in should not fall into their hands, what I should do for provision, or whither I
not knowing my danger as if I had never really been exposed to it. This should bend my course; none of these thoughts, I say, so much as came in my
furnished my thoughts with many very profitable reflections, and particularly way; but my mind was wholly bent upon the notion of my passing over in my
this one, how infinitely good that Providence is which has provided in its boat to the mainland. I looked back upon my present condition as the most
government of mankind such narrow bounds to his sight and knowledge of miserable that could possibly be; that I was not able to throw myself into
things; and though he walks in the midst of so many thousand dangers, the sight anything but death that could be called worse; that if I reached the shore of the
of which, if discovered to him, would distract his mind and sink his spirits, he is main, I might perhaps meet with relief, or I might coast along, as I did on the
kept serene and calm by having the events of things hid from his eyes, and shore of Africa, till I came to some inhabited country, and where I might find
knowing nothing of the dangers which surround him. some relief; and after all, perhaps I might fall in with some Christian ship that
After these thoughts had for some time entertained me, I came to reflect might take me in; and if the worse came to the worst, I could but die, which
seriously upon the real danger I had been in for so many years in this very would put an end to all these miseries at once. Pray note, all this was the fruit of
island; and how I had walked about in the greatest security and with all possible a disturbed mind, an impatient temper, made, as it were, desperate by the long
continuance of my troubles and the disappointments I had met in the wreck I had
been on board of, and where I had been so near the obtaining what I so earnestly caravan of them and killing them all; and this was not only a very desperate
longed for, viz., somebody to speak to and to learn some knowledge from of the attempt, and might miscarry, but on the other hand, I had greatly scrupled the
place where I was and of the probable means of my deliverance; I say, I was law-fulness of it to me, and my heart trembled at the thoughts of shedding so
agitated wholly by these thoughts. All my calm of mind in my resignation to much blood, though it was for my deliverance. I need not repeat the arguments
Providence, and waiting the issue of the dispositions of Heaven, seemed to be which occurred to me against this, they being the same mentioned before. But
suspended; and I had, as it were, no power to turn my thoughts to anything but to though I had other reasons to offer now, viz., that those men were enemies to my
the project of a voyage to the main, which came upon me with such force and life and would devour me if they could, that it was self-preservation in the
such an impetuosity of desire that it was not to be resisted. highest degree to deliver myself from this death of a life, and was acting in my
When this had agitated my thoughts for two hours or more, with such violence own defence as much as if they were actually assaulting me, and the like. I say,
that it set my very blood into a ferment, and my pulse beat as high as if I had though these things argued for it, yet the thoughts of shedding human blood for
been in a fever merely with the extraordinary fervour of my mind about it; my deliverance were very terrible to me, and such as I could by no means
nature, as if I had been fatigued and exhausted with the very thought of it, threw reconcile myself to a great while.
me into a sound sleep. One would have thought I should have dreamed of it; but However, at last, after many secret disputes with myself and after great
I did not, nor of anything relating to it; but I dreamed that as I was going out in perplexities about it (for all these arguments, one way and another, struggled in
the morning as usual from my castle, I saw upon the shore two canoes and my head a long time), the eager prevailing desire of deliverance at length
eleven savages coming to land, and that they brought with them another savage, mastered all the rest, and I resolved, if possible, to get one of those savages into
whom they were going to kill, in order to eat him; when on a sudden, the savage my hands, cost what it would. My next thing then was to contrive how to do it;
that they were going to kill jumped away, and ran for his life; and I thought in and this indeed was very difficult to resolve on. But as I could pitch upon no
my sleep that he came running into my little thick grove, before my fortification, probable means for it, so I resolved to put myself upon the watch, to see them
to hide himself; and that I, seeing him alone and not perceiving that the other when they came on shore, and leave the rest to the event, taking such measures
sought him that way, showed myself to him, and smiling upon him, encouraged as the opportunity should present, let be what would be.
him; that he kneeled down to me, seeming to pray me to assist him; upon which With these resolutions in my thoughts, I set myself upon the scout, as often as
I showed my ladder, made him go up, and carried him into my cave, and he possible, and indeed so often till I was heartily tired of it; for it was above a year
became my servant; and that as soon as I had gotten this man, I said to myself, and half that I waited, and for great part of that time went out to the west end and
‘‘Now I may certainly venture to the mainland; for this fellow will serve me as a to the southwest corner of the island almost every day, to see for canoes, but
pilot, and will tell me what to do, and whither to go for provisions; and whither none appeared. This was very discouraging, and began to trouble me much;
not to go for fear of being devoured; what places to venture into, and what to though I cannot say that it did in this case as it had done some time before that,
escape.’’ I waked with this thought, and was under such inexpressible viz., wear off the edge of my desire to the thing; but the longer it seemed to be
impressions of joy at the prospect of my escape in my dream that the delayed, the more eager I was for it; in a word, I was not at first so careful to
disappointments which I felt upon coming to myself and finding it was no more shun the sight of these savages and avoid being seen by them as I was now eager
than a dream were equally extravagant the other way, and threw me into a very to be upon them.
great dejection of spirit. Besides, I fancied myself able to manage one, nay, two or three savages, if I
Upon this, however, I made this conclusion, that my only way to go about an had them, so as to make them entirely slaves to me, to do whatever I should
attempt for an escape was, if possible, to get a savage into my possession; and, if direct them, and to prevent their being able at any time to do me any hurt. It was
possible, it should be one of their prisoners, whom they had condemned to be a great while that I pleased myself with this affair, but nothing still presented; all
eaten and should bring hither to kill; but these thoughts still were attended with my fancies and schemes came to nothing, for no savages came near me for a
this difficulty, that it was impossible to effect this without attacking a whole great while.
About a year and a half after I had entertained these notions and, by long exceedingly in running and gained ground of them; so that if he could but hold it
musing, had as it were resolved them all into nothing, for want of an occasion to for half an hour, I saw easily he would fairly get away from them all.
put them in execution, I was surprised one morning early with seeing no less There was between them and my castle the creek which I mentioned often at
than five canoes all on shore together on my side of the island; and the people the first part of my story, when I landed my cargoes out of the ship; and this I
who belonged to them all landed, and out of my sight. The number of them saw plainly he must necessarily swim over, or the poor wretch would be taken
broke all my measures; for seeing so many and knowing that they always came there. But when the savage escaping came thither, he made nothing of it, though
four, or six, or sometimes more, in a boat, I could not tell what to think of it, or the tide was then up; but plunging in, swam through in about thirty strokes or
how to take my measures, to attack twenty or thirty men singlehanded; so I lay thereabouts, landed, and ran on with exceeding strength and swiftness; when the
still in my castle, perplexed and discomforted. However, I put myself into all the three persons came to the creek, I found that two of them could swim, but the
same postures for an attack that I had formerly provided, and was just ready for third could not, and that standing on the other side, he looked at the other, but
action if anything had presented; having waited a good while, listening to hear if went no farther; and soon after went softly back again, which, as it happened,
they made any noise, at length being very impatient, I set my guns at the foot of was very well for him in the main.
my ladder and clambered up to the top of the hill by my two stages as usual, I observed that the two who swam were yet more than twice as long
standing so, however, that my head did not appear above the hill, so that they swimming over the creek as the fellow was that fled from them. It came now
could not perceive me by any means; here I observed, by the help of my very warmly upon my thoughts, and indeed irresistibly, that now was my time to
perspective-glass, that they were no less than thirty in number, that they had a get me a servant, and perhaps a companion, or assistant; and that I was called
fire kindled, that they had had meat dressed. How they had cooked it, that I knew plainly by Providence to save this poor creature’s life; I immediately ran down
not, or what it was; but they were all dancing in I know not how many barbarous the ladders with all possible expedition, fetched my two guns, for they were both
gestures and figures, their own way, round the fire. but at the foot of the ladders, as I observed above; and getting up again, with the
While I was thus looking on them, I perceived by my perspective two same haste, to the top of the hill, I crossed towards the sea; and having a very
miserable wretches dragged from the boats, where, it seems, they were laid by, short cut, and all down hill, clapped myself in the way between the pursuers and
and were now brought out for the slaughter. I perceived one of them immediately the pursued, holloing aloud to him that fled, who, looking back, was at first
fell, being knocked down, I suppose, with a club or wooden sword, for that was perhaps as much frighted at me as at them; but I beckoned with my hand to him
their way, and two or three others were at work immediately, cutting him open to come back, and in the meantime I slowly advanced towards the two that
for their cookery, while the other victim was left standing by himself, till they followed; then rushing at once upon the foremost, I knocked him down with the
should be ready for him. In that very moment, this poor wretch seeing himself a stock of my piece; I was loath to fire, because I would not have the rest hear;
little at liberty, Nature inspired him with hopes of life, and he started away from though at that distance, it would not have been easily heard; and being out of
them, and ran with incredible swiftness along the sands directly towards me, I sight of the smoke too, they would not have easily known what to make of it.
mean towards that part of the coast where my habitation was. Having knocked this fellow down, the other who pursued him stopped, as if he
I was dreadfully frighted (that I must acknowledge) when I perceived him to had been frighted; and I advanced apace towards him; but as I came nearer, I
run my way; and especially, when, as I thought, I saw him pursued by the whole perceived presently he had a bow and arrow, and was fitting it to shoot at me; so
body; and now I expected that part of my dream was coming to pass, and that he I was then necessitated to shoot at him first; which I did, and killed him at the
would certainly take shelter in my grove; but I could not depend by any means first shoot. The poor savage who fled, but had stopped, though he saw both his
upon my dream for the rest of it, viz., that the other savages would not pursue enemies fallen and killed, as he thought, yet was so frighted with the fire and
him thither, and find him there. However, I kept my station, and my spirits began noise of my piece, that he stood stock still and neither came forward or went
to recover when I found that there was not above three men that followed him; backward, though he seemed rather inclined to fly still than to come on; I
and still more was I encouraged when I found that he outstripped them holloed again to him, and made signs to come forward, which he easily
understood, and came a little way, then stopped again, and then a little farther, inwardly, for he was quite dead. He took up his bow and arrows, and came back;
and stopped again; and I could then perceive that he stood trembling, as if he had so I turned to go away and beckoned to him to follow me, making signs to him
been taken prisoner, and had just been to be killed, as his two enemies were; I that more might come after them.
beckoned him again to come to me, and gave him all the signs of encouragement Upon this he signed to me that he should bury them with sand, that they might
that I could think of; and he came nearer and nearer, kneeling down every ten or not be seen by the rest if they followed; and so I made signs again to him to do
twelve steps in token of acknowledgement for my saving his life; I smiled at him so; he fell to work, and in an instant he had scraped a hole in the sand with his
and looked pleasantly and beckoned to him to come still nearer; at length he hands big enough to bury the first in, and then dragged him into it and covered
came close to me, and then he kneeled down again, kissed the ground, and laid him and did so also by the other; I believe he had buried them both in a quarter
his head upon the ground, and taking me by the foot, set my foot upon his head: of an hour; then calling him away, I carried him, not to my castle, but quite away
this, it seems, was in token of swearing to be my slave forever. I took him up, to my cave, on the farther part of the island; so I did not let my dream come to
and made much of him, and encouraged him all I could. But there was more pass in that part, viz., that he came into my grove for shelter.
work to do yet, for I perceived the savage whom I knocked down was not killed, Here I gave him bread and a bunch of raisins to eat, and a draught of water,
but stunned with the blow, and began to come to himself; so I pointed to him, which I found he was indeed in great distress for, by his running; and having
and showing him the savage, that he was not dead; upon this he spoke some refreshed him, I made signs for him to go lie down and sleep, pointing to a place
words to me, and though I could not understand them, yet I thought they were where I had laid a great parcel of rice straw, and a blanket upon it, which I used
pleasant to hear, for they were the first sound of a man’s voice that I had heard, to sleep upon myself sometimes; so the poor creature lay down and went to
my own excepted, for above twenty-five years. But there was no time for such sleep.
reflections now; the savage who was knocked down recovered himself so far as
to sit up upon the ground, and I perceived that my savage began to be afraid; but
when I saw that, I presented my other piece at the man as if I would shoot him;
upon this my savage, for so I call him now, made a motion to me to lend him my
sword, which hung naked in a belt by my side; so I did. He no sooner had it, but
he runs to his enemy, and at one blow cut off his head as cleverly, no executioner
in Germany could have done it sooner or better; which I thought very strange for
one who I had reason to believe never saw a sword in his life before, except their
own wooden swords; however, it seems, as I learned afterwards, they make their
wooden swords so sharp, so heavy, and the wood is so hard, that they will cut off
heads even with them, ay, and arms, and that at one blow too. When he had done
this, he comes laughing to me in sign of triumph and brought me the sword
again, and with abundance of gestures which I did not understand, laid it down,
with the head of the savage that he had killed, just before me.
But that which astonished him most was to know how I had killed the other
Indian so far off; so pointing to him, he made signs to me to let him go to him;
so I bade him go, as well as I could; when he came to him, he stood like one
amazed, looking at him, turned him first on one side, then on t’ other, looked at
the wound the bullet had made, which, it seems, was just in his breast, where it
had made a hole, and no great quantity of blood had followed, but he had bled
marks that he had made to find them again, making signs to me that we should
I Call Him Friday dig them up again and eat them; at this I appeared very angry, expressed my
abhorrence of it, made as if I would vomit at the thoughts of it, and beckoned
HE WAS a comely, handsome fellow, perfectly well made, with straight strong
with my hand to him to come away, which he did immediately, with great
limbs, not too large, tall and well-shaped, and, as I reckon, about twenty-six
submission. I then led him up to the top of the hill, to see if his enemies were
years of age. He had a very good countenance, not a fierce and surly aspect, but
gone; and pulling out my glass, I looked, and saw plainly the place where they
seemed to have something very manly in his face, and yet he had all the
had been, but no appearance of them or of their canoes; so that it was plain they
sweetness and softness of an European in his countenance too, especially when
were gone, and had left their two comrades behind them, without any search
he smiled. His hair was long and black, not curled like wool; his forehead very
after them.
high and large; and a great vivacity and sparkling sharpness in his eyes. The
colour of his skin was not quite black, but very tawny; and yet not of an ugly But I was not content with this discovery, but having now more courage, and
yellow, nauseous tawny, as the Brazilians and Virginians, and other natives of consequently more curiosity, I took my man Friday with me, giving him the
America are; but of a bright kind of a dun olive colour that had in it something sword in his hand, with the bow and arrows at his back, which I found he could
very agreeable, though not very easy to describe. His face was round and plump; use very dexterously, making him carry one gun for me, and I two for myself,
his nose small, not flat like the Negroes’, a very good mouth, thin lips, and his and away we marched to the place where these creatures had been; for I had a
fine teeth well set, and white as ivory. After he had slumbered, rather than slept, mind now to get some fuller intelligence of them. When I came to the place, my
about half an hour, he waked again, and comes out of the cave to me, for I had very blood ran chill in my veins, and my heart sunk within me at the horror of
been milking my goats, which I had in the enclosure just by. When he espied me, the spectacle. Indeed, it was a dreadful sight, at least it was so to me, though
he came running to me, laying himself down again upon the ground, with all the Friday made nothing of it. The place was covered with human bones, the ground
possible signs of an humble, thankful disposition, making a many antic gestures dyed with their blood, great pieces of flesh left here and there, half eaten,
to show it. At last he lays his head flat upon the ground, close to my foot, and mangled and scorched; and in short, all the tokens of the triumphant feast they
sets my other foot upon his head, as he had done before; and after this, made all had been making there, after a victory over their enemies. I saw three skulls, five
the signs to me of subjection, servitude, and submission imaginable, to let me hands, and the bones of three or four legs and feet, and abundance of other parts
know how he would serve me as long as he lived; I understood him in many of the bodies; and Friday, by his signs, made me understand that they brought
things and let him know I was very well pleased with him; in a little time I began over four prisoners to feast upon; that three of them were eaten up, and that he,
to speak to him and teach him to speak to me; and first, I made him know his pointing to himself, was the fourth; that there had been a great battle between
name should be Friday, which was the day I saved his life; I called him so for the them and their next king, whose subjects it seems he had been one of; and that
memory of the time; I likewise taught him to say ‘‘Master,’’ and then let him they had taken a great number of prisoners, all which were carried to several
know that was to be my name; I likewise taught him to say ‘‘yes’’ and ‘‘no’’ and places by those that had taken them in the fight, in order to feast upon them, as
to know the meaning of them; I gave him some milk in an earthen pot and let was done here by these wretches upon those they brought hither.
him see me drink it before him and sop my bread in it; and I gave him a cake of I caused Friday to gather all the skulls, bones, flesh, and whatever remained,
bread to do the like, which he quickly complied with, and made signs that it was and lay them together on a heap, and make a great fire upon it and burn them all
very good for him. to ashes. I found Friday had still a hankering stomach after some of the flesh,
I kept there with him all that night, but as soon as it was day, I beckoned to and was still a cannibal in his nature; but I discovered7 so much abhorrence at
him to come with me, and let him know I would give him some clothes, at which the very thoughts of it, and at the least appearance of it, that he durst not
he seemed very glad, for he was stark naked. As we went by the place where he discover it; for I had, by some means, let him know that I would kill him if he
had buried the two men, he pointed exactly to the place, and showed me the offered it.
When we had done this, we came back to our castle, and there I fell to work This frequently gave me occasion to observe, and that with wonder, that
for my man Friday; and first of all I gave him a pair of linen drawers, which I however it had pleased God, in His providence, and in the government of the
had out of the poor gunner’s chest I mentioned, and which I found in the wreck; works of His hands, to take from so great a part of the world of His creatures the
and which, with a little alteration, fitted him very well; then I made him a jerkin best uses to which their faculties and the powers of their souls are adapted; yet
of goat’s skin, as well as my skill would allow; and I was now grown a tolerable that He has bestowed upon them the same powers, the same reason, the same
good tailor; and I gave him a cap, which I had made of a hare-skin, very affections, the same sentiments of kindness and obligation, the same passions
convenient and fashionable enough; and thus he was clothed, for the present, and resentments of wrongs, the same sense of gratitude, sincerity, fidelity, and all
tolerably well, and was mighty well pleased to see himself almost as well the capacities of doing good and receiving good that He has given to us; and that
clothed as his master. It istrue, he went awkwardly in these things at first; when He pleases to offer to them occasions of exerting these, they are as ready,
wearing the drawers was very awkward to him, and the sleeves of the waistcoat nay, more ready to apply them to the right uses for which they were bestowed
galled his shoulders and the inside of his arms; but a little easing them, where he than we are. And this made me very melancholy sometimes, in reflecting, as the
complained they hurt him, and using himself to them, at length he took to them several occasions presented, how mean a use we make of all these, even though
very well. we have these powers enlightened by the great lamp of instruction, the Spirit of
The next day after I came home to my hutch with him, I began to consider God, and by the knowledge of His Word, added to our understanding; and why it
where I should lodge him; and that I might do well for him, and yet be perfectly has pleased God to hide the like saving knowledge from so many millions of
easy myself, I made a little tent for him in the vacant place between my two souls, who (if I might judge by this poor savage) would make a much better use
fortifications, in the inside of the last and in the outside of the first. And as there of it than we did.
was a door or entrance there into my cave, I made a formal framed door-case, From hence I sometimes was led too far to invade the sovereignty of
and a door to it of boards, and set it up in the passage, a little within the entrance; Providence and, as it were, arraign the justice of so arbitrary a disposition of
and causing the door to open on the inside, I barred it up in the night, taking in things that should hide that light from some and reveal it to others, and yet
my ladders too; so that Friday could no way come at me in the inside of my expect a like duty from both. But I shut it up and checked my thoughts with this
innermost wall without making so much noise in getting over that it must needs conclusion, first, that we did not know by what light and law these should be
waken me; for my first wall had now a complete roof over it of long poles, condemned; but that, as God was necessarily, and by the nature of His being,
covering all my tent and leaning up to the side of the hill, which was again laid infinitely holy and just, so it could not be but that if these creatures were all
across with smaller sticks instead of laths, and then thatched over a great sentenced to absence from Himself, it was on account of sinning against that
thickness with the rice straw, which was strong like reeds; and at the hole or light which, as the Scripture says, was a law to themselves, and by such rules as
place which was left to go in or out by the ladder I had placed a kind of trapdoor, their consciences would acknowledge to be just, though the foundation was not
which, if it had been attempted on the outside, would not have opened at all, but discovered to us. And secondly, that still, as we are all the clay in the hand of the
would have fallen down and made a great noise; and as to weapons, I took them Potter, no vessel could say to Him, ‘‘Why hast Thou formed me thus?’’
all into my side every night. But to return to my new companion: I was greatly delighted with him, and
But I needed none of all this precaution; for never man had a more faithful, made it my business to teach him everything that was proper to make him useful,
loving, sincere servant than Friday was to me; without passions, sullenness, or handy, and helpful; but especially to make him speak and understand me when I
designs, perfectly obliged and engaged; his very affections were tied to me, like spoke; and he was the aptest scholar that ever was, and particularly was so
those of a child to a father; and I dare say he would have sacrificed his life for merry, so constantly diligent, and so pleased when he could but understand me
the saving mine upon any occasion whatsoever; the many testimonies he gave or make me understand him, that it was very pleasant to me to talk to him; and
me of this put it out of doubt and soon convinced me that I needed to use no now my life began to be so easy that I began to say to myself that could I but
precautions as to my safety on his account. have been safe from more savages, I cared not if I was never to remove from the
place while I lived. Well, after his astonishment was a little over at this, I pointed to him to run
After I had been two or three days returned to my castle, I thought that, in and fetch the bird I had shot, which he did, but stayed some time; for the parrot,
order to bring Friday off from his horrid way of feeding and from the relish of a not being quite dead, was fluttered away a good way off from the place where
cannibal’s stomach, I ought to let him taste other flesh; so I took him out with she fell; however, he found her, took her up, and brought her to me; and as I had
me one morning to the woods. I went, indeed, intending to kill a kid out of my perceived his ignorance about the gun before, I took this advantage to charge the
own flock and bring it home and dress it. But as I was going, I saw a she-goat gun again, and not let him see me do it, that I might be ready for any other mark
lying down in the shade, and two young kids sitting by her; I caught hold of that might present; but nothing more offered at that time; so I brought home the
Friday. ‘‘Hold,’’ says I, ‘‘stand still’’; and made signs to him not to stir; kid, and the same evening I took the skin off and cut it out as well as I could; and
immediately I presented my piece, shot and killed one of the kids. The poor having a pot for that purpose, I boiled, or stewed, some of the flesh, and made
creature, who had at a distance, indeed, seen me kill the savage, his enemy, but some very good broth; and after I had begun to eat some, I gave some to my
did not know or could imagine how it was done, was sensibly surprised, man, who seemed very glad of it, and liked it very well; but that which was
trembled and shook, and looked so amazed that I thought he would have sunk strangest to him was to see me eat salt with it; he made a sign to me that the salt
down. He did not see the kid I had shot at, or perceive I had killed it, but ripped was not good to eat, and putting a little into his own mouth, he seemed to
up his waistcoat to feel if he was not wounded, and, as I found presently, thought nauseate it, and would spit and sputter at it, washing his mouth with fresh water
I was resolved to kill him; for he came and kneeled down to me and, embracing after it; on the other hand, I took some meat in my mouth without salt, and I
my knees, said a great many things I did not understand; but I could easily see pretended to spit and sputter for want of salt, as fast as he had done at the salt;
that the meaning was to pray me not to kill him. but it would not do, he would never care for salt with his meat, or in his broth; at
I soon found a way to convince him that I would do him no harm and, taking least, not a great while, and then but a very little.
him up by the hand, laughed at him and, pointing to the kid which I had killed, Having thus fed him with boiled meat and broth, I was resolved to feast him
beckoned to him to run and fetch it, which he did; and while he was wondering the next day with roasting a piece of the kid; this I did by hanging it before the
and looking to see how the creature was killed, I loaded my gun again, and by fire in a string, as I had seen many people do in England, setting two poles up,
and by I saw a great fowl, like a hawk, sit upon a tree within shot; so, to let one on each side the fire, and one across on the top, and tying the string to the
Friday understand a little what I would do, I called him to me again, pointing at cross stick, letting the meat turn continually. This Friday admired very much; but
the fowl, which was indeed a parrot, though I thought it had been a hawk; I say, when he came to taste the flesh, he took so many ways to tell me how well he
pointing to the parrot, and to my gun, and to the ground under the parrot, to let liked it that I could not but understand him; and at last he told me he would
him see I would make it fall, I made him understand that I would shoot and kill never eat man’s flesh any more, which I was very glad to hear.
that bird; accordingly I fired and bade him look, and immediately he saw the The next day I set him to work to beating some corn out, and sifting it in the
parrot fall; he stood like one frighted again, notwithstanding all I had said to manner I used to do, as I observed before; and he soon understood how to do it
him; and I found he was the more amazed because he did not see me put as well as I, especially after he had seen what the meaning of it was, and that it
anything into the gun; but thought that there must be some wonderful fund of was to make bread of; for after that I let him see me make my bread, and bake it
death and destruction in that thing, able to kill man, beast, bird, or anything near too, and in a little time Friday was able to do all the work for me, as well as I
or far off; and the astonishment this created in him was such as could not wear could do it myself.
off for a long time; and I believe, if I would have let him, he would have I began now to consider that, having two mouths to feed instead of one, I must
worshipped me and my gun. As for the gun itself, he would not so much as touch provide more ground for my harvest and plant a larger quantity of corn than I
it for several days after; but would speak to it, and talk to it as if it had answered used to do; so I marked out a larger piece of land, and began the fence in the
him, when he was by himself; which, as I afterwards learned of him, was to same manner as before, in which Friday not only worked very willingly and very
desire it not to kill him. hard, but did it very cheerfully; and I told him what it was for, that it was for
corn to make more bread, because he was now with me, and that I might have
enough for him and myself too. He appeared very sensible of that part, and let We Make Another Canoe
me know that he thought I had much more labour upon me on his account than I
THIS was the pleasantest year of all the life I led in this place; Friday began to
had for myself; and that he would work the harder for me, if I would tell him talk pretty well, and understand the names of almost everything I had occasion to
what to do. call for, and of every place I had to send him to, and talk a great deal to me; so
that, in short, I began now to have some use for my tongue again, which indeed I
had very little occasion for before; that is to say, about speech. Besides the
pleasure of talking to him, I had a singular satisfaction in the fellow himself; his
simple, unfeigned honesty appeared to me more and more every day, and I began
really to love the creature; and on his side, I believe he loved me more than it
was possible for him ever to love anything before.
I had a mind once to try if he had any hankering inclination to his own country
again, and having learned him English so well that he could answer me almost
any questions, I asked him whether the nation that he belonged to never
conquered in battle. At which he smiled, and said, ‘‘Yes, yes, we always fight the
better’’; that is, he meant, always get the better in fight; and so we began the
following discourse: ‘‘You always fight the better,’’ said I; ‘‘how came you to be
taken prisoner then, Friday?’’
FRIDAY: My nation beat much, for all that.
MASTER: How beat? If your nation beat them, how came you to be taken?
FRIDAY: They more many than my nation in the place where me was; they
take one, two, three, and me; my nation overbeat them in the yonder place,
where me no was; there my nation take one, two, great thousand.
MASTER: But why did not your side recover you from the hands of your
enemies then?
FRIDAY: They run one, two, three, and me, and make go in the canoe; my
nation have no canoe that time.
MASTER: Well, Friday, and what does your nation do with the men they
take? Do they carry them away, and eat them, as these did?
FRIDAY: Yes, my nation eat mans too, eat all up.
MASTER: Where do they carry them?
FRIDAY: Go to other place, where they think.
MASTER: Do they come hither?
FRIDAY: Yes, yes, they come hither; come other else place.
MASTER: Have you been here with them? could not understand what he meant, or make him describe to me what he meant
FRIDAY: Yes, I been here. [Points to the northwest side of the island, which, by ‘‘two canoe,’’ till at last, with great difficulty, I found he meant it must be in a
it seems, was their side.] large great boat, as big as two canoes.
By this I understood that my man Friday had formerly been among the This part of Friday’s discourse began to relish with me very well; and from
savages who used to come on shore on the farther part of the island, on the said this time I entertained some hopes that one time or other I might find an
man-eating occasions that he was now brought for; and some time after, when I opportunity to make my escape from this place and that this poor savage might
took the courage to carry him to that side, being the same I formerly mentioned, be a means to help me to do it.
he presently knew the place and told me he was there once when they ate up During the long time that Friday had now been with me, and that he began to
twenty men, two women, and one child; he could not tell twenty in English, but speak to me and understand me, I was not wanting8 to lay a foundation of
he numbered them by laying so many stones in a row and pointing to me to tell religious knowledge in his mind; particularly, I asked him one time, who made
them over. him. The poor creature did not understand me at all, but thought I had asked who
I have told this passage because it introduces what follows; that after I had had was his father; but I took it by another handle, and asked him who made the sea,
this discourse with him, I asked him how far it was from our island to the shore, the ground we walked on, and thehills and woods; he told me it was one old
and whether the canoes were not often lost; he told me there was no danger, no Benamuckee, that lived beyond all. He could describe nothing of this great
canoes ever lost; but that after a little way out to the sea, there was a current, and person but that he was very old; much older, he said, than the sea or the land,
a wind, always one way in the morning, the other in the afternoon. than the moon or the stars. I asked him then, if this old person had made all
This I understood to be no more than the sets of the tide, as going out or things, why did not all things worship him? He looked very grave, and with a
coming in; but I afterwards understood it was occasioned by the great draft and perfect look of innocence, said All things said O! to him. I asked him if the
reflux of the mighty river Orinoco, in the mouth, or the gulf, of which river, as I people who die in his country went away anywhere; he said yes, they all went to
found afterwards, our island lay; and this land which I perceived to the west and Benamuckee; then I asked him whether these they eat up went thither too. He
northwest was the great island Trinidad, on the north point of the mouth of the said yes.
river. I asked Friday a thousand questions about the country, the inhabitants, the From these things I began to instruct him in the knowledge of the true God. I
sea, the coast, and what nations were near; he told me all he knew, with the told him that the great Maker of all things lived up there, pointing up towards
greatest openness imaginable; I asked him the names of the several nations of his Heaven. That He governs the world by the same Power and Providence by which
sort of people, but could get no other name than Caribs; from whence I easily He made it. That He was omnipotent, could do everything for us, give
understood that these were the Caribbees, which our maps place on the part of everything to us, take everything from us; and thus by degrees I opened his eyes.
America which reaches from the mouth of the river Orinoco to Guiana, and He listened with great attention, and received with pleasure the notion of Jesus
onwards to Santa Marta. He told me that up a great way beyond the moon, that Christ being sent to redeem us, and of the manner of making our prayers to God,
was, beyond the setting of the moon, which must be west from their country, and His being able to hear us, even into Heaven; he told me one day that if our
there dwelt white bearded men, like me, and pointed to my great whiskers, God could hear us up beyond the sun, He must needs be a greater God than their
which I mentioned before; and they had killed ‘‘much mans,’’ that was his word; Benamuckee, who lived but a little way off, and yet could not hear till they went
by all which I understood he meant the Spaniards, whose cruelties in America up to the great mountains where he dwelt, to speak to him; I asked him if he ever
had been spread over the whole countries and were remembered by all the went thither to speak to him; he said no; they never went that were young men;
nations from father to son. none went thither but the old men, whom he called their Oowokakee, that is, as I
I inquired if he could tell me how I might come from this island and get made him explain it to me, their religious, or clergy, and that they went to say O
among those white men; he told me, ‘‘Yes, yes, I might go in two canoe’’; I (so he called saying prayers) , and then came back and told them what
Benamuckee said. By this I observed that there is priestcraft even amongst the why God no kill the Devil, so make him no more do wicked?’’
most blinded, ignorant pagans in the world, and the policy of making a secret I was strangely surprised at his question, and after all, though I was now an
religion, in order to preserve the veneration of the people to the clergy, is not old man, yet I was but a young doctor, and ill enough qualified for a casuist, or a
only to be found in the Roman, but perhaps among all religions in the world, solver of difficulties. And at first I could not tell what to say; so I pretended not
even among the most brutish and barbarous savages. to hear him, and asked him what he said. But he was too earnest for an answer to
I endeavoured to clear up this fraud to my man Friday, and told him that the forget his question; so that he repeated it in the very same broken words as
pretence of their old men going up the mountains to say O to their god above. By this time I had recovered myself a little, and I said, ‘‘God will at last
Benamuckee was a cheat, and their bringing word from thence what he said was punish him severely, he is reserved for the judgment, and is to be cast into the
much more so; that if they met with any answer, or spoke with anyone there, it bottomless pit, to dwell with everlasting fire.’’ This did not satisfy Friday, but he
must be with an evil spirit. And then I entered into a long discourse with him returns upon me, repeating my words, ‘‘ ‘Reserve at last,’ me no understand; but
about the Devil, the original of him, his rebellion against God, his enmity to why not kill the Devil now, not kill great ago?’’ ‘‘You may as well ask me,’’ said
man, the reason of it, his setting himself up in the dark parts of the world to be I, ‘‘why God does not kill you and I, when we do wicked things here that offend
worshipped instead of God, and as God; and the many stratagems he made use Him. We are preserved to repent and be pardoned.’’ He muses awhile at this.
of to delude mankind to their ruin; how he had a secret access to our passions ‘‘Well, well,’’ says he, mighty affectionately, ‘‘that well; so you, I, Devil, all
and to our affections, to adapt his snares so to our inclinations as to cause us wicked, all preserve, repent, God pardon all.’’ Here I was run down again by him
even to be our own tempters and to run upon our destruction by our own choice. to the last degree, and it was a testimony to me how the mere notions of nature,
I found it was not easy to imprint right notions in his mind about the Devil, as though they will guide reasonable creatures to the knowledge of a God, and of a
it was about the being of a God. Nature assisted all my arguments to evidence to worship or homage due to the supreme being of God, as the consequence of our
him even the necessity of a great First Cause and overruling, governing Power, a nature; yet nothing but Divine revelation can form the knowledge of Jesus
secret directing Providence, and of the equity and justice of paying homage to Christ, and of a redemption purchased for us, of a Mediator of the new covenant,
Him that made us, and the like. But there appeared nothing of all this in the and of an Intercessor at the footstool of God’s throne; I say, nothing but a
notion of an evil spirit, of his original, his being, his nature, and above all, of his revelation from Heaven can form these in the soul; and that therefore the Gospel
inclination to do evil, and to draw us in to do so too; and the poor creature of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, I mean, the Word of God and the Spirit of
puzzled me once in such a manner, by a question merely natural and innocent, God, promised for the guide and sanctifier of His people, are the absolutely
that I scarce knew what to say to him. I had been talking a great deal to him of necessary instructors of the souls of men, in the saving knowledge of God, and
the power of God, His omnipotence, His dreadful aversion to sin, His being a the means of salvation.
consuming fire to the workers of iniquity; how, as He had made us all, He could I therefore diverted the present discourse between me and my man, rising up
destroy us and all the world in a moment; and he listened with great seriousness hastily, as upon some sudden occasion of going out; then sending him for
to me all the while. something a good way off, I seriously prayed to God that He would enable me to
After this, I had been telling him how the Devil was God’s enemy in the hearts instruct savingly this poor savage, assisting by His Spirit the heart of the poor
of men, and used all his malice and skill to defeat the good designs of ignorant creature to receive the light of the knowledge of God in Christ,
Providence, and to ruin the kingdom of Christ in the world, and the like. ‘‘Well,’’ reconciling him to Himself, and would guide me to speak so to him from the
says Friday, ‘‘but you say God is so strong, so great; is He not much strong, Word of God as his conscience might be convinced, his eyes opened, and his
much might as the Devil?’’ ‘‘Yes, yes,’’ says I, ‘‘Friday, God is stronger than the soul saved. When he came again to me, I entered into a long discourse with him
Devil, God is above the Devil, and therefore we pray to God to tread him down upon the subject of the redemption of man by the Saviour of the world, and of
under our feet, and enable us to resist his temptations and quench his fiery the doctrine of the Gospel preached from Heaven, viz., of repentance towards
darts.’’ ‘‘But,’’ says he again, ‘‘if God much strong, much might as the Devil, God, and faith in our blessed Lord Jesus. I then explained to him, as well as I
could, why our blessed Redeemer took not on Him the nature of angels but the knowledge of God and of the doctrine of salvation by Christ Jesus is so plainly
seed of Abraham, and how for that reason the fallen angels had no share in the laid down in the Word of God, so easy to be received and understood, that as the
redemption; that He came only to the lost sheep of the House of Israel, and the bare reading the Scripture made me capable of understanding enough of my duty
like. to carry me directly on to the great work of sincere repentance for my sins, and
I had, God knows, more sincerity than knowledge in all the methods I took for laying hold of a Saviour for life and salvation, to a stated reformation in practice,
this poor creature’s instruction, and must acknowledge what I believe all that act and obedience to all God’s commands, and this without any teacher or instructor
upon the same principle will find, that in laying things open to him, I really (I mean, human), so the same plain instruction sufficiently served to the
informed and instructed myself in many things that either I did not know or had enlightening this savage creature and bringing him to be such a Christian as I
not fully considered before, but which occurred naturally to my mind upon my have known few equal to him in my life.
searching into them for the information of this poor savage; and I had more As to all the disputes, wranglings, strife, and contention which has happened
affection in my inquiry after things upon this occasion than ever I felt before; so in the world about religion, whether niceties in doctrines, or schemes of church
that whether this poor wild wretch was the better for me or no, I had great reason government, they were all perfectly useless to us; as, for aught I can yet see, they
to be thankful that ever he came to me. My grief sat lighter upon me, my have been to all the rest in the world. We had the sure guide to Heaven, viz., the
habitation grew comfortable to me beyond measure; and when I reflected that in Word of God; and we had, blessed be God, comfortable views of the Spirit of
this solitary life which I had been confined to, I had not only been moved myself God, teaching and instructing us by His Word, leading us into all truth, and
to look up to Heaven and to seek to the Hand that had brought me there, but was making us both willing and obedient to the instruction of His Word; and I cannot
now to be made an instrument under Providence to save the life and, for aught I see the least use that the greatest knowledge of the disputed points in religion,
knew, the soul of a poor savage, and bring him to the true knowledge of religion, which have made such confusions in the world, would have been to us, if we
and of the Christian doctrine, that he might know Christ Jesus, to know whom is could have obtained it; but I must go on with the historical part of things, and
life eternal; I say, when I reflected upon all these things, a secret joy ran through take every part in its order.
every part of my soul, and I frequently rejoiced that ever I was brought to this After Friday and I became more intimately acquainted, and that he could
place, which I had so often thought the most dreadful of all afflictions that could understand almost all I said to him and speak fluently, though in broken English,
possibly have befallen me. to me, I acquainted him with my own story, or at least so much of it as related to
In this thankful frame I continued all the remainder of my time, and the my coming into the place, how I had lived there, and how long. I let him into the
conversation which employed the hours between Friday and I was such as made mystery, for such it was to him, of gunpowder and bullet, and taught him how to
the three years which we lived there together perfectly and completely happy, if shoot. I gave him a knife, which he was wonderfully delighted with, and I made
any such thing as complete happiness can be formed in a sublunary state. The him a belt, with a frog hanging to it, such as in England we wear hangers in; and
savage was now a good Christian, a much better than I; though I have reason to in the frog, instead of a hanger, I gave him a hatchet, which was not only as good
hope, and bless God for it, that we were equally penitent, and comforted, a weapon, in some cases, but much more useful upon other occasions.
restored penitents; we had here the Word of God to read and no farther off from I described to him the country of Europe, and particularly England, which I
His Spirit to instruct than if we had been in England. came from; how we lived, how we worshipped God, how we behaved to one
I always applied myself to reading the Scripture to let him know, as well as I another; and how we traded in ships to all parts of the world. I gave him an
could, the meaning of what I read; and he again, by his serious inquiries and account of the wreck which I had been on board of, and showed him as near as I
questions, made me, as I said before, a much better scholar in the Scripture could the place where she lay; but she was all beaten in pieces before, and gone.
knowledge than I should ever have been by my own private mere reading. I showed him the ruins of our boat, which we lost when we escaped, and
Another thing I cannot refrain from observing here also, from experience in this which I could not stir with my whole strength then, but was now fallen almost all
retired part of my life, viz., how infinite and inexpressible a blessing it is that the
to pieces. Upon seeing this boat, Friday stood musing a great while, and said I observed an extraordinary sense of pleasure appeared in his face, and his
nothing; I asked him what it was he studied upon; at last says he, ‘‘Me see such eyes sparkled, and his countenance discovered a strange eagerness, as if he had a
boat like come to place at my nation.’’ mind to be in his own country again; and this observation of mine put a great
I did not understand him a good while; but at last, when I had examined many thoughts into me, which made me at first not so easy about my new man
further into it, I understood by him that a boat, such as that had been, came on Friday as I was before; and I made no doubt but that if Friday could get back to
shore upon the country where he lived; that is, as he explained it, was driven his own nation again, he would not only forget all his religion but all his
thither by stress of weather. I presently imagined that some European ship must obligation to me; and would be forward enough to give his countrymen an
have been cast away upon their coast, and the boat might get loose and drive account of me, and come back, perhaps with a hundred or two of them, and
ashore; but was so dull that I never once thought of men making escape from a make a feast upon me, at which he might be as merry as he used to be with those
wreck thither, much less whence they might come; so I only inquired after a of his enemies, when they were taken in war.
description of the boat. But I wronged the poor honest creature very much, for which I was very sorry
Friday described the boat to me well enough, but brought me better to afterwards. However, as my jealousy increased, and held me some weeks, I was
understand him when he added with some warmth, ‘‘We save the white mans a little more circumspect, and not so familiar and kind to him as before; in which
from drown.’’ Then I presently asked him if there were any white mans, as he I was certainly in the wrong too, the honest grateful creature having no thought
called them, in the boat. ‘‘Yes,’’ he said, ‘‘the boat full of white mans.’’ I asked about it but what consisted with the best principles, both as a religious Christian
him how many; he told upon his fingers seventeen. I asked him then what and as a grateful friend, as appeared afterwards to my full satisfaction.
became of them; he told me, ‘‘They live, they dwell at my nation.’’ While my jealousy of him lasted, you may be sure I was every day pumping
This put new thoughts into my head; for I presently imagined that these might him to see if he would discover any of the new thoughts which I suspected were
be the men belonging to the ship that was cast away in sight of my island, as I in him; but I found everything he said was so honest and so innocent that I could
now call it; and who, after the ship was struck on the rock and they saw her find nothing to nourish my suspicion; and in spite of all my uneasiness he made
inevitably lost, had saved themselves in their boat and were landed upon that me at last entirely his own again; nor did he in the least perceive that I was
wild shore among the savages. uneasy, and therefore I could not suspect him of deceit.
Upon this I inquired of him more critically what was become of them. He One day, walking up the same hill, but the weather being hazy at sea so that
assured me they lived still there; that they had been there about four years; that we could not see the continent, I called to him, and said, ‘‘Friday, do not you
the savages let them alone, and gave them victuals to live. I asked him how it wish yourself in your own country, your own nation?’’ ‘‘Yes,’’ he said, ‘‘I be
came to pass they did not kill them and eat them. He said, ‘‘No, they make much O glad to be at my nation.’’ ‘‘What would you do there?’’ said I. ‘‘Would
brother with them’’; that is, as I understood him, a truce. And then he added, you turn wild again, eat men’s flesh again, and be a savage as you were before?’’
‘‘They no eat mans but when make the war fight’’; that is to say, they never eat He looked full of concern, and shaking his head, said, ‘‘No, no, Friday tell them
any men but such as come to fight with them and are taken in battle. to live good, tell them to pray God, tell them to eat corn bread, cattle flesh, milk,
It was after this some considerable time that being on the top of the hill, at the no eat man again.’’ ‘‘Why then,’’ said I to him, ‘‘they will kill you.’’ He looked
east side of the island, from whence, as I have said, I had in a clear day grave at that, and then said, ‘‘No, they no kill me, they willing love learn.’’ He
discovered the main, or continent of America, Friday, the weather being very meant by this, they would be willing to learn. He added, they learned much of
serene, looks very earnestly towards the mainland, and in a kind of surprise falls the bearded mans that come in the boat. Then I asked him if he would go back to
a-jumping and dancing, and calls out to me, for I was at some distance from him. them. He smiled at that and told me he could not swim so far. I told him I would
I asked him what was the matter. "O joy!’’ says he, "O glad! There see my make a canoe for him. He told me he would go, if I would go with him. ‘‘I go!’’
country, there my nation!’’ says I. ‘‘Why, they will eat me if I come there.’’ ‘‘No, no,’’ says he, ‘‘me make
they no eat you; me make they much love you.’’ He meant he would tell them
how I had killed his enemies and saved his life, and so he would make them love myself.’’ ‘‘Yes, yes,’’ says he, ‘‘you teachee me good, you teachee them good.’’
me; then he told me as well as he could how kind they were to seventeen white ‘‘No, no, Friday,’’ says I, ‘‘you shall go without me, leave me here to live by
men, or bearded men, as he called them, who came on shore there in distress. myself, as I did before.’’ He looked confused again at that word, and running to
From this time, I confess, I had a mind to venture over, and see if I could one of the hatchets which he used to wear, he takes it up hastily, and gives it to
possibly join with these bearded men, who, I made no doubt, were Spaniards or me. ‘‘What must I do with this?’’ says I to him. ‘‘You take kill Friday,’’ says he.
Portuguese; not doubting but, if I could, we might find some method to escape ‘‘What must I kill you for?’’ said I again. He returns very quick, ‘‘What you send
from thence, being upon the continent, and a good company together, better than Friday away for? Take kill Friday, no send Friday away.’’ This he spoke so
I could from an island forty miles off the shore, and alone without help. So after earnestly that I saw tears stand in his eyes. In a word, I so plainly discovered the
some days I took Friday to work again, by way of discourse, and told him I utmost affection in him to me, and a firm resolution in him, that I told him then,
would give him a boat to go back to his own nation; and accordingly I carried and often after, that I would never send him away from me, if he was willing to
him to my frigate, which lay on the other side of the island, and having cleared it stay with me.
of water, for I always kept it sunk in the water, I brought it out, showed it him, Upon the whole, as I found by all his discourse a settled affection to me, and
and we both went into it. that nothing should part him from me, so I found all the foundation of his desire
I found he was a most dexterous fellow at managing it, would make it go to go to his own country was laid in his ardent affection to the people, and his
almost as swift and fast again as I could; so when he was in, I said to him, hopes of my doing them good; a thing, which as I had no notion of myself, so I
‘‘Well, now, Friday, shall we go to your nation?’’ He looked very dull at my had not the least thought or intention or desire of undertaking it. But still I found
saying so, which, it seems, was because he thought the boat too small to go so a strong inclination to my attempting an escape, as above, founded on the
far. I told him then I had a bigger; so the next day I went to the place where the supposition gathered from the discourse, viz., that there were seventeen bearded
first boat lay which I had made, but which I could not get into the water. He said men there; and therefore, without any more delay, I went to work with Friday to
that was big enough; but then, as I had taken no care of it, and it had lain two or find out a great tree proper to fell, and make a large piragua or canoe to
three and twenty years there, the sun had split and dried it, that it was in a undertake the voyage. There were trees enough in the island to have built a little
manner rotten. Friday told me such a boat would do very well and would carry fleet, not of piraguas and canoes, but even of good large vessels. But the main
‘‘much talking. thing I looked at was to get one so near the water that we might launch it when it
Upon the whole, I was by this time so fixed upon my design of going over was made, to avoid the mistake I committed at first.
with him to the continent, that I told him we would go and make one as big as At last, Friday pitched upon a tree, for I found he knew much better than I
that, and he should go home in it. He answered not one word, but looked very what kind of wood was fittest for it; nor can I tell, to this day, what wood to call
grave and sad. I asked him what was the matter with him; he asked me again the tree we cut down, except that it was very like the tree we call fustic, or
thus, ‘‘Why you angry mad with Friday, what me done?’’ I asked him what he between that and the Nicaragua wood, for it was much of the same colour and
meant; I told him I was not angry with him at all. ‘‘No angry! no angry!’’ says smell. Friday was for burning the hollow or cavity of this tree out, to make it for
he, repeating the words several times, ‘‘Why send Friday home away to my a boat. But I showed him how rather to cut it out with tools, which after I
nation? ’’ ‘‘Why,’’ says I, ‘‘Friday, did you not say you wished you were there?’’ showed him how to use, he did very handily; and in about a month’s hard labour,
‘‘Yes, yes,’’ says he, ‘‘wish be both there, no wish Friday there, no Master we finished it and made it very handsome, especially when with our axes, which
there.’’ In a word, he would not think of going there without me. ‘‘I go there, I showed him how to handle, we cut and hewed the outside into the true shape of
Friday!’’ says I. ‘‘What shall I do there?’’ He turned very quick upon me at this: a boat; after this, however, it cost us near a fortnight’s time to get her along, as it
‘‘You do great deal much good,’’ says he, ‘‘you teach wild mans be good sober were, inch by inch, upon great rollers into the water. But when she was in, she
tame mans; you tell them know God, pray God, and live new life.’’ ‘‘Alas, would have carried twenty men with great ease.
Friday,’’ says I, ‘‘thou knowest not what thou sayest. I am but an ignorant man When she was in the water, and though she was so big, it amazed me to see
with what dexterity and how swift my man Friday would manage her, turn her, seldom or never any fogs in those parts, there was the less occasion for a
and paddle her along; so I asked him if he would, and if we might venture over compass, seeing the stars were always to be seen by night and the shore by day,
in her. ‘‘Yes,’’ he said, ‘‘he venture over in her very well, though great blow except in the rainy seasons, and then nobody cared to stir abroad, either by land
wind.’’ However, I had a further design that he knew nothing of, and that was to or sea.
make a mast and sail, and to fit her with an anchor and cable. As to a mast, that I was now entered on the seven and twentieth year of my captivity in this
was easy enough to get; so I pitched upon a straight young cedar tree, which I place; though the three last years that I had this creature with me ought rather to
found near the place, and which there was great plenty of in the island; and I set be left out of the account, my habitation being quite of another kind than in all
Friday to work to cut it down, and gave him directions how to shape and order it. the rest of the time. I kept the anniversary of my landing here with the same
But as to the sail, that was my particular care; I knew I had old sails, or rather thankfulness to God for His mercies as at first; and if I had such cause of
pieces of old sails, enough; but as I had had them now twenty-six years by me acknowledgement at first, I had much more so now, having such additional
and had not been very careful to preserve them, not imagining that I should ever testimonies of the care of Providence over me, and the great hopes I had of being
have this kind of use for them, I did not doubt but they were all rotten; and effectually and speedily delivered; for I had an invincible impression upon my
indeed most of them were so; however, I found two pieces which appeared pretty thoughts that my deliverance was at hand, and that I should not be another year
good, and with these I went to work, and with a great deal of pains, and in this place. However, I went on with my husbandry, digging, planting, fencing,
awkward tedious stitching (you may be sure) for want of needles, I at length as usual; I gathered and cured my grapes, and did every necessary thing, as
made a three-cornered ugly thing, like what we call in England a shoulder-of- before.
mutton sail, to go with a boom at bottom, and a little short sprit at the top, such The rainy season was in the meantime upon me, when I kept more within
as usually our ships’ longboats sail with, and such as I best knew how to doors than at other times; so I had stowed our new vessel as secure as we could,
manage; because it was such a one as I had to the boat in which I made my bringing her up into the creek, where, as I said in the beginning, I landed my
escape from Barbary, as related in the first part of my story. rafts from the ship and, hauling her up to the shore, at high-water mark, I made
I was near two months performing this last work, viz., rigging and fitting my my man Friday dig a little dock, just big enough to hold her, and just deep
mast and sails; for I finished them very complete, making a small stay, and a sail, enough to give her water enough to float in; and then when the tide was out, we
or foresail to it, to assist, if we should turn to windward; and which was more made a strong dam across the end of it, to keep the water out; and so she lay dry,
than all, I fixed a rudder to the stern of her, to steer with; and though I was but a as to the tide, from the sea; and to keep the rain off, we laid a great many boughs
bungling ship-wright, yet as I knew the usefulness and even necessity of such a of trees so thick that she was as well thatched as a house; and thus we waited for
thing, I applied myself with so much pains to do it that at last I brought it to pass, the months of November and December, in which I designed to make my
though considering the many dull contrivances I had for it that failed, I think it adventure.
cost me almost as much labour as making the boat.
After all this was done too, I had my man Friday to teach as to what belonged
to the navigation of my boat; for though he knew very well how to paddle a
canoe, he knew nothing what belonged to a sail and a rudder, and was the most
amazed when he saw me work the boat to and again in the sea by the rudder, and
how the sail jibed, and filled this way or that way, as the course we sailed
changed; I say, when he saw this, he stood like one astonished and amazed.
However, with a little use I made all these things familiar to him; and he became
an expert sailor, except that as to the compass, I could make him understand very
little of that. On the other hand, as there was very little cloudy weather, and
three human bodies (a barbarous feast indeed), but nothing else more than, as I
We March Out Against the Cannibals had observed, was usual with them.
WHEN the settled season began to come in, as the thought of my design I observed also that they were landed, not where they had done when Friday
returned with the fair weather, I was preparing daily for the voyage; and the first made his escape, but nearer to my creek, where the shore was low, and where a
thing I did was to lay by a certain quantity of provisions, being the stores for our thick wood came close almost down to the sea. This, with the abhorrence of the
voyage; and intended, in a week or a fortnight’s time, to open the dock and inhuman errand these wretches came about, filled me with such indignation that
launch out our boat. I was busy one morning upon something of this kind, when I came down again to Friday and told him I was resolved to go down to them,
I called to Friday, and bade him go to the seashore and see if he could find a and kill them all; and asked him if he would stand by me. He was now gotten
turtle, or tortoise, a thing which we generally got once a week, for the sake of the over his fright, and his spirits being a little raised with the dram I had given him,
eggs as well as the flesh. Friday had not been long gone when he came running he was very cheerful, and told me, as before, he would die when I bade die.
back and flew over my outer wall, or fence, like one that felt not the ground, or In this fit of fury, I took first and divided the arms which I had charged, as
the steps he set his feet on; and before I had time to speak to him, he cries out to before, between us; I gave Friday one pistol to stick in his girdle, and three guns
me, "O Master! O Master! O sorrow! O bad!’’ ‘‘What’s the matter, Friday?’’ says upon his shoulder; and I took one pistol, and the other three myself; and in this
I. "O yonder, there,’’ says he, ‘‘one, two, three canoe! one, two, three!’’ By his posture we marched out. I took a small bottle of rum in my pocket and gave
way of speaking, I concluded there were six; but on inquiry I found it was but Friday a large bag with more powder and bullet; and as to orders, I charged him
three. ‘‘Well, Friday,’’ says I, ‘‘do not be frighted’’; so I heartened him up as well to keep close behind me, and not to stir, or shoot, or do anything, till I bade him;
as I could. However, I saw the poor fellow was most terribly scared; for nothing and in the meantime not to speak a word. In this posture I fetched a compass to
ran in his head but that they were come to look for him, and would cut him in my right hand of near a mile, as well to get over the creek, as to get into the
pieces and eat him; and the poor fellow trembled so, that I scarce knew what to wood; so that I might come within shot of them before I should be discovered,
do with him. I comforted him as well as I could, and told him I was in as much which I had seen by my glass it was easy to do.
danger as he, and that they would eat me as well as him; ‘‘But,’’ says I, ‘‘Friday, While I was making this march, my former thoughts returning, I began to
we must resolve to fight them; can you fight, Friday?’’ ‘‘Me shoot,’’ says he, abate my resolution; I do not mean that I entertained any fear of their number;
‘‘but there come many great number.’’ ‘‘No matter for that,’’ said I again, ‘‘our for as they were naked, unarmed wretches, ’tis certain I was superior to them;
guns will fright them that we do not kill’’; so I asked him, whether if I resolved nay, though I had been alone; but it occurred to my thoughts what call, what
to defend him, he would defend me, and stand by me, and do just as I bade him. occasion, much less what necessity, I was in to go and dip my hands in blood, to
He said, ‘‘Me die when you bid die, Master’’; so I went and fetched a good dram attack people who had neither done or intended me any wrong; who, as to me,
of rum, and gave him; for I had been so good a husband of my rum, that I had a were innocent and whose barbarous customs were their own disaster, being in
great deal left. When he had drunk it, I made him take the two fowling pieces, them a token indeed of God’s having left them, with the other nations of that part
which we always carried, and load them with large swan-shot, as big as small of the world, to such stupidity and to such inhuman courses; but did not call me
pistol bullets; then I took four muskets, and loaded them with two slugs and five to take upon me to be a judge of their actions, much less an executioneer of His
small bullets each; and my two pistols I loaded with a brace of bullets each. I Justice; that whenever He thought fit, He would take the cause into His own
hung my great sword, as usual, naked by my side, and gave Friday his hatchet. hands, and by national vengeance punish them as a people for national crimes;
When I had thus prepared myself, I took my perspective -glass and went up to but that, in the meantime, it was none of my business; that it was true, Friday
the side of the hill, to see what I could discover; and I found quickly, by my might justify it, because he was a declared enemy, and in a state of war with
glass, that there were one-and-twenty savages, three prisoners, and three canoes; those very particular people; and it was lawful for him to attack them; but I
and that their whole business seemed to be the triumphant banquet upon these could not say the same with respect to me. These things were so warmly pressed
upon my thoughts all the way as I went that I resolved I would only go and place
myself near them, that I might observe their barbarous feast and that I would act two of them and wounded three more; and on my side, I killed one and wounded
then as God should direct; but that unless something offered that was more a call two. They were, you may be sure, in a dreadful consternation; and all of them
to me than yet I knew of, I would not meddle with them. who were not hurt jumped up upon their feet, but did not immediately know
With this resolution I entered the wood, and, with all possible wariness and which way to run or which way to look; for they knew not from whence their
silence (Friday following close at my heels) I marched till I came to the skirt of destruction came. Friday kept his eyes close upon me, that, as I had bade him, he
the wood, on the side which was next to them; only that one corner of the wood might observe what I did; so, as soon as the first shot was made, I threw down
lay between me and them; here I called softly to Friday, and showing him a great the piece, and took up the fowling piece, and Friday did the like; he sees me
tree, which was just at the corner of the wood, I bade him go to the tree, and cock and present; he did the same again. ‘‘Are you ready, Friday?’’ said I. ‘‘Yes,’’
bring me word if he could see there plainly what they were doing; he did so, and says he. ‘‘Let fly, then,’’ says I, ‘‘in the name of God!’’ and with that I fired again
came immediately back to me and told me they might be plainly viewed there; among the amazed wretches, and so did Friday; and as our pieces were now
that they were all about their fire, eating the flesh of one of their prisoners; and loaden with what I called swan-shot, or small pistol bullets, we found only two
that another lay bound upon the sand, a little from them, which he said they drop; but so many were wounded that they ran about yelling and screaming like
would kill next; and which fired all the very soul within me. He told me it was mad creatures, all bloody, and miserably wounded most of them; whereof three
not one of their nation, but one of the bearded men, whom he had told me of, more fell quickly after, though not quite dead.
that came to their country in the boat. I was filled with horror at the very naming ‘‘Now, Friday,’’ says I, laying down the discharged pieces and taking up the
the white bearded man, and, going to the tree, I saw plainly by my glass a white musket, which was yet loaden, ‘‘follow me,’’ says I, which he did, with a great
man who lay upon the beach of the sea, with his hands and his feet tied with deal of courage; upon which I rushed out of the wood and showed myself, and
flags, or things like rushes, and that he was a European and had clothes on. Friday close at my foot; as soon as I perceived they saw me, I shouted as loud as
There was another tree, and a little thicket beyond it, about fifty yards nearer I could and bade Friday do so too; and running as fast as I could, which, by the
to them than the place where I was, which, by going a little way about, I saw I way, was not very fast, being loaden with arms as I was, I made directly towards
might come at undiscovered, and that then I should be within half shot of them; the poor victim, who was, as I said, lying upon the beach, or shore, between the
so I withheld my passion, though I was indeed enraged to the highest degree, and place where they sat and the sea; the two butchers, who were just going to work
going back about twenty paces, I got behind some bushes, which held all the with him, had left him at the surprise of our first fire and fled in a terrible fright
way, till I came to the other tree; and then I came to the little rising ground, to the seaside and had jumped into a canoe, and three more of the rest made the
which gave me a full view of them, at the distance of about eighty yards. same way; I turned to Friday and bade him step forwards and fire at them. He
I had now not a moment to lose; for nineteen of the dreadful wretches sat understood me immediately, and running about forty yards to be near them, he
upon the ground, all close huddled together, and had just sent the other two to shot at them, and I thought he had killed them all, for I saw them all fall of a
butcher the poor Christian and bring him, perhaps limb by limb, to their fire, and heap into the boat; though I saw two of them up again quickly. However, he
they were stooped down to untie the bands at his feet. I turned to Friday. ‘‘Now, killed two of them and wounded the third, so that he lay down in the bottom of
Friday,’’ said I, ‘‘do as I bid thee.’’ Friday said he would. ‘‘Then, Friday, ’’ says I, the boat, as if he had been dead.
‘‘do exactly as you see me do; fail in nothing. ’’ So I set down one of the While my man Friday fired at them, I pulled out my knife and cut the flags
muskets and the fowling piece upon the ground, and Friday did the like by his; that bound the poor victim; and, loosing his hands and feet, I lifted him up and
and with the other musket I took my aim at the savages, bidding him do the like; asked him in the Portuguese tongue what he was. He answered in Latin,
then asking him if he was ready, he said, ‘‘Yes.’’ ‘‘Then fire at them,’’ said I; and ‘‘Christianus’’; but was so weak and faint that he could scarce stand or speak; I
the same moment I fired also. took my bottle out of my pocket and gave it him, making signs that he should
Friday took his aim so much better than I that on the side that he shot he killed drink, which he did; and I gave him a piece of bread, which he ate; then I asked
him what countryman he was. And he said ‘‘Espagniole’’; and being a little
recovered, let me know by all the signs he could possibly make how much he with one wounded, who we know not whether he died or no, were all that
was in my debt for his deliverance. ‘‘Seignior,’’ said I, with as much Spanish as I escaped our hands of one-and-twenty. The account of the rest is as follows:
could make up, ‘‘we will talk afterwards, but we must fight now; if you have any
strength left, take this pistol and sword and lay about you.’’ He took them very
thankfully, and no sooner had he the arms in his hands, but as if they had put
new vigour into him, he flew upon his murderers like a fury, and had cut two of
them in pieces in an instant; for the truth is, as the whole was a surprise to them,
so the poor creatures were so much frighted with the noise of our pieces that
they fell down for mere amazement and fear and had no more power to attempt
their own escape than their flesh had to resist our shot; and that was the case of
those five that Friday shot at in the boat; for as three of them fell with the hurt
they received, so the other two fell with the fright.
I kept my piece in my hand still, without firing, being willing to keep my
charge ready, because I had given the Spaniard my pistol and sword; so I called
Those that were in the canoe worked hard to get out of gunshot; and though
to Friday and bade him run up to the tree from whence we first fired, and fetch
Friday made two or three shot at them, I did not find that he hit any of them.
the arms which lay there that had been discharged, which he did with great
Friday would fain have had me take one of their canoes and pursue them; and
swiftness; and then giving him my musket, I sat down myself to load all the rest
indeed I was very anxious about their escape, lest, carrying the news home to
again, and bade them come to me when they wanted. While I was loading these
their people, they should come back perhaps with two or three hundred of their
pieces, there happened a fierce engagement between the Spaniard and one of the
canoes and devour us by mere multitude; so I consented to pursue them by sea,
savages, who made at him with one of their great wooden swords, the same
and running to one of their canoes, I jumped in and bade Friday follow me; but
weapon that was to have killed him before, if I had not prevented it. The
when I was in the canoe, I was surprised to find another poor creature lie there
Spaniard, who was as bold and as brave as could be imagined, though weak, had
alive, bound hand and foot, as the Spaniard was, for the slaughter, and almost
fought this Indian a good while, and had cut him two great wounds on his head;
dead with fear, not knowing what the matter was; for he had not been able to
but the savage being a stout lusty fellow, closing in with him, had thrown him
look up over the side of the boat, he was tied so hard, neck and heels, and had
down, being faint, and was wringing my sword out of his hand, when the
been tied so long that he had really but little life in him.
Spaniard, though undermost, wisely quitting the sword, drew the pistol from his
girdle, shot the savage through the body, and killed him upon the spot, before I, I immediately cut the twisted flags, or rushes, which they had bound him with,
who was running to help him, could come near him. and would have helped him up; but he could not stand or speak, but groaned
most piteously, believing, it seems, still that he was only unbound in order to be
Friday, being now left to his liberty, pursued the flying wretches with no
killed.
weapon in his hand but his hatchet; and with that he dispatched those three, who,
as I said before, were wounded at first and fallen, and all the rest he could come When Friday came to him, I bade him speak to him and tell him of his
up with; and the Spaniard coming to me for a gun, I gave him one of the fowling deliverance, and pulling out my bottle, made him give the poor wretch a dram,
pieces, with which he pursued two of the savages, and wounded them both; but which, with the news of his being delivered, revived him, and he sat up in the
as he was not able to run, they both got from him into the wood, where Friday boat; but when Friday came to hear him speak, and looked in his face, it would
pursued them and killed one of them; but the other was too nimble for him and have moved anyone to tears, to have seen how Friday kissed him, embraced him,
though he was wounded, yet had plunged himself into the sea, and swam with all hugged him, cried, laughed, holloed, jumped about, danced, sang, then cried
his might off to those two who were left in the canoe, which three in the canoe, again, wrung his hands, beat his own face and head, and then sang and jumped
about again, like a distracted creature. It was a good while before I could make father more than all the rum or spirits I had given him, for he was just fainting
him speak to me, or tell me what was the matter; but when he came a little to with thirst.
himself he told me that it was his father. When his father had drunk, I called to him to know if there was any water left;
It is not easy for me to express how it moved me to see what ecstasy and filial he said ‘‘Yes’’; and I bade him give it to the poor Spaniard, who was in as much
affection had worked in this poor savage, at the sight of his father and of his want of it as his father; and I sent one of the cakes that Friday brought to the
being delivered from death; nor indeed can I describe half the extravagances of Spaniard too, who was indeed very weak, and was reposing himself upon a
his affection after this; for he went into the boat and out of the boat a great many green place under the shade of a tree, and whose limbs were also very stiff, and
times. When he went in to him, he would sit down by him, open his breast, and very much swelled with the rude bandage he had been tied with. When I saw
hold his father’s head close to his bosom, half an hour together, to nourish it; that, upon Friday’s coming to him with the water, he sat up and drank, and took
then he took his arms and ankles, which were numbed and stiff with the binding, the bread and began to eat, I went to him and gave him a handful of raisins; he
and chafed and rubbed them with his hands; and I, perceiving what the case was, looked up in my face with all the tokens of gratitude and thankfulness that could
gave him some rum out of my bottle to rub them with, which did them a great appear in any countenance, but was so weak, notwithstanding he had so exerted
deal of good. with the other savages, who were now gotten almost out of sight; himself in the fight that he could not stand up upon his feet; he tried to do it two
and it was happy for us that we did not; for it blew so hard within two hours or three times, but was really not able, his ankles were so swelled and so painful
after, and before they could be gotten a quarter of their way, and continued to him; so I bade him sit still, and caused Friday to rub his ankles and bathe them
blowing so hard all night, and that from the northwest, which was against them, with rum, as he had done his father’s.
that I could not suppose their boat could live, or that they ever reached to their I observed the poor affectionate creature, every two minutes or perhaps less,
own coast. all the while he was here, turned his head about to see if his father was in the
But to return to Friday; he was so busy about his father that I could not find in same place and posture as he left him sitting; and at last he found he was not to
my heart to take him off for some time. But after I thought he could leave him a be seen; at which he started up, and without speaking a word, flew with that
little, I called him to me, and he came jumping and laughing, and pleased to the swiftness to him, that one could scarce perceive his feet to touch the ground as
highest extreme; then I asked him if he had given his father any bread. He shook he went. But when he came, he only found he had laid himself down to ease his
his head and said, ‘‘None; ugly dog eat all up self.’’ So I gave him a cake of limbs; so Friday came back to me presently, and I then spoke to the Spaniard to
bread out of a little pouch I carried on purpose; I also gave him a dram for let Friday help him up if he could and lead him to the boat, and then he should
himself, but he would not taste it but carried it to his father. I had in my pocket carry him to our dwelling, where I would take care of him. But Friday, a lusty
also two or three bunches of my raisins, so I gave him a handful of them for his strong fellow, took the Spaniard quite up upon his back and carried him away to
father. He had no sooner given his father these raisins but I saw him come out of the boat and set him down softly upon the side, or gunnel, of the canoe, with his
the boat and run away, as if he had been bewitched, he ran at such a rate; for he feet in the inside of it, and then lifted him quite in and set him close to his father,
was the swiftest fellow of his foot that ever I saw; I say, he ran at such a rate that and presently stepping out again, launched the boat off, and paddled it along the
he was out of sight, as it were, in an instant; and though I called, and holloed, shore faster than I could walk, though the wind blew pretty hard too; so he
too, after him, it was all one, away he went, and in a quarter of an hour I saw brought them both safe into our creek; and leaving them in the boat, runs away
him come back again, though not so fast as he went; and as he came nearer, I to fetch the other canoe. As he passed me, I spoke to him, and asked him whither
found his pace was slacker because he had something in his hand. he went; he told me, ‘‘Go fetch more boat’’; so away he went, like the wind; for
When he came up to me, I found he had been quite home for an earthen jug or sure never man or horse ran like him, and he had the other canoe in the creek
pot to bring his father some fresh water, and that he had got two more cakes or almost as soon as I got to it by land; so he wafted me over, and then went to help
loaves of bread. The bread he gave me, but the water he carried to his father. our new guests out of the boat, which he did; but they were neither of them able
However, as I was very thirsty too, I took a little sup of it. This water revived his to walk; so that poor Friday knew not what to do.
To remedy this, I went to work in my thought, and calling to Friday to bid
them sit down on the bank while he came to me, I soon made a kind of hand- We Plan a Voyage to the Colonies of America
barrow to lay them on, and Friday and I carried them up both together upon it
AS SOON as I had secured my two weak rescued prisoners, and given them
between us. But when we got them to the outside of our wall, or fortification, we shelter and a place to rest them upon, I began to think of making some provision
were at a worse loss than before; for it was impossible to get them over, and I for them. And the first thing I did, I ordered Friday to take a yearling goat,
was resolved not to break it down. So I set to work again; and Friday and I, in betwixt a kid and a goat, out of my particular flock, to be killed; when I cut off
about two hours’ time, made a very handsome tent, covered with old sails, and the hinder quarter, and chopping it into small pieces, I set Friday to work to
above that with boughs of trees, being in the space without our outward fence, boiling and stewing, and made them a very good dish, I assure you, of flesh and
and between that and the grove of young wood which I had planted. And here broth, having put some barley and rice also into the broth; and as I cooked it
we made them two beds of such things as I had, viz., of good rice straw, with without doors, for I made no fire within my inner wall, so I carried it all into the
blankets laid upon it to lie on, and another to cover them, on each bed.
new tent; and having set a table there for them, I sat down and ate my own
My island was now peopled, and I thought myself very rich in subjects; and it dinner also with them, and, as well as I could, cheered them and encouraged
was a merry reflection, which I frequently made, how like a king I looked. First them; Friday being my interpreter, especially to his father, and indeed to the
of all, the whole country was my own mere property, so that I had an undoubted Spaniard too; for the Spaniard spoke the language of the savages pretty well.
right of dominion. Secondly, my people were perfectly subjected. I was absolute After we had dined, or rather supped, I ordered Friday to take one of the
lord and lawgiver; they all owed their lives to me, and were ready to lay down canoes, and go and fetch our muskets and other firearms, which for want of time
their lives, if there had been occasion of it, for me. It was remarkable, too, we we had left upon the place of battle; and the next day I ordered him to go and
had but three subjects, and they were of three different religions. My man Friday bury the dead bodies of the savages, which lay open to the sun, and would
was a Protestant, his father was a pagan and a cannibal, and the Spaniard was a presently be offensive; and I also ordered him to bury the horrid remains of their
Papist. However, I allowed liberty of conscience throughout my dominions. But
barbarous feast, which I knew were pretty much, and which I could not think of
this is by the way. doing myself; nay, I could not bear to see them, if I went that way. All of which
he punctually performed, and defaced the very appearance of the savages being
there; so that when I went again I could scarce know where it was, otherwise
than by the corner of the wood pointing to the place.
I then began to enter into a little conversation with my two new subjects; and
first I set Friday to inquire of his father what he thought of the escape of the
savages in that canoe, and whether we might expect a return of them with a
power too great for us to resist. His first opinion was that the savages in the boat
never could live out the storm which blew that night they went off, but must of
necessity be drowned or driven south to those other shores, where they were as
sure to be devoured as they were to be drowned if they were cast away; but as to
what they would do if they came safe on shore, he said he knew not; but it was
his opinion that they were so dreadfully frighted with the manner of their being
attacked, the noise and the fire, that he believed they would tell their people they
were all killed by thunder and lightning, not by the hand of man, and that the two
which appeared, viz., Friday and me, were two heavenly spirits or furies come
down to destroy them, and not men with weapons. This he said he knew, because about it, but that having neither vessel, or tools to build one, or provisions of any
he heard them all cry out so in their language to one another, for it was kind, their councils always ended in tears and despair.
impossible to them to conceive that a man could dart fire and speak thunder and I asked him how he thought they would receive a proposal from me, which
kill at a distance without lifting up the hand, as was done now. And this old might tend towards an escape; and whether, if they were all here, it might not be
savage was in the right; for, as I understood since by other hands, the savages done. I told him with freedom, I feared mostly their treachery and ill usage of
never attempted to go over to the island afterwards; they were so terrified with me, if I put my life in their hands; for that gratitude was no inherent virtue in the
the accounts given by those four men (for it seems they did escape the sea) that nature of man; nor did men always square their dealings by the obligations they
they believed whoever went to that enchanted island would be destroyed with had received so much as they did by the advantages they expected. I told him it
fire from the gods. would be very hard that I should be the instrument of their deliverance and that
This, however, I knew not, and therefore was under continual apprehensions they should afterwards make me their prisoner in New Spain, where an
for a good while, and kept always upon my guard, me and all my army; for as Englishman was certain to be made a sacrifice, what necessity or what accident
we were now four of us, I would have ventured upon a hundred of them fairly in soever brought him thither. And that I had rather be delivered up to the savages
the open field at any time. and be devoured alive than fall into the merciless claws of the priests and be
In a little time, however, no more canoes appearing, the fear of their coming carried into the Inquisition. I added that otherwise I was persuaded, if they were
wore off, and I began to take my former thoughts of a voyage to the main into all here, we might, with so many hands, build a bark large enough to carry us all
consideration; being likewise assured by Friday’s father that I might depend away, either to Brazil southward, or to the islands or Spanish coast northward.
upon good usage from their nation on his account, if I would go. But that if in requital they should, when I had put weapons into their hands,
But my thoughts were a little suspended when I had a serious discourse with carry me by force among their own people, I might be ill used for my kindness
the Spaniard, and when I understood that there were sixteen more of his to them, and make my case worse than it was before.
countrymen and Portuguese, who, having been cast away and made their escape He answered with a great deal of candour and ingenuity that their condition
to that side, lived there at peace indeed with the savages, but were very sore put was so miserable, and they were so sensible of it, that he believed they would
to it for necessaries, and indeed for life. I asked him all the particulars of their abhor the thought of using any man unkindly that should contribute to their
voyage, and found they were a Spanish ship bound from the Rio de la Plata to deliverance; and that, if I pleased, he would go to them with the old man and
Havana, being directed to leave their loading there, which was chiefly hides and discourse with them about it, and return again and bring me their answer. That he
silver, and to bring back what European goods they could meet with there; that would make conditions with them upon their solemn oath, that they should be
they had five Portuguese seamen on board, whom they took out of another absolutely under my leading, as their commander and captain; and that they
wreck; that five of their own men were drowned when the first ship was lost, and should swear upon the Holy Sacraments and the Gospel to be true to me and to
that these escaped through infinite dangers and hazards, and arrived, almost go to such Christian country as that I should agree to, and no other; and to be
starved, on the cannibal coast, where they expected to have been devoured every directed wholly and absolutely by my orders, till they were landed safely in such
moment. country as I intended; and that he would bring a contract from them, under their
He told me they had some arms with them, but they were perfectly useless, for hands, for that purpose.
that they had neither powder or ball, the washing of the sea having spoiled all Then he told me he would first swear to me himself that he would never stir
their powder but a little, which they used at their first landing to provide from me as long as he lived, till I gave him orders; and that he would take my
themselves some food. side to the last drop of his blood, if there should happen the least breach of faith
I asked him what he thought would become of them there, and if they had among his countrymen.
formed no design of making any escape. He said they had many consultations He told me they were all of them very civil honest men, and they were under
the greatest distress imaginable, having neither weapons or clothes, nor any Having now society enough, and our number being sufficient to put us out of
food, but at the mercy and discretion of the savages; out of all hopes of ever fear of the savages, if they had come, unless their number had been very great,
returning to their own country; and that he was sure, if I would undertake their we went freely all over the island, wherever we found occasion; and as here we
relief, they would live and die by me. had our escape or deliverance upon our thoughts, it was impossible, at least for
Upon these assurances, I resolved to venture to relieve them, if possible, and me, to have the means of it out of mine; to this purpose, I marked out several
to send the old savage and this Spaniard over to them to treat. But when we had trees which I thought fit for our work, and I set Friday and his father to cutting
gotten all things in a readiness to go, the Spaniard himself started an objection, them down; and then I caused the Spaniard, to whom I imparted my thought on
which had so much prudence in it on one hand, and so much sincerity on the that affair, to oversee and direct their work. I showed them with what
other hand, that I could not but be very well satisfied in it; and, by his advice, put indefatigable pains I had hewed a large tree into single planks, and I caused them
off the deliverance of his comrades for at least half a year. The case was thus: to do the like, till they had made about a dozen large planks of good oak, near
He had been with us now about a month, during which time I had let him see two foot broad, thirty-five foot long, and from two inches to four inches thick.
in what manner I had provided, with the assistance of Providence, for my What prodigious labour it took up, anyone may imagine.
support; and he saw evidently what stock of corn and rice I had laid up; which, At the same time I contrived to increase my little flock of tame goats as much
as it was more than sufficient for myself, so it was not sufficient, at least without as I could; and to this purpose I made Friday and the Spaniard go out one day,
good husbandry, for my family, now it was increased to number four. But much and myself with Friday the next day, for we took our turns. And by this means
less would it be sufficient, if his countrymen, who were, as he said, fourteen still we got above twenty young kids to breed up with the rest; for whenever we shot
alive, should come over. And least of all would it be sufficient to victual our the dam, we saved the kids, and added them to our flock. But above all, the
vessel, if we should build one, for a voyage to any of the Christian colonies of season for curing the grapes coming on, I caused such a prodigious quantity to
America. So he told me he thought it would be more advisable to let him and the be hung up in the sun, that I believe, had we been at Alicante, where the raisins
two others dig and cultivate some more land, as much as I could spare seed to of the sun are cured, we could have filled sixty or eighty barrels; and these, with
sow; and that we should wait another harvest, that we might have a supply of our bread, were a great part of our food, and very good living too, I assure you;
corn for his countrymen when they should come; for want might be a temptation for it is an exceeding nourishing food.
to them to disagree, or not to think themselves delivered, otherwise than out of It was now harvest, and our crop in good order; it was not the most plentiful
one difficulty into another. ‘‘You know,’’ says he, ‘‘the Children of Israel, though increase I had seen in the island, but, however, it was enough to answer our end;
they rejoiced at first for their being delivered out of Egypt, yet rebelled even for from our twenty-two bushels of barley we brought in and thrashed out above
against God Himself that delivered them, when they came to want bread in the 220 bushels; and the like in proportion of the rice, which was store enough for
wilderness.’’ our food to the next harvest, though all the sixteen Spaniards had been on shore
His caution was so seasonable, and his advice so good, that I could not but be with me; or if we had been ready for a voyage, it would very plentifully have
very well pleased with his proposal, as well as I was satisfied with his fidelity. victualed our ship, to have carried us to any part of the world, that is to say, of
So we fell to digging, all four of us, as well as the wooden tools we were America.
furnished with permitted; and in about a month’s time, by the end of which it When we had thus housed and secured our magazine of corn, we fell to work
was seed time, we had gotten as much land cured and trimmed up as we sowed to make more wicker-work, viz., great baskets in which we kept it; and the
twenty-two bushels of barley on, and sixteen jars of rice, which was, in short, all Spaniard was very handy and dexterous at this part, and often blamed me that I
the seed we had to spare; nor indeed did we leave ourselves barley sufficient for did not make some things for defence, of this kind of work; but I saw no need of
our own food for the six months that we had to expect our crop, that is to say, it.
reckoning from the time we set our seed aside for sowing; for it is not to be And now having a full supply of food for all the guests I expected, I gave the
supposed it is six months in the ground in the country.
Spaniard leave to go over to the main, to see what he could do with those he had
left behind him there. I gave him a strict charge in writing not to bring any man We Quell a Mutiny
with him who would not first swear in the presence of himself and of the old
IT WAS no less than eight days I had waited for them, when a strange and
savage that he would no way injure, fight with, or attack the person he should unforeseen accident intervened, of which the like has not perhaps been heard in
find in the island, who was so kind to send for them in order to their deliverance; history. I was fast asleep in my hutch one morning, when my man Friday came
but that they would stand by and defend him against all such attempts, and running in to me and called aloud, ‘‘Master, master, they are come, they are
wherever they went, would be entirely under and subjected to his commands; come!’’
and that this should be put in writing and signed with their hands. How we were
I jumped up, and regardless of danger I went out, as soon as I could get my
to have this done, when I knew they had neither pen nor ink, that, indeed, was a
clothes on, through my little grove, which, by the way, was by this time grown to
question which we never asked.
be a very thick wood; I say, regardless of danger, I went without my arms, which
Under these instructions, the Spaniard and the old savage (the father of was not my custom to do. But I was surprised when, turning my eyes to the sea, I
Friday) went away in one of the canoes which they might be said to come in, or presently saw a boat at about a league and half’s distance, standing in for the
rather were brought in, when they came as prisoners to be devoured by the shore, with a shoulder-of-mutton sail, as they call it, and the wind blowing pretty
savages. fair to bring them in; also I observed presently that they did not come from that
I gave each of them a musket with a firelock on it, and about eight charges of side which the shore lay on, but from the southermost end of the island. Upon
powder and ball, charging them to be very good husbands of both and not to use this I called Friday in, and bid him lie close, for these were not the people we
either of them but upon urgent occasion. looked for, and that we might not know yet whether they were friends or
This was a cheerful work, being the first measures used by me in view of my enemies.
deliverance for now twenty-seven years and some days. I gave them provisions In the next place, I went in to fetch my perspective-glass, to see what I could
of bread and of dry grapes sufficient for themselves for many days, and make of them; and having taken the ladder out, I climbed up to the top of the
sufficient for all their countrymen for about eight days’ time; and wishing them a hill, as I used to do when I was apprehensive of anything, and to take my view
good voyage, I saw them go, agreeing with them about a signal they should hang the plainer without being discovered.
out at their return, by which I should know them again when they came back, at
I had scarce set my foot on the hill, when my eye plainly discovered a ship
a distance, before they came on shore.
lying at an anchor at about two leagues and a half’s distance from me, south-
They went away with a fair gale on the day that the moon was at full; by my southeast, but not above a league and a half from the shore. By my observation it
account, in the month of October; but as for an exact reckoning of days, after I appeared plainly to be an English ship, and the boat appeared to be an English
had once lost it, I could never recover it again; nor had I kept even the number of longboat.
years so punctually as to be sure that I was right, though as it proved, when I I cannot express the confusion I was in, though the joy of seeing a ship, and
afterwards examined my account, I found I had kept a true reckoning of years.
one whom I had reason to believe was manned by my own countrymen, and
consequently friends, was such as I cannot describe; but yet I had some secret
doubts hung about me, I cannot tell from whence they came, bidding me keep
upon my guard. In the first place, it occurred to me to consider what business an
English ship could have in that part of the world, since it was not the way to or
from any part of the world where the English had any traffic; and I knew there
had been no storms to drive them in there, as in distress; and that if they were
English really, it was most probable that they were here upon no good design;
and that I had better continue as I was than fall into the hands of thieves and All this while I had no thought of what the matter really was, but stood
murderers. trembling with the horror of the sight, expecting every moment when the three
Let no man despise the secret hints and notices of danger, which sometimes prisoners should be killed; nay, once I saw one of the villains lift up his arm with
are given him, when he may think there is no possibility of its being real. That a great cutlass (as the seamen call it), or sword, to strike one of the poor men;
such hints and notices are given us, I believe few that have made any and I expected to see him fall every moment, at which all the blood in my body
observations of things can deny; that they are certain discoveries of an invisible seemed to run chill in my veins.
world, and a converse of spirits, we cannot doubt; and if the tendency of them I wished heartily now for my Spaniard, and the savage that was gone with
seems to be to warn us of danger, why should we not suppose they are from him; or that I had any way to have come undiscovered within shot of them, that I
some friendly agent (whether supreme, or inferior and subordinate, is not the might have rescued the three men; for I saw no firearms they had among them;
question) and that they are given for our good? but it fell out to my mind another way.
The present question abundantly confirms me in the justice of this reasoning; After I had observed the outrageous usage of the three men by the insolent
for had I not been made cautious by this secret admonition, come it from whence seamen, I observed the fellows run scattering about the land, as if they wanted to
it will, I had been undone inevitably, and in a far worse condition than before, as see the country. I observed that the three other men had liberty to go also where
you will see presently. they pleased; but they sat down all three upon the ground, very pensive, and
I had not kept myself long in this posture but I saw the boat draw near the looked like men in despair.
shore, as if they looked for a creek to thrust in at for the convenience of landing; This put me in mind of the first time when I came on shore, and began to look
however, as they did not come quite far enough, they did not see the little inlet about me, how I gave myself over for lost, how wildly I looked round me, what
where I formerly landed my rafts, but ran their boat on shore upon the beach, at dreadful apprehensions I had, and how I lodged in the tree all night for fear of
about half a mile from me, which was very happy for me; for otherwise they being devoured by wild beasts.
would have landed just, as I may say, at my door, and would soon have beaten As I knew nothing that night of the supply I was to receive by the providential
me out of my castle and perhaps have plundered me of all I had. driving of the ship nearer the land by the storms and tide, by which I have since
When they were on shore, I was fully satisfied that they were Englishmen, at been so long nourished and supported; so these three poor desolate men knew
least most of them; one or two I thought were Dutch, but it did not prove so. nothing how certain of deliverance and supply they were, how near it was to
There were in all eleven men, whereof three of them, I found, were unarmed, them, and how effectually and really they were in a condition of safety at the
and, as I thought, bound; and when the first four or five of them were jumped on same time that they thought themselves lost and their case desperate.
shore, they took those three out of the boat as prisoners. One of the three I could So little do we see before us in the world, and so much reason have we to
perceive using the most passionate gestures of entreaty, affliction, and despair, depend cheerfully upon the great Maker of the world, that He does not leave His
even to a kind of extravagance; the other two, I could perceive, lifted up their creatures so absolutely destitute but that in the worst circumstances they have
hands sometimes, and appeared concerned indeed, but not to such a degree as always something to be thankful for, and sometimes are nearer their deliverance
the first. than they imagine; nay, are even brought to their deliverance by the means by
I was perfectly confounded at the sight, and knew not what the meaning of it which they seem to be brought to their destruction.
should be. Friday called out to me in English, as well as he could, "O master! It was just at the top of high water when these people came on shore, and
you see English mans eat prisoner as well as savage mans.’’ ‘‘Why,’’ says I, while partly they stood parleying with the prisoners they brought, and partly
‘‘Friday, do you think they are a-going to eat them then?’’ ‘‘Yes,’’ says Friday, while they rambled about to see what kind of a place they were in, they had
‘‘they will eat them.’’ ‘‘No, no,’’ says I, ‘‘Friday, I am afraid they will murder carelessly stayed till the tide was spent, and the water was ebbed considerably
them, indeed, but you may be sure they will not eat them.’’ away, leaving their boat aground.
They had left two men in the boat, who, as I found afterwards, having drunk a They started up at the noise, but were ten times more confounded when they
little too much brandy, fell asleep; however, one of them waking sooner than the saw me, and the uncouth figure that I made. They made no answer at all, but I
other, and finding the boat too fast aground for him to stir it, holloed for the rest, thought I perceived them just going to fly from me, when I spoke to them in
who were straggling about, upon which they all soon came to the boat; but it was English: ‘‘Gentlemen,’’ said I, ‘‘do not be surprised at me; perhaps you may have
past all their strength to launch her, the boat being very heavy, and the shore on a friend near you, when you did not expect it.’’ ‘‘He must be sent directly from
that side being a soft oozy sand, almost like a quicksand. Heaven then,’’ said one of them very gravely to me, and pulling off his hat at the
In this condition, like true seamen, who are perhaps the least of all mankind same time to me, ‘‘for our condition is past the help of man.’’ ‘‘All help is from
given to forethought, they gave it over, and away they strolled about the country Heaven, sir,’’ said I. ‘‘But can you put a stranger in the way how to help you, for
again; and I heard one of them say aloud to another (calling them off from the you seem to me to be in some great distress? I saw you when you landed, and
boat), ‘‘Why, let her alone, Jack, can’t ye? she’ll float next tide’’; by which I was when you seemed to make applications to the brutes that came with you, I saw
fully confirmed in the main inquiry of what countrymen they were. one of them lift up his sword to kill you.’’
All this while I kept myself very close, not once daring to stir out of my castle, The poor man, with tears running down his face, and trembling, looking like
any farther than to my place of observation near the top of the hill; and very glad one astonished, returned, ‘‘Am I talking to God, or man? Is it a real man, or an
I was to think how well it was fortified. I knew it was no less than ten hours angel!’’ ‘‘Be in no fear about that, sir,’’ said I; ‘‘if God had sent an angel to
before the boat could be on float again, and by that time it would be dark, and I relieve you, he would have come better clothed, and armed after another manner
might be at more liberty to see their motions, and to hear their discourse, if they than you see me in; pray lay aside your fears; I am a man, an Englishman, and
had any. disposed to assist you, you see; I have one servant only; we have arms and
In the meantime I fitted myself up for a battle, as before; though with more ammunition; tell us freely, can we serve you?—What is your case?’’
caution, knowing I had to do with another kind of enemy than I had at first. I ‘‘Our case,’’ said he, ‘‘sir, is too long to tell you, while our murderers are so
ordered Friday also, whom I had made an excellent marksman with his gun, to near; but in short, sir, I was commander of that ship; my men have mutinied
load himself with arms. I took myself two fowling pieces, and I gave him three against me, they have been hardly prevailed on not to murder me, and at last
muskets; my figure, indeed, was very fierce; I had my formidable goatskin coat have set me on shore in this desolate place, with these two men with me, one my
on, with the great cap I have mentioned, a naked sword by my side, two pistols mate, the other a passenger, where we expected to perish, believing the place to
in my belt, and a gun upon each shoulder. be uninhabited, and know not yet what to think of it.’’
It was my design, as I said above, not to have made any attempt till it was ‘‘Where are those brutes, your enemies?’’ said I. ‘‘Do you know where they
dark. But about two o’clock, being the heat of the day, I found that, in short, they are gone?’’ ‘‘There they lie, sir,’’ said he, pointing to a thicket of trees; ‘‘my heart
were all gone straggling into the woods and, as I thought, were laid down to trembles for fear they have seen us and heard you speak; if they have, they will
sleep. The three poor distressed men, too anxious for their condition to get any certainly murder us all.’’
sleep, were, however, set down under the shelter of a great tree, at about a ‘‘Have they any firearms?’’ said I. He answered they had only two pieces, and
quarter of a mile from me, and, as I thought, out of sight of any of the rest. one which they left in the boat. ‘‘Well then,’’ said I, ‘‘leave the rest to me; I see
Upon this I resolved to discover myself to them and learn something of their they are all asleep, it is an easy thing to kill them all; but shall we rather take
condition. Immediately I marched in the figure as above, my man Friday at a them prisoners?’’ He told me there were two desperate villains among them that
good distance behind me, as formidable for his arms as I, but not making quite it was scarce safe to show any mercy to; but if they were secured, he believed all
so staring a spectre-like figure as I did. the rest would return to their duty. I asked him which they were. He told me he
I came as near them undiscovered as I could, and then before any of them saw could not at that distance describe them, but he would obey my orders in
me, I called aloud to them in Spanish, ‘‘What are ye, gentlemen?’’ anything I would direct. ‘‘Well,’’ says I, ‘‘let us retreat out of their view or
hearing, lest they awake, and we will resolve further’’; so they willingly went fault.’’
back with me, till the woods covered us from them. Animated with this, he took the musket I had given him in his hand, and a
‘‘Look you, sir,’’ said I, ‘‘if I venture upon your deliverance, are you willing to pistol in his belt, and his two comrades with him, with each man a piece in his
make two conditions with me?’’ He anticipated my proposals by telling me that hand. The two men who were with him, going first, made some noise, at which
both he and the ship, if recovered, should be wholly directed and commanded by one of the seamen, who was awake, turned about, and seeing them coming cried
me in everything; and if the ship was not recovered, he would live and die with out to the rest; but it was too late then, for the moment he cried out they fired; I
me in what part of the world soever I would send him; and the two other men mean the two men, the captain wisely reserving his own piece. They had so well
said the same. aimed their shot at the men they knew that one of them was killed on the spot,
‘‘Well,’’ says I, ‘‘my conditions are but two. 1. That while you stay on this and the other very much wounded; but not being dead, he started up upon his
island with me, you will not pretend to any authority here; and if I put arms into feet, and called eagerly for help to the other; but the captain, stepping to him,
your hands, you will upon all occasions give them up to me and do no prejudice told him ’twas too late to cry for help, he should call upon God to forgive his
to me or mine upon this island, and in the meantime, be governed by my orders. villainy, and with that word knocked him down with the stock of his musket, so
‘‘2. That if the ship is or may be recovered, you will carry me and my man to that he never spoke more. There were three more in the company, and one of
England passage-free.’’ them was also slightly wounded. By this time I was come; and when they saw
their danger, and that it was in vain to resist, they begged for mercy. The captain
He gave me all the assurances that the invention and faith of man could devise
told them he would spare their lives, if they would give him any assurance of
that he would comply with these most reasonable demands, and besides would
their abhorrence of the treachery they had been guilty of, and would swear to be
owe his life to me and acknowledge it upon all occasions as long as he lived.
faithful to him in recovering the ship and afterwards in carrying her back to
‘‘Well then,’’ said I, ‘‘here are three muskets for you, with powder and ball; Jamaica, from whence they came. They gave him all the protestations of their
tell me next what you think is proper to be done.’’ He showed all the testimony sincerity that could be desired, and he was willing to believe them, and spare
of his gratitude that he was able, but offered to be wholly guided by me. I told their lives, which I was not against, only I obliged him to keep them bound hand
him I thought it was hard venturing anything; but the best method I could think and foot while they were upon the island.
of was to fire upon them at once, as they lay; and if any was not killed at the first
While this was doing, I sent Friday with the captain’s mate to the boat, with
volley, and offered to submit, we might save them, and so put it wholly upon
orders to secure her and bring away the oars and sail, which they did; and by and
God’s Providence to direct the shot.
by, three straggling men, that were (happily for them) parted from the rest, came
He said very modestly that he was loath to kill them, if he could help it, but back upon hearing the guns fired, and seeing their captain, who before was their
that those two were incorrigible villains and had been the authors of all the prisoner, now their conqueror, they submitted to be bound also; and so our
mutiny in the ship, and if they escaped, we should be undone still; for they victory was complete.
would go on board and bring the whole ship’s company, and destroy us all.
It now remained that the captain and I should inquire into one another’s
‘‘Well then,’’ says I, ‘‘necessity legitimates my advice; for it is the only way to
circumstances. I began first, and told him my whole history, which he heard with
save our lives.’’ However, seeing him still cautious of shedding blood, I told him
an attention even to amazement; and particularly at the wonderful manner of my
they should go themselves, and manage as they found convenient.
being furnished with provisions and ammunition; and, indeed, as my story is a
In the middle of this discourse we heard some of them awake, and soon after, whole collection of wonders, it affected him deeply; but when he reflected from
we saw two of them on their feet. I asked him if either of them were of the men thence upon himself, and how I seemed to have been preserved there on purpose
who he had said were the heads of the mutiny. He said, ‘‘No.’’ ‘‘Well then,’’ said to save his life, the tears ran down his face, and he could not speak a word more.
I, ‘‘you may let them escape; and Providence seems to have wakened them on
After this communication was at an end, I carried him and his two men into
purpose to save themselves. Now,’’ says I, ‘‘if the rest escape you, it is your
my apartment, leading them in just where I came out, viz., at the top of the of the boat were carried away before, as above), we knocked a great hole in her
house, where I refreshed them with such provisions as I had, and showed them bottom, that if they had come strong enough to master us, yet they could not
all the contrivances I had made during my long, long inhabiting that place. carry off the boat.
All I showed them, all I said to them, was perfectly amazing; but above all, Indeed, it was not much in my thoughts that we could be able to recover the
the captain admired my fortification, and how perfectly I had concealed my ship; but my view was that if they went away without the boat, I did not much
retreat with a grove of trees, which having been now planted near twenty years, question to make her fit again to carry us away to the Leeward Islands and call
and the trees growing much faster than in England, was become a little wood, upon our friends, the Spaniards, in my way, for I had them still in my thoughts.
and so thick, that it was unpassable in any part of it, but at that one side, where I While we were thus preparing our designs, and had first by main strength
had reserved my little winding passage into it. I told him this was my castle and heaved the boat up upon the beach, so high that the tide would not fleet her off at
my residence, but that I had a seat in the country, as most princes have, whither I high-water mark, and besides had broke a hole in her bottom too big to be
could retreat upon occasion, and I would show him that too another time; but at quickly stopped, and were sat down musing what we should do, we heard the
present our business was to consider how to recover the ship. He agreed with me ship fire a gun and saw her make a waft with her ancient as a signal for the boat
as to that; but told me he was perfectly at a loss what measures to take; for that to come on board; but no boat stirred; and they fired several times, making other
there were still six-and-twenty hands on board, who, having entered into a signals for the boat.
cursed conspiracy, by which they had all forfeited their lives to the law, would be At last, when all their signals and firings proved fruitless, and they found the
hardened in it now by desperation; and would carry it on, knowing that if they boat did not stir, we saw them, by the help of my glasses, hoist another boat out,
were reduced, they should be brought to the gallows as soon as they came to and row towards the shore; and we found, as they approached, that there was no
England or to any of the English colonies; and that therefore there would be no less than ten men in her, and that they had firearms with them.
attacking them with so small a number as we were.
As the ship lay almost two leagues from the shore, we had a full view of them
I mused for some time upon what he said, and found it was a very rational as they came, and a plain sight of the men, even of their faces, because the tide
conclusion; and that therefore something was to be resolved on very speedily, as having set them a little to the east of the other boat, they rowed up under shore,
well to draw the men on board into some snare for their surprise, as to prevent to come to the same place where the other had landed, and where the boat lay.
their landing upon us, and destroying us; upon this it presently occurred to me
By this means, I say, we had a full view of them and the captain knew the
that in a little while the ship’s crew, wondering what was become of their
persons and characters of all the men in the boat, of whom he said that there
comrades and of the boat, would certainly come on shore in their other boat to
were three very honest fellows, who, he was sure, were led into this conspiracy
see for them, and that then perhaps they might come armed and be too strong for
by the rest, being overpowered and frighted.
us; this he allowed was rational.
But that as for the boatswain, who, it seems, was the chief officer among
Upon this, I told him the first thing we had to do was to stave the boat, which
them, and all the rest, they were as outrageous as any of the ship’s crew, and
lay upon the beach, so that they might not carry her off; and taking everything
were, no doubt, made desperate in their new enterprise; and terribly
out of her, leave her so far useless as not to be fit to swim; accordingly we went
apprehensive he was that they would be too powerful for us.
on board, took the arms which were left on board out of her, and whatever else
we found there, which was a bottle of brandy, and another of rum, a few biscuit I smiled at him and told him that men in our circumstances were past the
cakes, a horn of powder, and a great lump of sugar in a piece of canvas; the operation of fear. That seeing almost every condition that could be was better
sugar was five or six pounds; all which was very welcome to me, especially the than that which we were supposed to be in, we ought to expect that the
brandy and sugar, of which I had had none left for many years. consequence, whether death or life, would be sure to be a deliverance. I asked
him what he thought of the circumstances of my life, and whether a deliverance
When we had carried all these things on shore (the oars, mast, sail, and rudder
were not worth venturing for. ‘‘And where, sir,’’ said I, ‘‘is your belief of my
being preserved here on purpose to save your life, which elevated you a little was easy to see that they were under a great surprise to find her stripped, as
while ago? For my part,’’ said I, ‘‘there seems to be but one thing amiss in all the above, of all that was in her, and a great hole in her bottom.
prospects of it.’’ ‘‘What’s that?’’ says he. ‘‘Why,’’ said I, ‘‘ ’tis that, as you say, After they had mused a while upon this, they set up two or three great shouts,
there are three or four honest fellows among them, which should be spared; had holloing with all their might, to try if they could make their companions hear;
they been all of the wicked part of the crew, I should have thought God’s but all was to no purpose. Then they came all close in a ring, and fired a volley
Providence had signaled them out to deliver them into your hands; for depend of their small arms, which indeed we heard, and the echoes made the woods
upon it, every man of them that comes ashore are our own and shall die or live, ring; but it was all one; those in the cave we were sure could not hear, and those
as they behave to us.’’ in our keeping, though they heard it well enough, yet durst give no answer to
As I spoke this with a raised voice and cheerful countenance, I found it greatly them.
encouraged him; so we set vigorously to our business. We had, upon the first They were so astonished at the surprise of this that, as they told us afterwards,
appearance of the boat’s coming from the ship, considered of separating our they resolved to go all on board again, to their ship, and let them know there that
prisoners, and had indeed secured them effectually. the men were all murdered and the longboat staved; accordingly, they
Two of them, of whom the captain was less assured than ordinary, I sent with immediately launched their boat again, and got all of them on board.
Friday and one of the three (delivered men) to my cave, where they were remote The captain was terribly amazed and even confounded at this, believing they
enough, and out of danger of being heard or discovered, or of finding their way would go on board the ship again and set sail, giving their comrades for lost, and
out of the woods, if they could have delivered themselves. Here they left them so he should still lose the ship, which he was in hopes we should have recovered;
bound, but gave them provisions, and promised them, if they continue there but he was quickly as much frighted the other way.
quietly, to give them their liberty in a day or two; but that if they attempted their They had not been long put off with the boat but we perceived them all
escape, they should be put to death without mercy. They promised faithfully to coming on shore again; but with this new measure in their conduct, which it
bear their confinement with patience, and were very thankful that they had such seems they consulted together upon, viz., to leave three men in the boat, and the
good usage as to have provisions and a light left them; for Friday gave them rest to go on shore, and go up into the country to look for their fellows.
candles (such as we made ourselves) for their comfort; and they did not know
This was a great disappointment to us; for now we were at a loss what to do;
but that he stood sentinel over them at the entrance.
for our seizing those seven men on shore would be no advantage to us, if we let
The other prisoners had better usage; two of them were kept pinioned indeed, the boat escape; because they would then row away to the ship, and then the rest
because the captain was not free to trust them; but the other two were taken into of them would be sure to weigh and set sail, and so our recovering the ship
my service upon their captain’s recommendation and upon their solemnly would be lost.
engaging to live and die with us; so with them and the three honest men we were
However, we had no remedy but to wait and see what the issue of things might
seven men, well armed; and I made no doubt we should be able to deal well
present; the seven men came on shore, and the three who remained in the boat
enough with the ten that were a-coming, considering that the captain had said
put her off to a good distance from the shore, and came to an anchor to wait for
there were three or four honest men among them also.
them; so that it was impossible for us to come at them in the boat.
As soon as they got to the place where their other boat lay, they ran their boat
Those that came on shore kept close together, marching towards the top of the
into the beach, and came all on shore, hauling the boat up after them, which I
little hill under which my habitation lay; and we could see them plainly, though
was glad to see; for I was afraid they would rather have left the boat at an
they could not perceive us. We could have been very glad they would have come
anchor, some distance from the shore, with some hands in her to guard her; and
nearer to us, so that we might have fired at them, or that they would have gone
so we should not be able to seize the boat.
farther off, that we might have come abroad.
Being on shore, the first thing they did, they ran all to their other boat; and it
But when they were come to the brow of the hill, where they could see a great
way into the valleys and woods, which lay towards the northeast part, and where when the other holloed, to draw them as far into the island and among the woods
the island lay lowest, they shouted and holloed till they were weary; and not as possible and then wheel about again to me, by such ways as I directed them.
caring, it seems, to venture far from the shore, nor far from one another, they sat They were just going into the boat, when Friday and the mate holloed, and
down together under a tree, to consider of it. Had they thought fit to have gone to they presently heard them, and answering, ran along the shore westward towards
sleep there, as the other party of them had done, they had done the job for us; but the voice they heard, when they were presently stopped by the creek, where, the
they were too full of apprehensions of danger to venture to go to sleep, though water being up, they could not get over, and called for the boat to come up and
they could not tell what the danger was they had to fear neither. set them over, as indeed I expected.
The captain made a very just proposal to me, upon this consultation of theirs, When they had set themselves over, I observed that the boat being gone up a
viz., that perhaps they would all fire a volley again, to endeavour to make their good way into the creek, and, as it were, in a harbour within the land, they took
fellows hear, and that we should all sally upon them, just at the juncture when one of the three men out of her to go along with them, and left only two in the
their pieces were all discharged, and they would certainly yield, and we should boat, having fastened her to the stump of a little tree on the shore.
have them without bloodshed. I liked the proposal, provided it was done while This was what I wished for, and immediately leaving Friday and the captain’s
we were near enough to come up to them before they could load their pieces mate to their business, I took the rest with me, and crossing the creek out of their
again. sight, we surprised the two men before they were aware, one of them lying on
But this event did not happen, and we lay still a long time, very irresolute shore, and the other being in the boat; the fellow on shore was between sleeping
what course to take; at length I told them there would be nothing to be done in and waking, and going to start up; the captain, who was foremost, ran in upon
my opinion till night; and then, if they did not return to the boat, perhaps we him, and knocked him down, and then called out to him in the boat to yield, or
might find a way to get between them and the shore, and so might use some he was a dead man.
stratagem with them in the boat, to get them on shore. There needed very few arguments to persuade a single man to yield, when he
We waited a great while, though very impatient for their removing; and were saw five men upon him and his comrade knocked down; besides, this was, it
very uneasy, when, after long consultations, we saw them start all up and march seems, one of the three who were not so hearty in the mutiny as the rest of the
down towards the sea. It seems they had such dreadful apprehensions upon them crew, and therefore was easily persuaded, not only to yield, but afterwards to
of the danger of the place that they resolved to go on board the ship again, give join very sincerely with us.
their companions over for lost, and so go on with their intended voyage with the In the meantime, Friday and the captain’s mate so well managed their business
ship. with the rest that they drew them by holloing and answering from one hill to
As soon as I perceived them go towards the shore, I imagined it to be as it another, and from one wood to another, till they not only heartily tired them but
really was, that they had given over their search, and were for going back again; left them, where they were very sure they could not reach back to the boat before
and the captain, as soon as I told him my thoughts, was ready to sink at the it was dark; and indeed they were heartily tired themselves also by the time they
apprehensions of it; but I presently thought of a stratagem to fetch them back came back to us.
again, and which answered my end to a tittle. We had nothing now to do but to watch for them in the dark and to fall upon
I ordered Friday and the captain’s mate to go over the little creek westward, them, so as to make sure work with them.
towards the place where the savages came on shore when Friday was rescued; It was several hours after Friday came back to me before they came back to
and as soon as they came to a little rising ground, at about half a mile’s distance, their boat; and we could hear the foremost of them long before they came quite
I bade them hollo as loud as they could and wait till they found the seamen heard up, calling to those behind to come along, and could also hear them answer and
them; that as soon as ever they heard the seamen answer them, they should complain how lame and tired they were and not able to come any faster, which
return it again, and then keeping out of sight, take a round, always answering was very welcome news to us.
At length they came up to the boat; but ’tis impossible to express their call to them by name, to try if I could bring them to a parley and so might
confusion, when they found the boat fast aground in the creek, the tide ebbed perhaps reduce them to terms, which fell out just as we desired. For indeed it
out, and their two men gone. We could hear them call to one another in a most was easy to think, as their condition then was, they would be very willing to
lamentable manner, telling one another they were gotten into an enchanted capitulate; so he calls out as loud as he could to one of them, ‘‘Tom Smith! Tom
island; that either there were inhabitants in it, and they should all be murdered, Smith!’’ Tom Smith answered immediately, ‘‘Who’s that? Robinson?’’ for it
or else there were devils and spirits in it, and they should be all carried away and seems he knew his voice. T’ other answered, ‘‘Ay, ay; for God’s sake, Tom
devoured. Smith, throw down your arms and yield, or you are all dead men this moment.’’
They holloed again, and called their two comrades by their names a great ‘‘Who must we yield to? Where are they?’’ says Smith again. ‘‘Here they are,’’
many times, but no answer. After some time, we could see them, by the little says he; ‘‘here’s our captain, and fifty men with him, have been hunting you this
light there was, run about, wringing their hands like men in despair; and that two hours; the boatswain is killed, Will Frye is wounded, and I am a prisoner;
sometimes they would go and sit down in the boat to rest themselves, then come and if you do not yield, you are all lost.’’
ashore again, and walk about again, and so the same thing over again. ‘‘Will they give us quarter then,’’ says Tom Smith, ‘‘and we will yield?’’ ‘‘I’ll
My men would fain have me give them leave to fall upon them at once in the go and ask, if you promise to yield,’’ says Robinson; so he asked the captain, and
dark; but I was willing to take them at some advantage, so to spare them, and kill the captain then calls himself out, ‘‘You, Smith, you know my voice. If you lay
as few of them as I could; and especially I was unwilling to hazard the killing down your arms immediately and submit, you shall have your lives, all but Will
any of our own men, knowing the other were very well armed. I resolved to wait Atkins.’’
to see if they did not separate; and therefore to make sure of them, I drew my Upon this Will Atkins cried out, ‘‘For God’s sake, Captain, give me quarter;
ambuscade nearer, and ordered Friday and the captain to creep upon their hands what have I done? They have been all as bad as I’’; which, by the way, was not
and feet, as close to the ground as they could, that they might not be discovered, true neither; for it seems this Will Atkins was the first man that laid hold of the
and get as near them as they could possibly before they offered to fire. captain, when they first mutinied, and used him barbarously, in tying his hands,
They had not been long in that posture but that the boatswain, who was the and giving him injurious language. However, the captain told him he must lay
principal ringleader of the mutiny, and had now shown himself the most dejected down his arms at discretion, and trust to the governor’s mercy; by which he
and dispirited of all the rest, came walking towards them, with two more of their meant me, for they all called me governor.
crew; the captain was so eager, as having this principal rogue so much in his In a word, they all laid down their arms and begged their lives; and I sent the
power, that he could hardly have patience to let him come so near as to be sure man that had parleyed with them and two more, who bound them all; and then
of him; for they only heard his tongue before. But when they came nearer, the my great army of fifty men, which, particularly with those three, were all but
captain and Friday, starting up on their feet, let fly at them. eight, came up and seized upon them all and upon their boat, only that I kept
The boatswain was killed upon the spot; the next man was shot into the body, myself and one more out of sight, for reasons of state.
and fell just by him, though he did not die till an hour or two after; and the third Our next work was to repair the boat and to think of seizing the ship; and as
ran for it. for the captain, now he had leisure to parley with them, he expostulated with
At the noise of the fire, I immediately advanced with my whole army, which them upon the villainy of their practices with him, and at length upon the further
was now eight men, viz., myself generalissimo, Friday my lieutenant-general, wickedness of their design, and how certainly it must bring them to misery and
the captain and his two men, and the three prisoners of war, whom we had distress in the end, and perhaps to the gallows.
trusted with arms. They all appeared very penitent and begged hard for their lives; as for that, he
We came upon them indeed in the dark, so that they could not see our told them they were none of his prisoners, but the commander’s of the island;
numbers; and I made the man they had left in the boat, who was now one of us, that they thought they had set him on shore in a barren uninhabited island, but it
had pleased God so to direct them that the island was inhabited, and that the
governor was an Englishman; that he might hang them all there, if he pleased; We Seize the Ship
but as he had given them all quarter, he supposed he would send them to
IT NOW occurred to me that the time of our deliverance was come, and that it
England, to be dealt with there as justice required, except Atkins, who he was would be a most easy thing to bring these fellows in to be hearty in getting
commanded by the governor to advise to prepare for death; for that he would be possession of the ship; so I retired in the dark from them, that they might not see
hanged in the morning. what kind of a governor they had, and called the captain to me; when I called, as
Though this was all a fiction of his own, yet it had its desired effect; Atkins at a good distance, one of the men was ordered to speak again and say to the
fell upon his knees to beg the captain to intercede with the governor for his life; captain, ‘‘Captain, the commander calls for you’’; and presently the captain
and all the rest begged of him, for God’s sake, that they might not be sent to replied, ‘‘Tell his excellency, I am just a-coming.’’ This more perfectly amused
England. them, and they all believed that the commander was just by with his fifty men.
Upon the captain’s coming to me, I told him my project for seizing the ship,
which he liked of wonderfully well, and resolved to put it in execution the next
morning.
But in order to execute it with more art, and security of success, I told him we
must divide the prisoners, and that he should go and take Atkins and two more of
the worst of them, and send them pinioned to the cave where the others lay. This
was committed to Friday and the two men who came on shore with the captain.
They conveyed them to the cave, as to a prison; and it was indeed a dismal
place, especially to men in their condition.
The other I ordered to my bower, as I called it, of which I have given a full
description; and as it was fenced in, and they pinioned, the place was secure
enough, considering they were upon their behaviour.
To these in the morning I sent the captain, who was to enter into a parley with
them, in a word, to try them, and tell me, whether he thought they might be
trusted or no, to go on board and surprise the ship. He talked to them of the
injury done him, of the condition they were brought to; and that though the
governor had given them quarter for their lives, as to the present action, yet that
if they were sent to England, they would all be hanged in chains, to be sure; but
that if they would join in so just an attempt as to recover the ship, he would have
the governor’s engagement for their pardon.
Anyone may guess how readily such a proposal would be accepted by men in
their condition; they fell down on their knees to the captain and promised with
the deepest imprecations that they would be faithful to him to the last drop, and
that they should owe their lives to him and would go with him all over the world;
that they would own him for a father to them as long as they lived.
‘‘Well,’’ says the captain, ‘‘I must go and tell the governor what you say, and stop the breach of one, and man them. He made his passenger captain of one,
see what I can do to bring him to consent to it.’’ So he brought me an account of with four other men; and himself and his mate and five more went in the other.
the temper he found them in; and that he verily believed they would be faithful. And they contrived their business very well, for they came up to the ship about
However, that we might be very secure, I told him he should go back again midnight. As soon as they came within call of the ship, he made Robinson hail
and choose out five of them, and tell them they might see that he did not want9 them and tell them they had brought off the men and the boat, but that it was a
men; that he would take out those five to be his assistants, and that the governor long time before they had found them, and the like; holding them in a chat till
would keep the other two and the three that were sent prisoners to the castle (my they came to the ship’s side; when the captain and the mate, entering first with
cave) as hostages, for the fidelity of those five; and that if they proved unfaithful their arms, immediately knocked down the second mate and carpenter with the
in the execution, the five hostages should be hanged in chains alive upon the butt-end of their muskets. Being very faithfully seconded by their men, they
shore. secured all the rest that were upon the main and quarter decks and began to
fasten the hatches to keep them down who were below, when the other boat and
This looked severe, and convinced them that the governor was in earnest;
their men, entering at the fore chains, secured the forecastle of the ship and the
however, they had no way left them but to accept it; and it was now the business
scuttle which went down into the cook-room, making three men they found there
of the prisoners, as much as of the captain, to persuade the other five to do their
prisoners.
duty.
When this was done, and all safe upon deck, the captain ordered the mate with
Our strength was now thus ordered for the expedition. 1. The captain, his
three men to break into the roundhouse, where the new rebel captain lay, and
mate, and passenger. 2. Then the two prisoners of the first gang, to whom,
having taken the alarm, was gotten up, and with two men and a boy had gotten
having their characters from the captain, I had given their liberty,and trusted
firearms in their hands; and when the mate with a crow split open the door, the
them with arms. 3. The other two, whom I had kept till now in my bower,
new captain and his men fired boldly among them and wounded the mate with a
pinioned; but, upon the captain’s motion, had now released. 4. These five
musket ball, which broke his arm, and wounded two more of the men, but killed
released at last. So that they were twelve in all, besides five we kept prisoners in
nobody.
the cave, and the two hostages.
The mate, calling for help, rushed, however, into the roundhouse, wounded as
I asked the captain if he was willing to venture with these hands on board the
he was, and with his pistol shot the new captain through the head, the bullet
ship; for as for me and my man Friday, I did not think it was proper for us to stir,
entering at his mouth, and came out again behind one of his ears, so that he
having seven men left behind, and it was employment enough for us to keep
never spoke a word; upon which the rest yielded, and the ship was taken
them asunder, and supply them with victuals.
effectually, without any more lives lost.
As to the five in the cave, I resolved to keep them fast; but Friday went in
As soon as the ship was thus secured, the captain ordered seven guns to be
twice a day to them, to supply them with necessaries; and I made the other two
fired, which was the signal agreed upon with me, to give me notice of his
carry provisions to a certain distance, where Friday was to take it.
success, which you may be sure I was very glad to hear, having sat watching
When I showed myself to the two hostages, it was with the captain, who told upon the shore for it till near two of the clock in the morning.
them I was the person the governor had ordered to look after them, and that it
Having thus heard the signal plainly, I laid me down; and it having been a day
was the governor’s pleasure they should not stir anywhere but by my direction;
of great fatigue to me, I slept very sound, till I was something surprised with the
that if they did, they should be fetched into the castle, and be laid in irons; so
noise of a gun; and presently starting up, I heard a man call me by the name of
that as we never suffered them to see me as governor, so I now appeared as
‘‘Governor, Governor,’’ and presently I knew the captain’s voice, when, climbing
another person, and spoke of the governor, the garrison, the castle, and the like,
up to the top of the hill, there he stood, and pointing to the ship, he embraced me
upon all occasions.
in his arms. ‘‘My dear friend and deliverer, ’’ says he, ‘‘there’s your ship, for she
The captain now had no difficulty before him, but to furnish his two boats,
is all yours, and so are we and all that belong to her.’’ I cast my eyes to the ship, along with them, but as if I had been to dwell upon the island still and they were
and there she rode within little more than half a mile of the shore; for they had to go without me.
weighed her anchor as soon as they were masters of her; and the weather being First, he had brought me a case of bottles full of excellent cordial waters, six
fair, had brought her to an anchor just against the mouth of the little creek; and large bottles of Madeira wine; the bottles held two quarts apiece; two pound of
the tide being up, the captain had brought the pinnace in near the place where I excellent good tobacco, twelve good pieces of the ship’s beef, and six pieces of
first landed my rafts, and so landed just at my door. pork, with a bag of peas, and about a hundredweight of biscuit.
I was at first ready to sink down with the surprise. For I saw my deliverance He brought me also a box of sugar, a box of flour, a bag full of lemons, and
indeed visibly put into my hands, all things easy, and a large ship just ready to two bottles of lime juice, and abundance of other things. But besides these, and
carry me away whither I pleased to go. At first, for some time, I was not able to what was a thousand times more useful to me, he brought me six clean new
answer him one word; but as he had taken me in his arms, I held fast by him or I shirts, six very good neckcloths, two pair of gloves, one pair of shoes, a hat, and
should have fallen to the ground. one pair of stockings, and a very good suit of clothes of his own, which had been
He perceived the surprise, and immediately pulls a bottle out of his pocket, worn but very little. In a word, he clothed me from head to foot.
and gave me a dram of cordial, which he had brought on purpose for me; after I It was a very kind and agreeable present, as anyone may imagine, to one in
drank it, I sat down upon the ground; and though it brought me to myself, yet it my circumstances. But never was anything in the world of that kind so
was a good while before I could speak a word to him. unpleasant, awkward, and uneasy as it was to me to wear such clothes at their
All this while the poor man was in as great an ecstasy as I, only not under any first putting on.
surprise, as I was; and he said a thousand kind tender things to me, to compose After these ceremonies passed, and after all his good things were brought into
me and bring me to myself; but such was the flood of joy in my breast that it put my little apartment, we began to consult what was to be done with the prisoners
all my spirits into confusion; at last it broke out into tears, and in a little while we had; for it was worth considering whether we might venture to take them
after I recovered my speech. away with us or no, especially two of them, whom we knew to be incorrigible
Then I took my turn and embraced him as my deliverer, and we rejoiced and refractory to the last degree; and the captain said he knew they were such
together. I told him I looked upon him as a man sent from Heaven to deliver me, rogues that there was no obliging them, and if he did carry them away, it must be
and that the whole transaction seemed to be a chain of wonders; that such things in irons, as malefactors, to be delivered over to justice at the first English colony
as these were the testimonies we had of a secret hand of Providence governing he could come at; and I found that the captain himself was very anxious about it.
the world, and an evidence that the eyes of an infinite Power could search into Upon this, I told him that if he desired it, I durst undertake to bring the two
the remotest corner of the world, and send help to the miserable whenever He men he spoke of to make it their own request that he should leave them upon the
pleased. island. ‘‘I should be very glad of that,’’ says the captain, ‘‘with all my heart.’’
I forgot not to lift up my heart in thankfulness to Heaven; and what heart ‘‘Well,’’ says I, ‘‘I will send for them up, and talk with them for you’’; so I
could forbear to bless Him, who had not only in a miraculous manner provided caused Friday and the two hostages, for they were now discharged, their
for one in such a wilderness and in such a desolate condition, but from whom comrades having performed their promise; I say, I caused them to go to the cave
every deliverance must always be acknowledged to proceed! and bring up the five men, pinioned as they were, to the bower, and keep them
When we had talked a while, the captain told me he had brought me some there till I came.
little refreshment, such as the ship afforded, and such as the wretches that had After some time I came thither dressed in my new habit, and now I was called
been so long his masters had not plundered him of. Upon this he called aloud to governor again; being all met, and the captain with me, I caused the men to be
the boat, and bade his men bring the things ashore that were for the governor; brought before me, and I told them I had had a full account of their villainous
and indeed it was a present, as if I had been one, not that was to be carried away behaviour to the captain, and how they had run away with the ship and were
preparing to commit further robberies, but that Providence had ensnared them in for me; ordering him in the meantime to cause the new captain who was killed to
their own ways and that they were fallen into the pit which they had digged for be hanged at the yardarm, that these men might see him.
others. When the captain was gone, I sent for the men up to me to my apartment and
I let them know that by my direction the ship had been seized, that she lay entered seriously into discourse with them of their circumstances. I told them I
now in the road, and they might see by and by that their new captain had thought they had made a right choice; that if the captain carried them away, they
received the reward of his villainy; for that they might see him hanging at the would certainly be hanged. I showed them the new captain hanging at the
yardarm. yardarm of the ship, and told them they had nothing less to expect.
That as to them, I wanted to know what they had to say, why I should not When they had all declared their willingness to stay, I then told them I would
execute them as pirates taken in the fact, as by my commission they could not let them into the story of my living there, and put them into the way of making it
doubt I had authority to do. easy to them. Accordingly I gave them the whole history of the place and of my
One of them answered in the name of the rest that they had nothing to say but coming to it; showed them my fortifications, the way I made my bread, planted
this, that when they were taken, the captain promised them their lives, and they my corn, cured my grapes; and in a word, all that was necessary to make them
humbly implored my mercy. But I told them I knew not what mercy to show easy. I told them the story also of the sixteen Spaniards that were to be expected;
them; for, as for myself, I had resolved to quit the island with all my men, and for whom I left a letter, and made them promise to treat them in common with
had taken passage with the captain to go for England. And as for the captain, he themselves.
could not carry them to England other than as prisoners in irons, to be tried for I left them my firearms, viz., five muskets, three fowling pieces, and three
mutiny and running away with the ship; the consequence of which, they must swords. I had above a barrel and half of powder left; for after the first year or
needs know, would be the gallows; so that I could not tell which was best for two I used but little, and wasted none. I gave them a description of the way I
them, unless they had a mind to take their fate in the island; if they desired that, I managed the goats, and directions to milk and fatten them, and to make both
did not care, as I had liberty to leave it; I had some inclination to give them their butter and cheese.
lives, if they thought they could shift on shore. In a word, I gave them every part of my own story; and I told them I would
They seemed very thankful for it, said they would much rather venture to stay prevail with the captain to leave them two barrels of gunpowder more and some
there than to be carried to England to be hanged; so I left it on that issue. garden seeds, which I told them I would have been very glad of; also I gave
However, the captain seemed to make some difficulty of it, as if he durst not them the bag of peas which the captain had brought me to eat, and bade them be
leave them there. Upon this I seemed a little angry with the captain, and told him sure to sow and increase them.
that they were my prisoners, not his; and that seeing I had offered them so much Having done all this, I left them the next day and went on board the ship. We
favour, I would be as good as my word; and that if he did not think fit to consent prepared immediately to sail, but did not weigh that night. The next morning
to it, I would set them at liberty, as I found them; and if he did not like it, he early, two of the five men came swimming to the ship’s side, and making a most
might take them again if he could catch them. lamentable complaint of the other three, begged to be taken into the ship, for
Upon this they appeared very thankful, and I accordingly set them at liberty, God’s sake, for they should be murdered, and begged the captain to take them on
and bade them retire into the woods, to the place whence they came, and I would board, though he hanged them immediately.
leave them some firearms, some ammunition, and some directions how they Upon this the captain pretended to have no power without me; but after some
should live very well, if they thought fit. difficulty, and after their solemn promises of amendment, they were taken on
Upon this I prepared to go on board the ship, but told the captain that I would board, and were some time after soundly whipped and pickled; after which, they
stay that night to prepare my things, and desired him to go on board in the proved very honest and quiet fellows.
meantime, and keep all right in the ship, and send the boat on shore the next day Some time after this, the boat was ordered on shore, the tide being up, with the
things promised to the men, to which the captain, at my intercession, caused owners of the manner how I had saved the lives of the men and the ship, they
their chests and clothes to be added, which they took and were very thankful for; invited me to meet them, and some other merchants concerned, and all together
I also encouraged them by telling them that if it lay in my way to send any vessel made me a very handsome compliment upon the subject, and a present of almost
to take them in, I would not forget them. two hundred pounds sterling.
When I took leave of this island, I carried on board for relics the great But after making several reflections upon the circumstances of my life, and
goatskin cap I had made, my umbrella, and one of my parrots; also I forgot not how little way this would go towards settling me in the world, I resolved to go to
to take the money I formerly mentioned, which had lain by me so long useless Lisbon and see if I might not come by some information of the state of my
that it was grown rusty, or tarnished, and could hardly pass for silver, till it had plantation in Brazil, and of what was become of my partner, who I had reason to
been a little rubbed and handled; as also the money I found in the wreck of the suppose had some years now given me over for dead.
Spanish ship. With this view I took shipping for Lisbon, where I arrived in April following;
And thus I left the island, the 19th of December, as I found by the ship’s my man Friday accompanying me very honestly in all these ramblings, and
account, in the year 1686, after I had been upon it eight-and-twenty years, two proving a most faithful servant upon all occasions.
months, and nineteen days; being delivered from this second captivity the same
day of the month that I first made my escape in the barco-longo, from among the
Moors of Sallee.
In this vessel, after a long voyage, I arrived in England, the 11th of June, in
the year of 1687, having been thirty-and-five years absent.
When I came to England, I was as perfect a stranger to all the world as if I had
never been known there. My benefactor and faithful steward, whom I had left in
trust with my money, was alive, but had had great misfortunes in the world; was
become a widow the second time, and very low in the world. I made her easy as
to what she owed me, assuring her I would give her no trouble; but on the
contrary, in gratitude to her former care and faithfulness to me, I relieved her as
my little stock would afford, which at that time would indeed allow me to do but
little for her; but I assured her I would never forget her former kindness to me;
nor did I forget her, when I had sufficient to help her, as shall be observed in its
place.
I went down afterwards into Yorkshire; but my father was dead, and my
mother and all the family extinct, except that I found two sisters, and two of the
children of one of my brothers; and as I had been long ago given over for dead,
there had been no provision made for me; so that, in a word, I found nothing to
relieve or assist me; and that little money I had would not do much for me as to
settling in the world.
I met with one piece of gratitude indeed, which I did not expect; and this was
that the master of the ship, whom I had so happily delivered, and by the same
means saved the ship and cargo, having given a very handsome account to the
year; that as to my being restored to a quiet possession of it, there was no
I Find My Wealth All About Me question to be made of that, my partner being alive to witness my title, and my
name being also enrolled in the register of the country; also he told me that the
WHEN I came to Lisbon, I found out, by inquiry, and to my particular
survivors of my two trustees were very fair, honest people, and very wealthy;
satisfaction, my old friend the captain of the ship, who first took me up at sea off
and he believed I would not only have their assistance for putting me in
of the shore of Africa. He was now grown old and had left off the sea, having put
possession, but would find a very considerable sum of money in their hands for
his son, who was far from a young man, into his ship; and who still used the
my account, being the produce of the farm while their fathers held the trust, and
Brazil trade. The old man did not know me, and, indeed, I hardly knew him; but
before it was given up as above, which, as he remembered, was for about twelve
I soon brought him to my remembrance, and as soon brought myself to his
years.
remembrance, when I told him who I was.
I showed myself a little concerned and uneasy at this account and inquired of
After some passionate expressions of the old acquaintance, I inquired, you
the old captain how it came to pass that the trustees should thus dispose my
may be sure, after my plantation and my partner. The old man told me he had not
effects, when he knew that I had made my will and had made him, the
been in Brazil for about nine years; but that he could assure me that when he
Portuguese captain, my universal heir, etc.
came away my partner was living, but the trustees, whom I had joined with him
to take cognizance of my part, were both dead; that, however, he believed that I He told me that was true; but that as there was no proof of my being dead, he
would have a very good account of the improvement of the plantation; for that, could not act as executor until some certain account should come of my death;
upon the general belief of my being cast away and drowned, my trustees had and that besides, he was not willing to intermeddle with a thing so remote; that it
given in the account of the produce of my part of the plantation to the procurator was true he had registered my will and put in his claim; and could he have given
fiscal, who had appropriated it, in case I never came to claim it, one third to the any account of my being dead or alive, he would have acted by procuration, and
king, and two thirds to the monastery of St. Augustine, to be expended for the taken possession of the ingenio (so they called the sugar-house) and had given
benefit of the poor and for the conversion of the Indians to the Catholic faith; but his son, who was now at Brazil, order to do it.
that if I appeared, or anyone for me, to claim the inheritance, it should be ‘‘But,’’ says the old man, ‘‘I have one piece of news to tell you, which perhaps
restored; only that the improvement, or annual production, being distributed to may not be so acceptable to you as the rest, and that is, that believing you were
charitable uses, could not be restored; but he assured me that the steward of the lost, and all the world believing so also, your partner and trustees did offer to
king’s revenue (from lands) and the proviedore, or steward of the monastery, had account to me, in your name, for six or eight of the first years of profits, which I
taken great care all along that the incumbent, that is to say, my partner, gave received; but there being at the time,’’ says he, ‘‘great disbursements for
every year a faithful account of the produce, of which they received duly my increasing the works, building an ingenio, and buying slaves, it did not amount
moiety. to near so much as afterwards it produced. However,’’ says the old man, ‘‘I shall
I asked him if he knew to what height of improvement he had brought the give you a true account of what I have received in all, and how I have disposed
plantation, and whether he thought it might be worth looking after; or whether, of it.’’
on my going thither, I should meet with no obstruction to my possessing my just After a few days’ further conference with this ancient friend, he brought me an
right in the moiety. account of the six first years’ income of my plantation, signed by my partner and
He told me he could not tell exactly to what degree the plantation was the merchant trustees, being always delivered in goods, viz., tobacco in roll, and
improved; but this he knew, that my partner was growing exceeding rich upon sugar in chests, besides rum, molasses, etc., which is the consequence of a sugar
the enjoying but one half of it; and that, to the best of his remembrance, he had work; and I found by this account, that every year the income considerably
heard that the king’s third of my part, which was, it seems, granted away to some increased; but as above, the disbursement being large, the sum at first was small.
other monastery, or religious house, amounted to above two hundred moidores a However, the old man let me see that he was debtor to me 470 moidores of gold,
besides 60 chests of sugar, and 15 double rolls of tobacco, which were lost in his directed me to send it, with a letter of his writing, to a merchant of his
ship; he having been shipwrecked coming home to Lisbon, about eleven years acquaintance at the place, and then proposed my staying with him till an account
after my leaving the place. came of the return.
The good man then began to complain of his misfortunes, and how he had Never anything was more honourable than the proceedings upon this
been obliged to make use of my money to recover his losses, and buy him a procuration; for in less than seven months I received a large packet from the
share in a new ship. ‘‘However, my old friend,’’ says he, ‘‘you shall not want a survivors of my trustees, the merchants for whose account I went to sea, in
supply in your necessity; and as soon as my son returns, you shall be fully which were the following particular letters and papers enclosed.
satisfied.’’ First, there was the account current of the produce of my farm, or plantation,
Upon this, he pulls out an old pouch, and gives me 160 Portugal moidores in from the year when their fathers had balanced with my old Portugal captain,
gold; and giving me the writings of his title to the ship, which his son was gone being for six years; the balance appeared to be 1174 moidores in my favour.
to Brazil in, of which he was a quarter part owner, and his son another, he puts Secondly, there was the account of four years more, while they kept the effects
them both into my hands for security of the rest. in their hands, before the government claimed the administration, as being the
I was too much moved with the honesty and kindness of the poor man to be effects of a person not to be found, which they called civil death; and the balance
able to bear this; and remembering what he had done for me, how he had taken of this, the value of the plantation increasing, amounted to [38,892] crusadoes,
me up at sea, and how generously he had used me on all occasions, and which made 3241 moidores.
particularly how sincere a friend he was now to me, I could hardly refrain Thirdly, there was the Prior of the Augustines’ account, who had received the
weeping at what he said to me. Therefore, first I asked him, if his circumstances profits for above fourteen years; but not being to account for what was disposed
admitted him to spare so much money at that time, and if it would not straiten to the hospital, very honestly declared he had 872 moidores not distributed,
him. He told me he could not say but it might straiten him a little; but, however, which he acknowledged to my account; as to the king’s part, that refunded
it was my money, and I might want it more than he. and I could hardly refrain nothing.
from tears while he spoke. In short, I took 100 of the moidores and called for a There was a letter of my partner’s, congratulating me very affectionately upon
pen and ink to give him a receipt for them; then I returned him the rest, and told my being alive, giving me an account how the estate was improved, and what it
him if ever I had possession of the plantation, I would return the other to him produced a year, with a particular of the number of squares or acres that it
also, as indeed I afterwards did; and that as to the bill of sale of his part in his contained; how planted, how many slaves there were upon it; and making two-
son’s ship, I would not take it by any means; but that if I wanted the money, I and-twenty crosses for blessings, told me he had said so many Ave Marias to
found he was honest enough to pay me; and if I did not, but came to receive thank the Blessed Virgin that I was alive; inviting me very passionately to come
what he gave me reason to expect, I would never have a penny more from him. over and take possession of my own; and in the meantime to give him orders to
When this was passed, the old man began to ask me if he should put me into a whom he should deliver my effects, if I did not come myself; concluding with a
method to make my claim to my plantation. I told him I thought to go over to it hearty tender of his friendship, and that of his family, and sent me, as a present,
myself. He said I might do so if I pleased; but that if I did not, there were ways seven fine leopards’ skins, which he had, it seems, received from Africa, by
enough to secure my right, and immediately to appropriate the profits to my use; some other ship which he had sent thither, and who, it seems, had made a better
and as there were ships in the river of Lisbon just ready to go away to Brazil, he voyage than I. He sent me also five chests of excellent sweetmeats, and an
made me enter my name in a public register, with his affidavit, affirming upon hundred pieces of gold uncoined, not quite so large as moidores.
oath that I was alive, and that I was the same person who took up the land for the By the same fleet, my two merchant trustees shipped me 1200 chests of sugar,
planting the said plantation at first. 800 rolls of tobacco, and the rest of the whole account in gold.
This being regularly attested by a notary, and a procuration affixed, he I might well say now, indeed, that the latter end of Job was better than the
beginning. It is impossible to express here the flutterings of my very heart when ne’er a cave now to hide my money in, or a place where it might lie without lock
I looked over these letters, and especially when I found all my wealth about me; or key, till it grew mouldy and tarnished before anybody would meddle with it.
for as the Brazil ships come all in fleets, the same ships which brought my letters On the contrary, I knew not where to put it, or whom to trust with it. My old
brought my goods; and the effects were safe in the river before the letters came patron, the captain, indeed was honest, and that was the only refuge I had.
to my hand. In a word, I turned pale, and grew sick; and had not the old man run In the next place, my interest in Brazil seemed to summon me thither, but now
and fetched me a cordial, I believe the sudden surprise of joy had overset Nature, I could not tell how to think of going thither till I had settled my affairs and left
and I had died upon the spot. my effects in some safe hands behind me. At first I thought of my old friend the
Nay, after that, I continued very ill, and was so some hours, till a physician widow, who I knew was honest, and would be just to me; but then she was in
being sent for, and something of the real cause of my illness being known, he years, and but poor, and for aught I knew, might be in debt; so that in a word, I
ordered me to be let blood; after which I had relief and grew well. But I verily had no way but to go back to England myself, and take my effects with me.
believe, if it had not been eased by a vent given in that manner to the spirits, I It was some months, however, before I resolved upon this; and therefore, as I
should have died. had rewarded the old captain fully, and to his satisfaction, who had been my
I was now master, all on a sudden, of above #5000 sterling in money, and had former benefactor, so I began to think of my poor widow, whose husband had
an estate, as I might well call it, in Brazil, of above a thousand pounds a year, as been my first benefactor, and she, while it was in her power, my faithful steward
sure as an estate of lands in England. And in a word, I was in a condition which I and instructor. So the first thing I did, I got a merchant in Lisbon to write to his
scarce knew how to understand, or how to compose myself for the enjoyment of correspondent in London, not only to pay a bill, but to go find her out and carry
it. her in money a hundred pounds from me, and to talk with her and comfort her in
The first thing I did was to recompense my original benefactor, my good old her poverty, by telling her she should, if I lived, have a further supply. At the
captain, who had been first charitable to me in my distress, kind to me in the same time I sent my two sisters in the country each of them a hundred pounds,
beginning, and honest to me at the end. I showed him all that was sent me; I told they being, though not in want, yet not in very good circumstances; one having
him that next to the Providence of Heaven, which disposes all things, it was been married and left a widow, and the other having a husband not so kind to her
owing to him; and that it now lay on me to reward him, which I would do a as he should be.
hundredfold. So I first returned to him the hundred moidores I had received of But among all my relations, or acquaintances, I could not yet pitch upon one
him; then I sent for a notary, and caused him to draw up a general release or to whom I durst commit the gross of my stock, that I might go away to Brazil
discharge for the 470 moidores, which he had acknowledged he owed me, in the and leave things safe behind me; and this greatly perplexed me.
fullest and firmest manner possible; after which, I caused a procuration to be I had once a mind to have gone to Brazil, and have settled myself there; for I
drawn, empowering him to be my receiver of the annual profits of my plantation, was, as it were, naturalized to the place; but I had some little scruple in my mind
and appointing my partner to account to him and make the returns by the usual about religion, which insensibly drew me back, of which I shall say more
fleets to him in my name; and a clause in the end, being a grant of one hundred presently. However, it was not religion that kept me from going there for the
moidores a year to him, during his life, out of the effects, and fifty moidores a present; and as I had made no scruple of being openly of the religion of the
year to his son after him, for his life. And thus I requited my old man. country, all the while I was among them, so neither did I yet; only that now and
I was now to consider which way to steer my course next, and what to do with then having of late thought more of it than formerly, when I began to think of
the estate that Providence had thus put into my hands; and indeed, I had more living and dying among them, I began to regret my having professed myself a
care upon my head now than I had in my silent state of life in the island, where I Papist, and thought it might not be the best religion to die with.
wanted nothing but what I had, and had nothing but what I wanted; whereas I But, as I have said, this was not the main thing that kept me from going to
had now a great charge upon me, and my business was how to secure it. I had Brazil, but that really I did not know with whom to leave my effects behind me;
so I resolved at last to go to England with it, where, if I arrived, I concluded I cast away on the Start, near Torbay, and all the people drowned except three; so
should make some acquaintance, or find some relations that would be faithful to that in either of those vessels I had been made miserable; and in which most, it
me; and accordingly I prepared to go for England with all my wealth. was hard to say.
In order to prepare things for my going home, I first (the Brazil fleet being just Having been thus harassed in my thoughts, my old pilot, to whom I
going away) resolved to give answers suitable to the just and faithful account of communicated everything, pressed me earnestly not to go by sea, but either to go
things I had from thence; and first, to the Prior of St. Augustine I wrote a letter by land to the Groyne, and cross over the Bay of Biscay to Rochelle, from
full of thanks for their just dealings, and the offer of the 872 moidores which was whence it was but an easy and safe journey by land to Paris, and so to Calais and
indisposed of, which I desired might be given, 500 to the monastery, and 372 to Dover; or to go up to Madrid, and so all the way by land through France.
the poor, as the Prior should direct, desiring the good padre’s prayers for me, and In a word, I was so prepossessed against my going by sea at all, except from
the like. Calais to Dover, that I resolved to travel all the way by land; which, as I was not
I wrote next a letter of thanks to my two trustees, with all the in haste, and did not value the charge, was by much the pleasanter way; and to
acknowledgement that so much justice and honesty called for; as for sending make it more so, my old captain brought an English gentleman, the son of a
them any present, they were far above having any occasion of it. merchant in Lisbon, who was willing to travel with me. After which, we picked
Lastly, I wrote to my partner, acknowledging his industry in the improving the up two more English merchants also, and two young Portuguese gentlemen, the
plantation and his integrity in increasing the stock of the works, giving him last going to Paris only; so that we were in all six of us, and five servants; the
instructions for his future government of my part, according to the powers I had two merchants and the two Portuguese contenting themselves with one servant
left with my old patron, to whom I desired him to send whatever became due to between two, to save the charge; and as for me, I got an English sailor to travel
me, till he should hear from me more particularly; assuring him that it was my with me as a servant, besides my man Friday, who was too much a stranger to be
intention not only to come to him, but to settle myself there for the remainder of capable of supplying the place of a servant on the road.
my life. To this I added a very handsome present of some Italian silks for his
wife and two daughters, for such the captain’s son informed me he had; with two
pieces of fine English broadcloth, the best I could get in Lisbon, five pieces of
black baize, and some Flanders lace of a good value.
Having thus settled my affairs, sold my cargo, and turned all my effects into
good bills of exchange, my next difficulty was, which way to go to England. I
had been accustomed enough to the sea, and yet I had a strange aversion to going
to England by sea at that time; and though I could give no reason for it, yet the
difficulty increased upon me so much, that though I had once shipped my
baggage in order to go, yet I altered my mind, and that not once but two or three
times.
It is true I had been very unfortunate by sea, and this might be one of the
reasons. But let no man slight the strong impulses of his own thoughts in cases
of such moment. Two of the ships which I had singled out to go in, I mean more
particularly singled out than any other, that is to say, so as in one of them to put
my things on board and in the other to have agreed with the captain; I say, two of
these ships miscarried, viz., one was taken by the Algerines, and the other was
But while we were considering this, there came in four French gentlemen,
We Cross the Mountains who, having been stopped on the French side of the passes, as we were on the
Spanish, had found out a guide, who, traversing the country near the head of
IN THIS manner I set out from Lisbon; and our company being all very well
mounted and armed, we made a little troop, whereof they did me the honour to Languedoc, had brought them over the mountains by such ways that they were
call me captain, as well because I was the oldest man as because I had two not much incommoded with the snow; and where they met with snow in any
servants, and, indeed, was the original of the whole journey. quantity, they said it was frozen hard enough to bear them and their horses.
We sent for this guide, who told us he would undertake to carry us the same
As I have troubled you with none of my sea journals, so I shall trouble you
now with none of my land journal; but some adventures that happened to us in way with no hazard from the snow, provided we were armed sufficiently to
this tedious and difficult journey I must not omit. protect us from wild beasts; for, he said, upon these great snows it was frequent
for some wolves to show themselves at the foot of the mountains, being made
When we came to Madrid, we, being all of us strangers to Spain, were willing
ravenous for want of food, the ground being covered with snow. We told him we
to stay some time to see the court of Spain, and to see what was worth were well enough prepared for such creatures as they were, if he would ensure
observing; but it being the latter part of the summer, we hastened away, and set
us from a kind of two-legged wolves, which we were told we were in most
out from Madrid about the middle of October. But when we came to the edge of
danger from, especially on the French side of the mountains.
Navarre, we were alarmed at several towns on the way with an account that so
He satisfied us there was no danger of that kind in the way that we were to go;
much snow was fallen on the French side of the mountains that several travellers
were obliged to come back to Pampeluna, after having attempted, at an extreme so we readily agreed to follow him, as did also twelve other gentlemen, with
hazard, to pass on. their servants, some French, some Spanish, who, as I said, had attempted to go,
and were obliged to come back again.
When we came to Pampeluna itself, we found it so indeed; and to me that had
Accordingly, we all set out from Pampeluna, with our guide, on the 15th of
been always used to a hot climate, and indeed to countries where we could
scarce bear any clothes on, the cold was insufferable; nor, indeed, was it more November; and indeed, I was surprised when, instead of going forward, he came
directly back with us, on the same road that we came from Madrid, above twenty
painful than it was surprising to come but ten days before out of the Old Castile,
where the weather was not only warm, but very hot, and immediately to feel a miles; when, being passed two rivers, and come into the plain country, we found
wind from the Pyrenean mountains so very keen, so severely cold, as to be ourselves in a warm climate again, where the country was pleasant, and no snow
intolerable and to endanger benumbing and perishing of our fingers and toes. to be seen; but on a sudden, turning to the left, he approached the mountains
another way; and though it is true the hills and precipices looked dreadful, yet he
Poor Friday was really frighted when he saw the mountains all covered with made so many tours, such meanders, and led us by such winding ways, that we
snow, and felt cold weather, which he had never seen or felt before in his life. were insensibly past the height of the mountains without being much
To mend the matter, when we came to Pampeluna, it continued snowing with encumbered with the snow; and all on a sudden he showed us the pleasant
so much violence, and so long, that the people said winter was come before its fruitful provinces of Languedoc and Gascoigne, all green and flourishing, though
time, and the roads which were difficult before were now quite impassable; for, indeed it was at a great distance, and we had some rough way to pass yet.
in a word, the snow lay in some places too thick for us to travel; and being not We were a little uneasy, however, when we found it snowed one whole day
hard frozen, as is the case in northern countries, there was no going without and a night so fast that we could not travel; but he bade us be easy, we should
being in danger of being buried alive every step. We stayed no less than twenty soon be past it all. We found, indeed, that we began to descend every day, and to
days at Pampeluna; when (seeing the winter coming on, and no likelihood of its come more north than before; and so, depending upon our guide, we went on.
being better, for it was the severest winter all over Europe that had been known
It was about two hours before night, when our guide being something before
in the memory of man) I proposed that we should all go away to Fontarabia, and
us, and not just in sight, out rushed three monstrous wolves, and after them a
there take shipping for Bordeaux, which was a very little voyage.
bear, out of a hollow way, adjoining to a thick wood; two of the wolves flew the bear is a heavy, clumsy creature, and does not gallop as the wolf does, who is
upon the guide, and had he been half a mile before us, he had been devoured swift and light, so he has two particular qualities, which generally are the rule of
indeed before we could have helped him. One of them fastened upon his horse, his actions; first, as to men, who are not his proper prey; I say, not his proper
and the other attacked the man with that violence that he had not time, or not prey, because though I can’t say what excessive hunger might do, which was
presence of mind enough, to draw his pistol, but holloed and cried out to us most now their case, the ground being all covered with snow; but as to men, he does
lustily; my man Friday being next to me, I bade him ride up and see what was not usually attempt them, unless they first attack him. On the contrary, if you
the matter; as soon as Friday came in sight of the man, he holloed as loud as the meet him in the woods, if you don’t meddle with him, he won’t meddle with
other, "O master! O master!’’ but, like a bold fellow, rode directly up to the poor you; but then you must take care to be very civil to him, and give him the road,
man and with his pistol shot the wolf that attacked him into the head. for he is a very nice gentleman, he won’t go a step out of his way for a prince;
It was happy for the poor man that it was my man Friday; for he, having been nay, if you are really afraid, your best way is to look another way and keep going
used to that kind of creature in his country, had no fear upon him, but went close on; for sometimes if you stop, and stand still, and look steadfastly at him, he
up to him and shot him, as above; whereas any of us would have fired at a takes it for an affront; but if you throw or toss anything at him, and it hits him,
farther distance, and have perhaps either missed the wolf, or endangered though it were but a bit of a stick as big as your finger, he takes it for an affront
shooting the man. and sets all his other business aside to pursue his revenge; for he will have
But it was enough to have terrified a bolder man than I, and indeed it alarmed satisfaction in point of honour; that is his first quality. The next is, that if he be
all our company, when, with the noise of Friday’s pistol, we heard on both sides once affronted, he will never leave you, night or day, till he has his revenge; but
the dismalest howling of wolves, and the noise redoubled by the echo of the follows at a good round rate till he overtakes you.
mountains, that it was to us as if there had been a prodigious multitude of them; My man Friday had delivered our guide, and when we came up to him, he was
and perhaps, indeed, there was not such a few as that we had no cause of helping him off from his horse; for the man was both hurt and frighted, and
apprehensions. indeed, the last more than the first; when on the sudden, we spied the bear come
However, as Friday had killed this wolf, the other that had fastened upon the out of the wood, and a vast monstrous one it was, the biggest by far that ever I
horse left him immediately and fled; having happily fastened upon his head, saw. We were all a little surprised when we saw him, but when Friday saw him,
where the bosses of the bridle had stuck in his teeth, so that he had not done him it was easy to see joy and courage in the fellow’s countenance. "O! O! O!" says
much hurt. The man, indeed, was most hurt; for the raging creature had bit him Friday, three times, pointing to him; "O master! You give me te leave, me shakee
twice, once on the arm, and the other time a little above his knee; and he was just te hand with him, me make you good laugh.’’
as it were tumbling down by the disorder of his horse, when Friday came up and I was surprised to see the fellow so pleased. ‘‘You fool you,’’ says I, ‘‘he will
shot the wolf. eat you up.’’ ‘‘Eatee me up! Eatee me up!’’ says Friday, twice over again; ‘‘me
It is easy to suppose that at the noise of Friday’s pistol we all mended our pace eatee him up. Me make you good laugh. You all stay here, me show you good
and rid up as fast as the way (which was very difficult) would give us leave, to laugh!’’ So down he sits, and gets his boots off in a moment, and put on a pair of
see what was the matter; as soon as we came clear of the trees, which blinded us pumps (as we call the flat shoes they wear) and which he had in his pocket, gives
before, we saw clearly what had been the case, and how Friday had disengaged my other servant his horse, and with his gun away he flew, swift like the wind.
the poor guide; though we did not presently discern what kind of creature it was The bear was walking softly on, and offered to meddle with nobody till Friday
he had killed. coming pretty near, calls to him, as if the bear could understand him. ‘‘Hark ye,
But never was a fight managed so hardily, and in such a surprising manner, as hark ye,’’ says Friday, ‘‘me speakee wit you.’’ We followed at a distance; for now
that which followed between Friday and the bear, which gave us all (though at being come down on the Gascoigne side of the mountains, we were entered a
first we were surprised and afraid for him) the greatest diversion imaginable. As vast great forest, where the country was plain and pretty open, though many
trees in it scattered here and there.
Friday, who had, as we say, the heels of the bear, came up with him quickly, Friday to stand still, and we would shoot the bear; but he cried out earnestly, "O
and takes up a great stone and throws at him, and hit him just on the head, but pray! O pray! No shoot, me shoot by and then’’; he would have said ‘‘by and
did him no more harm than if he had thrown it against a wall; but it answered by.’’ However, to shorten the story, Friday danced so much, and the bear stood so
Friday’s end, for the rogue was so void of fear that he did it purely to make the ticklish, that we had laughing enough indeed, but still could not imagine what
bear follow him and show us some laugh, as he called it. the fellow would do; for first we thought he depended upon shaking the bear off;
As soon as the bear felt the stone, and saw him, he turns about, and comes and we found the bear was too cunning for that too; for he would not go out far
after him, taking devilish long strides, and shuffling along at a strange rate, so as enough to be thrown down, but clings fast with his great broad claws and feet, so
would have put a horse to a middling gallop; away runs Friday, and takes his that we could not imagine what would be the end of it and where the jest would
course, as if he run towards us for help; so we all resolved to fire at once upon be at last.
the bear, and deliver my man; though I was angry at him heartily for bringing the But Friday put us out of doubt quickly; for seeing the bear cling fast to the
bear back upon us, when he was going about his own business another way; and bough, and that he would not be persuaded to come any farther, ‘‘Well, well,’’
especially I was angry that he had turned the bear upon us, and then run away; says Friday, ‘‘you no come farther, me go, me go; you no come to me, me come
and I called out, ‘‘You dog,’’ said I, ‘‘is this your making us laugh? Come away, to you’’; and upon this, he goes out to the smallest end of the bough, where it
and take your horse, that we may shoot the creature.’’ He hears me, and cries out, would bend with his weight, and gently lets himself down by it, sliding down the
‘‘No shoot, no shoot; stand still, you get much laugh.’’ And as the nimble bough, till he came near enough to jump down on his feet, and away he ran to
creature ran two foot for the beast’s one, he turned on a sudden, on one side of his gun, takes it up, and stands still.
us, and seeing a great oak tree fit for his purpose, he beckoned to us to follow; ‘‘Well,’’ said I to him, ‘‘Friday, what will you do now? Why don’t you shoot
and doubling his pace, he gets nimbly up the tree, laying his gun down upon the him?’’ ‘‘No shoot,’’ says Friday, ‘‘no yet; me shoot now, me no kill; me stay, give
ground, at about five or six yards from the bottom of the tree. you one more laugh’’; and indeed so he did, as you will see presently; for when
The bear soon came to the tree, and we followed at a distance; the first thing the bear saw his enemy gone, he came back from the bough where he stood, but
he did, he stopped at the gun, smelled at it, but let it lie, and up he scrambles into did it mighty leisurely, looking behind him every step and coming backward till
the tree, climbing like a cat, though so monstrously heavy. I was amazed at the he got into the body of the tree; then with the same hinder end foremost, he came
folly, as I thought it, of my man, and could not for my life see anything to laugh down the tree, grasping it with his claws, and moving one foot at a time, very
at yet, till seeing the bear get up the tree, we all rode nearer to him. leisurely; at this juncture, and just before he could set his hind feet upon the
When we came to the tree, there was Friday got out to the small end of a large ground, Friday stepped up close to him, clapped the muzzle of his piece into his
limb of the tree, and the bear got about halfway to him; as soon as the bear got ear, and shot him dead as a stone.
out to that part where the limb of the tree was weaker, ‘‘Ha!’’ says he to us, Then the rogue turned about to see if we did not laugh; and when he saw we
‘‘now you see me teachee the bear dance’’; so he falls a-jumping and shaking the were pleased by our looks, he falls a-laughing himself very loud. ‘‘So we kill
bough, at which the bear began to totter, but stood still and begun to look behind bear in my country,’’ says Friday. ‘‘So you kill them?’’ says I; ‘‘why, you have no
him, to see how he should get back; then, indeed, we did laugh heartily. But guns.’’ ‘‘No,’’ says he, ‘‘no gun, but shoot, great much long arrow.’’
Friday had not done with him by a great deal; when he sees him stand still, he This was, indeed, a good diversion to us; but we were still in a wild place, and
calls out to him again, as if he had supposed the bear could speak English, our guide very much hurt, and what to do we hardly knew; the howling of
‘‘What, you no come farther? pray you come farther’’; so he left jumping and wolves ran much in my head; and, indeed, except the noise I once heard on the
shaking the bough; and the bear, just as if he had understood what he said, did shore of Africa, of which I have said something already, I never heard anything
come a little farther; then he fell a-jumping again, and the bear stopped again. that filled me with so much horror.
We thought now was a good time to knock him on the head, and I called to These things, and the approach of night, called us off, or else, as Friday would
have had us, we should certainly have taken the skin of this monstrous creature of them in a line, as regularly as an army drawn up by experienced officers. I
off, which was worth saving; but we had three leagues to go, and our guide scarce knew in what manner to receive them; but found to draw ourselves in a
hastened us; so we left him and went forward on our journey. close line was the only way. So we formed in a moment. But that we might not
The ground was still covered with snow, though not so deep and dangerous as have too much interval, I ordered that only every other man should fire, and that
on the mountains; and the ravenous creatures, as we heard afterwards, were the others who had not fired should stand ready to give them a second volley
come down into the forest and plain country, pressed by hunger to seek for food; immediately, if they continued to advance upon us, and that then those who had
and had done a great deal of mischief in the villages, where they surprised the fired at first should not pretend to load their fusils again, but stand ready with
country people, killed a great many of their sheep and horses, and some people every one a pistol; for we were all armed with a fusil and a pair of pistols each
too. man; so we were by this method able to fire six volleys, half of us at a time;
We had one dangerous place to pass, which our guide told us, if there were however, at present we had no necessity; for upon firing the first volley, the
any more wolves in the country, we should find them there; and this was a small enemy made a full stop, being terrified as well with the noise as with the fire;
plain, surrounded with woods on every side, and a long narrow defile or lane, four of them being shot into the head, dropped, several others were wounded,
which we were to pass to get through the wood, and then we should come to the and went bleeding off, as we could see by the snow. I found they stopped, but
village where we were to lodge. did not immediately retreat; whereupon, remembering that I had been told that
the fiercest creatures were terrified at the voice of a man, I caused all our
It was within half an hour of sunset when we entered the first wood; and a
company to hollo as loud as we could; and I found the notion not altogether
little after sunset when we came into the plain. We met with nothing in the first
mistaken, for upon our shout they began to retire and turn about; then I ordered a
wood, except that in a little plain within the wood, which was not above two
second volley to be fired in their rear, which put them to the gallop, and away
furlongs over, we saw five great wolves cross the road, full speed one after
they went to the woods.
another, as if they had been in chase of some prey, and had it in view; they took
no notice of us, and were gone and out of our sight in a few moments. This gave us leisure to charge our pieces again, and that we might lose no
time, we kept going; but we had but little more than loaded our fusils, and put
Upon this our guide, who, by the way, was a wretched faint-hearted fellow,
ourselves into a readiness, when we heard a terrible noise in the same wood, on
bade us keep in a ready posture; for he believed there were more wolves a-
our left, only that it was farther onward the same way we were to go.
coming.
The night was coming on, and the light began to be dusky, which made it
We kept our arms ready, and our eyes about us, but we saw no more wolves,
worse on our side; but the noise increasing, we could easily perceive that it was
till we came through the wood, which was near half a league, and entered the
the howling and yelling of those hellish creatures; and on a sudden, we perceived
plain; as soon as we came into the plain, we had occasion enough to look about
two or three troops of wolves, one on our left, one behind us, and one on our
us. The first object we met with was a dead horse; that is to say, a poor horse
front, so that we seemed to be surrounded with ’em; however, as they did not fall
which the wolves had killed, and at least a dozen of them at work; we could not
upon us, we kept our way forward, as fast as we could make our horses go,
say eating of him, but picking of his bones rather; for they had eaten up all the
which, the way being very rough, was only a good large trot; and in this manner
flesh before.
we came in view of the entrance of a wood, through which we were to pass, at
We did not think fit to disturb them at their feast, neither did they take much the farther side of the plain; but we were greatly surprised when, coming nearer
notice of us. Friday would have let fly at them, but I would not suffer him by any the lane, or pass, we saw a confused number of wolves standing just at the
means; for I found we were like to have more business upon our hands than we entrance.
were aware of. We were not gone half over the plain but we began to hear the
On a sudden, at another opening of the wood, we heard the noise of a gun; and
wolves howl in the wood on our left in a frightful manner, and presently after,
looking that way, out rushed a horse, with a saddle and a bridle on him, flying
we saw about a hundred coming on directly towards us, all in a body, and most
like the wind, and sixteen or seventeen wolves after him, full speed; indeed, the
horse had the heels of them; but as we supposed that he could not hold it at that but just time to get away, when the wolves came up to it, and some were got up
rate, we doubted not but they would get up with him at last, and no question but upon it, when I, snapping an uncharged pistol close to the powder, set it on fire;
they did. those that were upon the timber were scorched with it, and six or seven of them
But here we had a most horrible sight; for riding up to the entrance where the fell, or rather jumped, in among us, with the force and fright of the fire; we
horse came out, we found the carcass of another horse, and of two men, dispatched these in an instant, and the rest were so frighted with the light, which
devoured by the ravenous creatures, and one of the men was no doubt the same the night, for it was now very near dark, made more terrible, that they drew back
whom we heard fire the gun; for there lay a gun just by him, fired off; but as to a little.
the man, his head and the upper part of his body was eaten up. Upon which I ordered our last pistols to be fired off in one volley, and after
This filled us with horror, and we knew not what course to take, but the that we gave a shout; upon this, the wolves turned tail, and we sallied
creatures resolved us soon; for they gathered about us presently in hopes of prey; immediately upon near twenty lame ones, who we found struggling on the
and I verily believe there were three hundred of them. It happened very much to ground, and fell a-cutting them with our swords, which answered our
our advantage that at the entrance into the wood, but a little way from it, there expectation; for the crying and howling they made was better understood by
lay some large timber trees, which had been cut down the summer before, and I their fellows, so that they all fled and left us.
suppose lay there for carriage; I drew my little troop in among those trees, and We had, first and last, killed about threescore of them; and had it been
placing ourselves in a line, behind one long tree, I advised them all to light, and daylight, we had killed many more. The field of battle being thus cleared, we
keeping that tree before us, for a breastwork, to stand in a triangle, or three made forward again; for we had still near a league to go. We heard the ravenous
fronts, enclosing our horses in the center. creatures howl and yell in the woods as we went several times; and sometimes
We did so, and it was well we did; for never was a more furious charge than we fancied we saw some of them, but the snow dazzling our eyes, we were not
the creatures made upon us in this place; they came on us with a growling kind certain; so in about an hour more, we came to the town where we were to lodge,
of a noise and mounted the piece of timber (which, as I said, was our which we found in a terrible fright, and all in arms; for it seems that the night
breastwork) as if they were only rushing upon their prey; and this fury of theirs, before the wolves and some bears had broke into the village and put them in a
it seems, was principally occasioned by their seeing our horses behind us, which terrible fright, and they were obliged to keep guard night and day, but especially
was the prey they aimed at. I ordered our men to fire as before, every other man; in the night, to preserve their cattle and indeed their people.
and they took their aim so sure that indeed they killed several of the wolves at The next morning our guide was so ill, and his limbs swelled with the rankling
the first volley; but there was a necessity to keep a continual firing; for they of his two wounds, that he could go no farther; so we were obliged to take a new
came on like devils, those behind pushing on those before. guide there, and go to Toulouse, where we found a warm climate, a fruitful
When we had fired our second volley of our fusils, we thought they stopped a pleasant country, and no snow, no wolves, or anything like them; but when we
little, and I hoped they would have gone off, but it was but a moment, for others told our story at Toulouse, they told us it was nothing but what was ordinary in
came forward again; so we fired two volleys of our pistols, and I believe in these the great forest at the foot of the mountains, especially when the snow lay on the
four firings we killed seventeen or eighteen of them, and lamed twice as many; ground. But they inquired much what kind of a guide we had gotten, that would
yet they came on again. venture to bring us that way in such a severe season; and told us it was very
I was loath to spend our last shot too hastily; so I called my servant, not my much we were not all devoured. When we told them how we placed ourselves,
man Friday, for he was better employed; for with the greatest dexterity and the horses in the middle, they blamed us exceedingly, and told us it was fifty
imaginable, he had charged my fusil and his own, while we were engaged; but as to one but we had been all destroyed; for it was the sight of the horses which
I said, I called my other man, and giving him a horn of powder, I bade him lay a made the wolves so furious, seeing their prey; and that at other times they are
train all along the piece of timber, and let it be a large train; he did so, and had really afraid of a gun; but they being excessive hungry, and raging on that
account, the eagerness to come at the horses had made them senseless of danger;
and that if we had not by the continued fire, and at last by the stratagem of the
train of powder, mastered them, it had been great odds but that we had been torn I Revisit My Island
to pieces; whereas, had we been content to have sat still on horseback, and fired
I HAVE nothing uncommon to take notice of in my passage through France;
as horsemen, they would not have taken the horses so for much their own when nothing but what other travellers have given an account of, with much more
men were on their backs, as otherwise; and withal they told us that at last, if we advantage than I can. I travelled from Toulouse to Paris, and without any
had stood all together, and left our horses, they would have been so eager to have considerable stay came to Calais and landed safe at Dover the 14th of January,
devoured them, that we might have come off safe, especially having our firearms after having had a severe cold season to travel in.
in our hands, and being so many in number.
I was now come to the center of my travels, and had in a little time all my
For my part, I was never so sensible of danger in my life; for seeing above new-discovered estate safe about me, the bills of exchange which I brought with
three hundred devils come roaring and open-mouthed to devour us, and having me having been very currently paid.
nothing to shelter us, or retreat to, I gave myself over for lost; and as it was, I
believe I shall never care to cross those mountains again; I think I would much My principal guide and privy councillor was my good ancient widow, who, in
gratitude for the money I had sent her, thought no pains too much, or care too
rather go a thousand leagues by sea, though I were sure to meet with a storm
great, to employ for me; and I trusted her so entirely with everything that I was
once a week.
perfectly easy as to the security of my effects; and indeed, I was very happy
from my beginning, and now to the end, in the unspotted integrity of this good
gentlewoman.
And now I began to think of leaving my effects with this woman and setting
out for Lisbon, and so to Brazil; but now another scruple came in my way, and
that was religion; for as I had entertained some doubts about the Roman religion,
even while I was abroad, especially in my state of solitude; so I knew there was
no going to Brazil for me, much less going to settle there, unless I resolved to
embrace the Roman Catholic religion without any reserve; unless, on the other
hand, I resolved to be a sacrifice to my principles, be a martyr for religion, and
die in the Inquisition; so I resolved to stay at home, and if I could find means for
it, to dispose of my plantation.
To this purpose I wrote to my old friend at Lisbon, who in return gave me
notice that he could easily dispose of it there. But that if I thought fit to give him
leave to offer it in my name to the two merchants, the survivors of my trustees,
who lived in Brazil, who must fully understand the value of it, who lived just
upon the spot, and who I knew were very rich, so that he believed they would be
fond of buying it, he did not doubt but I should make 4 or 5,000 pieces of eight
the more of it.
Accordingly I agreed, gave him order to offer it to them, and he did so; and in
about eight months more, the ship being then returned, he sent me account, that
they had accepted the offer, and had remitted 33,000 pieces of eight to a
correspondent of theirs at Lisbon to pay for it.
In return, I signed the instrument of sale in the form which they sent from with them, how they were subjected to the Spaniards, how honestly the
Lisbon, and sent it to my old man, who sent me bills of exchange for 32,800 Spaniards used them; a history, if it were entered into, as full of variety and
pieces of eight to me, for the estate; reserving the payment of 100 moidores a wonderful accidents as my own part, particularly also as to their battles with the
year to him, the old man, during his life, and 50 moidores afterwards to his son Carib-beans, who landed several times upon the island, and as to the
for his life, which I had promised them, which the plantation was to make good improvement they made upon the island itself, and how five of them made an
as a rent-charge. And thus I have given the first part of a life of fortune and attempt upon the mainland, and brought away eleven men and five women
adventure, a life of Providence’s checker-work, and of a variety which the world prisoners, by which, at my coming, I found about twenty young children on the
will seldom be able to show the like of. Beginning foolishly, but closing much island.
more happily than any part of it ever gave me leave so much as to hope for. Here I stayed about twenty days, left them supplies of all necessary things,
Anyone would think that in this state of complicated good fortune, I was past and particularly of arms, powder, shot, clothes, tools, and two workmen, which I
running any more hazards; and so indeed I had been, if other circumstances had brought from England with me, viz., a carpenter and a smith.
concurred, but I was inured to a wandering life, had no family, not many Besides this, I shared the island into parts with them, reserved to myself the
relations, nor, however rich, had I contracted much acquaintance; and though I property of the whole, but gave them such parts respectively as they agreed on;
had sold my estate in Brazil, yet I could not keep the country out of my head, and having settled all things with them, and engaged them not to leave the place,
and had a great mind to be upon the wing again; especially I could not resist the I left them there.
strong inclination I had to see my island, and to know if the poor Spaniards were From thence I touched at Brazil, from whence I sent a bark, which I brought
in being there, and how the rogues I left there had used them. there, with more people to the island; and in it, besides other supplies, I sent
My true friend the widow earnestly dissuaded me from it, and so far prevailed seven women, being such as I found proper for service, or for wives to such as
with me that for almost seven years she prevented my running abroad; during would take them. As to the Englishmen, I promised them to send them some
which time, I took my two nephews, the children of one of my brothers, into my women from England, with a good cargo of necessaries, if they would apply
care. The eldest, having something of his own, I bred up as a gentleman, and themselves to planting, which I afterwards performed. And the fellows proved
gave him a settlement of some addition to his estate, after my decease; the other very honest and diligent after they were mastered and had their properties set
I put out to a captain of a ship; and after five years, finding him a sensible, bold, apart for them. I sent them also from Brazil five cows, three of them being big
enterprising young fellow, I put him into a good ship, and sent him to sea. And with calf, some sheep, and some hogs, which, when I came again, were
this young fellow afterwards drew me in, as old as I was, to further adventures considerably increased.
myself. But all these things, with an account how three hundred Caribbees came and
In the meantime, I in part settled myself here; for first of all I married, and that invaded them, and ruined their plantations, and how they fought with that whole
not either to my disadvantage or dissatisfaction, and had three children, two sons number twice, and were at first defeated, and three of them killed; but at last, a
and one daughter. But my wife dying, and my nephew coming home with good storm destroying their enemies’ canoes, they famished or destroyed almost all
success from a voyage to Spain, my inclination to go abroad and his importunity the rest, and renewed and recovered the possession of their plantation, and still
prevailed and engaged me to go in his ship, as a private trader to the East Indies. lived upon the island.
This was in the year 1694. All these things, with some very surprising incidents in some new adventures
In this voyage I visited my new colony in the island, saw my successors the of my own, for ten years more, I may perhaps give a further account of hereafter.
Spaniards, had the whole story of their lives, and of the villains I left there: how
at first they insulted the poor Spaniards, how they afterwards agreed, disagreed,
united, separated, and how at last the Spaniards were obliged to use violence
book was very popular when it was first published, and Defoe sought to take
Afterword advantage of that success by writing two sequels: Robinson Crusoe’s Farther
In the first decade of the twenty-first century, two popular series on American Adventures (1719) and Serious Reflections (1720). (The version of the novel
television echoed but also reimagined Defoe’s Robinson Crusoe, first published given in this edition is not based on any of the editions published in Defoe’s
in England almost three centuries earlier. In its first season, Survivor (2000) was lifetime. Spelling and punctuation have been modernized, and chapters have
presented to television viewers as the story of sixteen Americans ‘‘marooned’’ been created and chapter titles inserted. Such chapter breaks and titles have been
on a ‘‘mysterious’’ island, Borneo. The ‘‘castaways’’ (who were, of course, all used before but they are not Defoe’s.) The story, moreover, has endured in the
volunteers) were given two minutes at the beginning of their ordeal to ‘‘salvage’’ popular imagination. Ian Watt argues that the Crusoe story (like the stories of
everything they could from the boat that brought them to their destination; they Faust, Don Quixote, and Don Juan) is a ‘‘myth of modern individualism’’; that
then ferried everything to the island on two rafts. Lost’s first season (2004) tells is, the novel embodies one of the stories that people in Western culture use as a
the story of survivors of an airline flight (Oceanic Flight 815) that crashes on key to who and what we are, so much so that the French philosopher Jean-
what at first seems to be a deserted island. Although eventually it becomes clear Jacques Rousseau, in Émile (1762), his treatise on education, declares that
that the island is, if anything, overpopulated rather than deserted, at first the Robinson Crusoe will be the first book, and for a long time the only book, read
survivors have to learn how to find food, water, and shelter, and especially how by his representative, imaginary student, Émile.
to work together. The creators of Lost have acknowledged that the series began Robinson Crusoe’s enduring resonance may be explained in many ways;
as a proposal to do a television version of Cast Away, Robert Zemeckis’s 2000 indeed, there are almost as many explanations as there are interpreters of this
film with Tom Hanks. That film made the Crusoe figure a systems engineer for text. Many have read the book simply as a great adventure, the story of an
FedEx in contemporary America, but for all that it radically altered the original ordinary man who ventures into the great world, suffers terribly but endures and
story, it also retained many of the most important elements of Defoe’s novel: a indeed thrives on his island, and returns to England a successful man. The dark
man lost at sea and marooned on a deserted island, his anguished isolation, and side of this view is that Robinson Crusoe embodies the very image of Western
the hero’s mastery of his new island home. Cast Away is only one of many film imperialism, an impulse and a process that led a few countries in Western
versions of Defoe’s most famous book; those adaptations stretch back as far as Europe to colonize or otherwise subdue much of Latin America, Africa, and
1903 (very near the beginning of the history of film) and include The Adventures Asia from the fifteenth to the nineteenth centuries. Crusoe styles himself ‘‘a
of Robinson Crusoe (1952) by the great surrealist Spanish director, Luis Buñuel, king’’ with ‘‘an undoubted right of dominion’’ (page 243) on his island, and the
and a 1997 film version starring Pierce Brosnan. great critic Edward Said points out that it is hardly accidental that the book,
Novelists, too, have responded to and indeed rewritten Robinson Crusoe. often cited as the first great realist novel, features a European who establishes a
Among the most famous such rewritings of Defoe’s narrative are Swiss Family kingdom, and with it mastery of racial and ethnic others, on a faraway, non-
Robinson (1812) by Johann Wyss and, much more recently, Foe (1986) by J. M. European island.
Coetzee, the South African writer and winner of the 2003 Nobel Prize for Other readers have focused on a very different element in the narrative:
Literature. Other works that have been discussed as reworkings of Robinson religion. Defoe’s preface recommends the work for its ‘‘religious application of
Crusoe include Edgar Allan Poe’s The Narrative of Arthur Gordon Pym (1838) events’’ and its justification of ‘‘the wisdom of Providence’’ (page 3), and from
and two novels—not only Lord of the Flies (1954) but also Pincher Martin the eighteenth century onward, readers have celebrated the book for its piety.
(1956)— by another Nobel Prize winner (in 1986), William Golding. Indeed Twentieth-century critics analyzed the book’s debt to spiritual biography and
Robinson Crusoe has been reimagined so many times in print that all of these autobiography, and discussed Robinson Crusoe’s kinship with the great allegory
works taken together constitute a distinct literary genre known as the of Christian man’s journey to salvation, John Bunyan’s The Pilgrim’s Progress
Robinsonade. (1678). And contemporary American readers can hardly help noticing that
Clearly, then, Defoe’s narrative struck a deep nerve in Western culture. The Crusoe—when he prays ‘‘with a true Scripture view of hope founded on the
encouragement of the Word of God’’ and reflects upon the biblical passage ‘‘Call on the novel, the hero essentially goes mad because of his ‘‘solitary state.’’
on Me, and I will deliver you’’ (page 98)—is ‘‘born again’’ on the island. Buñuel reports in his memoirs that what interested him about the story was
There are many other ways of thinking about Defoe’s novel, including, to Crusoe’s solitude, and his film highlights the hero’s psychic torment. In one
name only the most striking arguments: Crusoe as economic man, Crusoe’s sequence (not based on anything in the novel), Crusoe (Dan O’Herlihy), in a
island as a prison, and Crusoe as a scientist. It has also been argued that the drunken waking dream, hears the voices of former companions singing a song
narrative as a fact-based account tells us something definitive about the nature of that reflects Crusoe’s own state of mind: ‘‘Down among the dead men, down
the novel itself. In what follows, however, I want to focus on three aspects of among the dead men, . . . down among the dead men, let them lie.’’ When the
Robinson Crusoe that I think go a long way toward explaining why and how the singing suddenly stops, Crusoe looks bereft and weeps. Later, we see him
book has worked so powerfully on readers and on other artists over the last three running into the ocean in a frenzy, crying, ‘‘Help! Help!’’ and then talking to two
hundred years, and, especially, why and how it continues to have such force in insects, calling them ‘‘my little friends,’’ feeding them an ant, and relishing their
our own time. These three elements of the novel are isolation, technique, and eating. Similarly, in Cast Away, Chuck Noland (Hanks) tries to commit suicide
race, and I will discuss these issues by looking at the reception accorded Defoe’s and in the latter stages of his stay on the island talks to and even quarrels with
novel, principally in works for the screen. ‘‘Wilson,’’ a volleyball that takes on human qualities when the impression of
Robinson Crusoe is a story about loneliness. The hero of the book, the original Noland’s bleeding hand imprints something like a human face on it. When
title page informs us, lives on his island for twenty-eight years. It is only two- Noland finally escapes from the island on a raft that he has constructed, he loses
thirds of the way through the book that Crusoe is finally joined on the island by Wilson and is shown weeping inconsolably before apparently resigning himself
another human being, Friday. Crusoe emphasizes the pain of isolation when he to his own death by throwing his paddles overboard.
draws up the balance sheet that summarizes his situation on the island. The first How does Defoe’s Robinson Crusoe avoid the madness that overtakes the
three items on the ‘‘Evil’’ side of the ledger all have to do with his loneliness: ‘‘I heroes of the films by Buñuel and Zemeckis? He works, and therein lies a major
am cast upon a horrible desolate island’’; ‘‘I am singled out and separated, as it key to the book’s enduring appeal. Crusoe informs the reader that he is ‘‘very
were, from all the world’’; and ‘‘I am divided from mankind, a solitaire, one seldom idle’’ (page 116); as a result of his constant labor, he, a man who ‘‘had
banished from human society’’ (pages 67-68). At the end of his second year on never handled a tool’’ in his life, becomes a ‘‘master of every mechanic art’’
the island, Crusoe gives thanks for ‘‘the many wonderful mercies’’ that have (page 69). He works at everything: animal husbandry, baking, architecture,
been bestowed upon him by God but at the same time he makes it clear that his farming, pottery, building boats, and making things: clothes, an umbrella, butter,
‘‘solitary state’’ is a continuing source of suffering (page 114), and he later cheese. More than one critic has pointed out that Crusoe’s experience
observes that the period after he saves Friday’s life is ‘‘the pleasantest year of all recapitulates the economic history of mankind in that Crusoe, on the island,
the life I led in this place’’ (page 216). masters the skills necessary to both agriculture and industry and creates his own
It must be said that a good deal less attention is paid in the novel to the world of things. Woolf argues that the book, above all else, shows how ‘‘serious’’
psychic toll of loneliness than a reader in a world shaped by the rise of and ‘‘beautiful’’ it is ‘‘to dig, to bake, to plant, to build.’’ Crusoe himself reflects
psychology might expect. Virginia Woolf once observed that one of the most on what he learns about the complex process of growing and making things.
surprising features of the book is that in it ‘‘there is no solitude and no soul.’’ But ‘‘’Tis a little wonderful, and what I believe very few people have thought much
readers have often emphasized the book’s representation of isolation and the upon,’’ Defoe’s hero observes, ‘‘the strange multitude of little things necessary’’
desolation that accompanies it; in the eighteenth century the critic James Beattie for the production of ‘‘one article of bread’’ (page 119). Crusoe describes the
observed that the book ‘‘fixes in the mind a lively idea of the horrors of steps necessary to producing a loaf of bread: plowing or otherwise turning the
solitude,’’ and Poe saw it as offering an unprecedented look at ‘‘the idea of a earth, sowing, building a fence to protect the crop, harvesting and threshing,
man in perfect isolation.’’ Many twentieth-century responses to the book milling the grain, and building an oven. After his first harvest, he sets himself
emphasize Crusoe’s loneliness and its terrible cost. In two of the best films based the task, in ‘‘the next six months to apply myself wholly by labour and invention
to furnish myself with utensils proper for the performing all the operations him, and converts him, and he clearly regards Friday as naturally submissive:
necessary for the making’’ of bread (page 120). Thus, in the same century in ‘‘never man had a more faithful, loving, sincere servant than Friday was to me;
which Adam Smith, the first great theorist of capitalism, published The Wealth of without passions, sullenness, or designs, perfectly obliged and engaged’’ (page
Nations (1776) and in which the industrial revolution began in England, 211). Just after this assessment of Friday, Crusoe reflects at length on the ways
Robinson Crusoe laid out the idea of the division of labor so important both to of Providence—how God ordains different conditions and fates for different
Smith’s theory and to the industrial revolution generally. And Defoe’s readers kinds of men—and the text thereby suggests that Friday and his whole race were
watch admiringly as Crusoe acquires one new skill after another. created as natural servants of European man.
On television, the series Survivor attends to this theme. Before that series Such beliefs were, of course, part of the rationale for European imperialism,
begins to focus almost entirely on group dynamics—who gets voted off, who and some of Robinson Crusoe’s mythic force, at least for a long time after the
remains— it shows participants attempting to acquire survival skills, especially book first appeared, was undoubtedly due to its presentation of a non-European,
those associated with finding food. Films based on Robinson Crusoe have been nonwhite ‘‘other’’ readily embracing ‘‘subjection, servitude, and submission’’ as
particularly interested in Crusoe’s struggle to master new skills. Buñuel’s his natural stance in respect to white European man. This element of the book,
Robinson Crusoe is, of all the major films based on Defoe’s novel, in many ways happily, has become its most problematic aspect for those who imitate, adapt or
the most faithful, and this is particularly evident in the film’s representation of otherwise rework Defoe’s novel. Coetzee’s Foe raises the problem of Friday by
Crusoe’s growing mastery of a wide range of techniques. We see him fashioning presenting him as a man whose tongue has been cut out and whose true story, as
the famous umbrella and goatskin clothes, raising wheat and baking bread, a result, may not be told. Similarly, most of the films based on Robinson Crusoe
building a stockade, and making his own pots. In Cast Away Noland’s progress treat Friday in such a way as to critique the racial politics of the original.
on the island is registered chiefly by his acquisition of various skills. Early in the Buñuel’s Crusoe at first treats Friday (Jaime Fernández) quite cruelly but the
hero’s ordeal, he exults when he manages to build a fire (‘‘I have made fire!’’), Englishman then undergoes a transformation. At one point he begs Friday to
but the overweight businessman is very inept when it comes to fishing or forgive him and declares, ‘‘I want you to be my friend.’’ Man Friday (1975), a
providing himself with shelter. After four years on the island, however, Noland British film directed by Jack Gold, represents Crusoe (Peter O’Toole) as a
expertly throws a spear to catch a fish; now remarkably slim, he meets with ease diseased racist and Friday (Richard Roundtree) as morally and spiritually
the physical challenges of life on the island. (His transformation seemingly superior to the Englishman. In the American film Crusoe (1988), directed by
begins when he manages to extract an aching tooth; a four-year gap in the Caleb Deschanel, there is, strictly speaking no Friday; rather, the Crusoe (Aidan
narrative opens after Noland passes out after the painful operation.) And in the Quinn) of that film, a nineteenth-century American slave trader, has an
end, Noland manages to build the raft that gets him off the island and carries him encounter with a black man identified in the film’s credits as ‘‘the Warrior’’ (Ade
to safety and home. Robinson Crusoe films, then, like readers since 1719, have Sapara). Their meeting leads to Crusoe’s moral transformation. The Warrior
responded with fascination to the novel’s description of how, by endless saves Crusoe when he falls into quicksand, and when the two quarrel over whose
‘‘experiment,’’ the hero becomes ‘‘master of my business’’ (page 107). language they will use, Crusoe finally accepts the warrior’s meat and also uses
Another form of mastery, one that takes us to the book’s most troubling his word for it: ‘‘jala.’’ The two establish a rough equality, and at the end of the
aspects, is seen in the relationship between Crusoe and Friday. Shortly after film when the Warrior is taken captive by anthropologists, Crusoe frees him.
Defoe’s Crusoe rescues Friday, the basis for their dealings with each other is Afterward Crusoe is seen on the ship that will take him home as clean-shaven,
unmistakably established. Crusoe relates that shortly after being saved, Friday clear-eyed, and, we are meant to see, spiritually renewed. That Zemeckis’s Cast
comes to him and ‘‘lays his head flat upon the ground, close to my foot, and sets Away does entirely without Friday, and replaces him with Wilson, undoubtedly
my other foot upon his head’’ and makes ‘‘all the signs to me of subjection, has to do partly with the fact that the film is set in our own time; the filmmakers
servitude, and submission imaginable. ’’ Crusoe lets Friday know that he is may well have thought that imagining an island visited by non-European
‘‘very well pleased with him’’ (pages 208-9). Crusoe also names Friday, teaches ‘‘savages’’ in a postcolonial, globalized world was simply impossible. But the
substitution of Wilson for Crusoe’s other is also an implicit acknowledgment that
Friday is the book’s most problematic element. Still, the erasure of Friday is not Selected Bibliography
without its own troubling aspects. In Cast Away, after all, Crusoe’s ‘‘companion’’
on the island has been turned into a true object, something thrown away, tied
down, and finally lost without any real consequence. Seen in another light, Works by DANIEL DEFOE
Noland’s island might represent the world beyond the reach of the United States
An Essay upon Projects, 1697
(and FedEx) as unpeopled and therefore as open to the West’s occupation and
use. No matter how we view Wilson in Cast Away, however, the films based on The True-Born Englishman, 1701 Poem
Robinson Crusoe from 1952 onward make it clear that race, unlike the The Shortest Way with Dissenters, 1702 Prose Satire
representation of loneliness or the fascination with technique, is one element of A Review of the Affairs of France; A Review of the State of the British Nation,
the original Crusoe narrative that must be radically revised in contemporary 1704-13 Periodical
refashionings of Defoe’s novel. The True Relation of the Apparition of One Mrs. Veal, 1706
In closing, it seems worthwhile to point out that when American television has The History of the Union of Great Britain, 1709 History
turned its attention to Robinson Crusoe, it has done so in important part by
The Secret History of the October Club, 1711 Secret History
turning the story inside out. Survivor and Lost make the experience of being cast
away into a story of a group stranded on an island together. That story cannot be Robinson Crusoe, 1719 Novel
about loneliness; nor is it particularly about either technique or race. Rather it The Farther Adventures of Robinson Crusoe, 1719
becomes a story of renewal as the result of the experience on the island. In Lost, Serious Reflections of Robinson Crusoe, 1720
particularly, all of the major inhabitants have pasts that they regret (lives of The Life, Adventures, and Pyracies of the Famous Captain Singleton, 1720
crime, familial conflicts, drug addiction, crippling wealth), and the island seems Novel
to offer them all an opportunity to start their lives over again. On Survivor, too,
The Fortunes and Misfortunes of the Famous Moll Flanders , 1722 Novel
the contestants are presented with the chance of achieving great wealth and as a
result the ability to start a new life. These shows, again particularly Lost, suggest The History and Remarkable Life of . . . Colonel Jacque, 1722 Novel
that life back home is the problem and that the island offers at least the A Journal of the Plague Year, 1722 Novel
possibility of a solution to that problem. The ‘‘castaways’’ in Lost and Survivor, Roxana, or the Fortunate Mistress, 1724 Novel
one could argue, share with Defoe’s Robinson Crusoe the possibility of A Tour Through the Whole Island of Great Britain, 1724-27
transformation as a result of their ordeal, but, in a way that is not true of Defoe’s
novel, the television shows also embody a critique of the society from which the
islanders have come. Still, although different in crucial ways from Defoe’s story, Selected Biography and Criticism
these offerings of contemporary American television, like the films made over
the last sixty years as well as the literary reimaginings published almost from the Backscheider, Paula R. Daniel Defoe: His Life. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins
moment Robinson Crusoe appeared, all testify to the continuing adaptability and University Press, 1989.
enduring power of Defoe’s novel. Bender, John. Imagining the Penitentiary: Fiction and the Architecture of Mind
—Robert Mayer in Eighteenth-Century England. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1987.
Caldwell, Tanya. ‘‘Sure Instinct: Incest, Politics, and Genre in Dryden and
Defoe.’’ Genre XXXIII (Spring 2000): 27-50.
Hunter, J. Paul. The Reluctant Pilgrim: Defoe’s Emblematic Method and Quest
for Form in Robinson Crusoe. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1966. 1
Mayer, Robert. Eighteenth-Century Fiction on Screen. Cambridge: Cambridge A tropical fever.
University Press, 2002. 2
———. History and the Early English Novel: Matters of Fact from Bacon to Ensign; banner.
Defoe. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1997. 3
Moore, John Robert. Daniel Defoe: Citizen of the Modern World. Chicago: Grain.
University of Chicago Press, 1958.
4
Novak, Maximillian E. Daniel Defoe—Master of Fictions: His Life and Ideas.
Food; feed.
New York: Oxford University Press, 2001.
5
————. ‘‘Gender Cultural Criticism and the Rise of the Novel: The Case of
Defoe.’’ Eighteenth-Century Fiction 12 (2-3) (January-April 2000): 239-51. Perplexity; bewilderment.
Richetti, John J. Defoe’s Narratives: Situations and Structures . Oxford: 6
Clarendon Press, 1975. Come suddenly.
Rogers, Pat, ed. Daniel Defoe: The Critical Heritage. London: Routledge, 1998. 7
Said, Edward. Culture and Imperialism. New York: Knopf, 1993. Revealed; made known.
Starr, George A. Defoe and Spiritual Autobiography. Princeton, NJ: Princeton 8
University Press, 1965. Did not fail.
Sutherland, James R. Daniel Defoe: A Critical Study. Cambridge, MA: Harvard 9
University Press, 1971. Lack.
———. Defoe. Writers and Their Work, No. 51. London: Longmans, Green,
1965.
Swaminathan, Srividhya. ‘‘Defoe’s Alternative Conduct Manual.’’ Eighteenth-
Century Fiction 15.2 (2003): 185- 206.
Vickers, Ilse. Defoe and the New Sciences. Cambridge: Cambridge University
Press, 1996.
Watt, Ian. The Rise of the Novel. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1957.
Zimmerman, Everett. Defoe and the Novel: Studies in Defoe, Richardson, and
Fielding. Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press, 1975.

You might also like